summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-27 19:30:27 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-27 19:30:27 -0800
commitada04e394e387152bbc4bba1479c5c912e5fe03a (patch)
tree0b7ff33dca47bc85ab9b7b610cfc6fdbebc08e1b
parent4457c60447f9a3ec9750960c828a9142aea5f7b4 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/61076-0.txt7424
-rw-r--r--old/61076-0.zipbin162436 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61076-h.zipbin309073 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61076-h/61076-h.htm10022
-rw-r--r--old/61076-h/images/cover.jpgbin68909 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61076-h/images/i_163.jpgbin31374 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61076-h/images/i_graphic1.jpgbin12985 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61076-h/images/i_graphic2.jpgbin14227 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61076-h/images/i_graphic3.jpgbin14168 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61076-h/images/i_graphic4.jpgbin13718 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61076-h/images/i_graphic5.jpgbin13550 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61076-h/images/i_graphic6.jpgbin14280 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61076-h/images/i_title.jpgbin22666 -> 0 bytes
16 files changed, 17 insertions, 17446 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..1445f9c
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #61076 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/61076)
diff --git a/old/61076-0.txt b/old/61076-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index baa8775..0000000
--- a/old/61076-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,7424 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of On Everything, by Hilaire Belloc
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: On Everything
-
-Author: Hilaire Belloc
-
-Release Date: January 2, 2020 [EBook #61076]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ON EVERYTHING ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Tim Lindell, David E. Brown, and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive/Canadian Libraries)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-ON EVERYTHING
-
-
-
-
-BY THE SAME AUTHOR
-
-
- PARIS
- HILLS AND THE SEA
- EMMANUEL BURDEN, MERCHANT
- A CHANGE IN THE CABINET
- ON NOTHING AND KINDRED SUBJECTS
- THE PYRENEES
- MARIE ANTOINETTE
-
-
-
-
- ON EVERYTHING
-
- BY
-
- H. BELLOC
-
- SECOND EDITION
-
- METHUEN & CO.
- 36 ESSEX STREET W.C.
- LONDON
-
-
-
-
- _First Published_ _November 4th 1909_
- _Second Edition_ _1910_
-
-
-
-
- _To
- Madame Antoine Pescatore_
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- PAGE
-
- ON SONG 1
-
- ON AN EMPTY HOUSE 7
-
- THE LANDFALL 16
-
- THE LITTLE OLD MAN 22
-
- THE LONG MARCH 29
-
- ON SATURNALIA 38
-
- A LITTLE CONVERSATION IN HEREFORDSHIRE 45
-
- ON THE RIGHTS OF PROPERTY 53
-
- THE ECONOMIST 60
-
- A LITTLE CONVERSATION IN CARTHAGE 68
-
- THE STRANGE COMPANION 74
-
- THE VISITOR 81
-
- A RECONSTRUCTION OF THE PAST 90
-
- THE REASONABLE PRESS 97
-
- ASMODEUS 104
-
- THE DEATH OF THE COMIC AUTHOR 113
-
- ON CERTAIN MANNERS AND CUSTOMS 121
-
- THE STATESMAN 130
-
- THE DUEL 138
-
- ON A BATTLE, OR “JOURNALISM,” OR “POINTS OF VIEW” 148
-
- A DESCENDANT OF WILLIAM SHAKESPEARE 159
-
- ON THE APPROACH TO WESTERN ENGLAND 167
-
- THE WEALD 174
-
- ON LONDON AND THE HOUSES IN IT 180
-
- ON OLD TOWNS 187
-
- A CROSSING OF THE HILLS 194
-
- THE BARBER 201
-
- ON HIGH PLACES 209
-
- ON SOME LITTLE HORSES 217
-
- ON STREAMS AND RIVERS 223
-
- ON TWO MANUALS 230
-
- ON FANTASTIC BOOKS 238
-
- THE UNFORTUNATE MAN 244
-
- THE CONTENTED MAN 253
-
- THE MISSIONER 261
-
- THE DREAM 270
-
- THE SILENCE OF THE BATTLEFIELDS 276
-
- NOVISSIMA HORA 283
-
- ON REST 289
-
-
-
-
-These essays appeared for the most part in _The Morning Post_, and are
-here reprinted by the courtesy of the Editor.
-
-
-
-
-ON EVERYTHING
-
-
-
-
-On Song
-
-
-Some say that when that box was opened wherein lay ready the evils of
-the world (and a woman opened it) Hope flew out at last.
-
-That is a Pagan thing to say and a hopeless one, for the true comfort
-that remained for men, and that embodied and gave reality to their
-conquering struggle against every despair, was surely Song.
-
-If you would ask what society is imperilled of death, go to one
-in which song is extinguished. If you would ask in what society a
-permanent sickness oppresses all, and the wealthy alone are permitted
-to make the laws, go to one in which song is a fine art and treated
-with criticism and used charily, and ceases to be a human thing. But if
-you would discover where men are men, take for your test whether songs
-are always and loudly sung.
-
-Sailors sing. They have a song for work and songs for every part of
-their work, and they have songs of reminiscence and of tragedy, and
-many farcical songs; some brutal songs, songs of repose, and songs in
-which is packed the desire for a distant home.
-
-Soldiers also sing, at least in those Armies where soldiers are still
-soldiers. And the Line, which is the core and body of any army, is the
-most singing of them all. The Cavalry hardly sing, at least until they
-get indoors, for it would be a bumping sort of singing, and gunners
-cannot sing for noise, while the drivers are busy riding and leading
-as well. But the Line sings; and if you will consider quickly, all
-the great armies of the world, and consider them justly, not as the
-pedants do, but as men do who really feel the past, you would hear
-mounting from them always continual song. Those men who marched behind
-Cæsar in his triumph sang a song, and the words of it still remain (so
-I am told); the armies of Louis XIV and of Napoleon, of the Republic,
-and even of Algiers, made songs of their own which have passed into
-the great treasury of European letters. And though it is difficult to
-believe it, it is true, the little troops of the Parliament marching
-down the river made a song about Mother Bunch, coupled with the name of
-the Dorchester Hills; but I may be wrong. I was told it by a friend; he
-may have been a false friend.
-
-They sang in the Barons’ wars; they sang on the way to Lewes. They sang
-in that march which led men to the assault at Hastings, for it was
-written by those who saw the column of knights advancing to the foot of
-the hill that Taillefer was chosen for his great voice and rode before
-the host, tossing his sword into the air and catching it again by the
-hilt (a difficult thing to do), and singing of Charlemagne and of the
-vassals who had died under Roncesvalles.
-
-Song also illuminates and strengthens and vivifies all common life, and
-on this account what is left of our peasantry have harvest songs, and
-there are songs for mowing and songs for the midwinter rest, and there
-is even a song in the south of England for the gathering of honey,
-which song, if you have not heard it, though it is commonly known, runs
-thus:--
-
- _Bees of bees of Paradise,
- Do the work of Jesus Christ,
- Do the work which no man can.
- God made man, and man made money,
- God made bees and bees made honey.
- God made big men to plough, to reap, and to sow,
- God made little boys to keep off the rook and the crow._
-
-This song is sung for pleasure, and, by the way of singing it, it is
-made to scan.
-
-Indeed, all men sing at their labour, or would so sing did not dead
-convention forbid them. You will say there are exceptions, as lawyers,
-usurers, and others; but there are no exceptions to this rule where all
-the man is working and is working well, and is producing and is not
-ashamed.
-
-Rowers sing, and their song is called a Barcarolle; and even men
-holding the tiller who have nothing to do but hold it tend to sing a
-song. And I will swear to this that I have heard stokers when they
-were hard pressed starting a sort of crooning chorus together, which
-shows that there is hope for us all.
-
-The great Poets who are chiefly this, men capable of perfect expression
-(though of no more feeling than any other of their kind), are dignified
-by Song, much more than by any others of their forms of power. Consider
-that song of Du Bellay’s which he translated out of the Italian, and in
-which he has the winnower singing as he turns the winnowing fan. That
-is great expression, because no man can read it without feeling that if
-ever he had to do the hard work of winnowing this is the song he would
-like to sing.
-
-Song also is the mistress of memory, and though a scent is more
-powerful, a song is more general, as an instrument for the resurrection
-of lost things. Thus exiles who of all men on earth suffer most deeply,
-most permanently, and most fruitfully, are great makers of songs. The
-chief character in songs--that almost any man can write them, that any
-man at all can sing them, and that the greatest are anonymous--is never
-better proved than in this quality of the songs of exiles. There is a
-Highland song of which I have been told, written in the Celtic dialect
-and translated again into English by I know not whom, which, for all
-its unknown authorship (and I believe its authorship to be unknown)
-enshrines that radiantly beautiful line:
-
- And we in dreams behold the Hebrides.
-
-The last anonymous piece of silver that was struck in the mint of the
-Roman language has that same poignant quality.
-
- Exul quid vis canere?
-
-All the songs that men make (and they are powerful ones) regretting
-youth are songs of exile, and in a sense (it is a high and true sense)
-the mighty hymns are songs of exile also.
-
- Qui vitam sine termino
- Nobis donet in patria,
-
-that is the pure note of exile, and so is the
-
- Coheredes et sodales
- In terra viventium,
-
-and in this last glorious thing comes in the note of marching and of
-soldiers as well as the note of separation and of longing. But after
-all the mention of religion is in itself a proof of song, for what
-spell could there ever be without incantation, or what ritual could
-lack its chaunt?
-
-If any man wonders why these two, Religion and Song, are connected, or
-thinks it impious that they should so be, let him do this: if he is an
-old man let him cover his face with his hand and remember at evening
-what occasions stand out of the long past, full of a complete life, and
-of an acute observation and intelligence of all that was around: how
-many were occasions for song! There are pictures a man will remember
-all his life only because he watched them for a pastime, because he
-heard a woman singing as he watched them, and there are landscapes
-which remain in the mind long after other things have faded, but so
-remain because one went at morning with other men along the road
-singing a walking song. And if it is a young man who wishes to make
-trial of this truth, he also has his test. For he will note as the
-years continue how, while all other pleasures lose their value and
-gradation, Song remains, until at last the notes of singing become like
-a sort of sacrament outside time, not subject to decay, but always
-nourishing men, for Song gives a permanent sense of futurity and a
-permanent sense of the presence of Divine things. Nor is there any
-pleasure which you will take away from middle age and leave it more
-lonely, than this pleasure of hearing Song.
-
-It is that immortal quality in the business which makes it of a
-different kind from the other efforts of men. Write a good song and
-the tune leaps up to meet it out of nothingness. It clothes itself
-with tune, and once so clothed it continues on through generations,
-eternally young, always smiling, and always ready with strong hands
-for mankind. On this account every man who has written a song can be
-certain that he has done good; any man who has continually sung them
-can be certain that he has lived and has communicated life to others.
-
-It is the best of all trades, to make songs, and the second best to
-sing them.
-
-
-
-
-On an Empty House
-
-
-A man a little over forty years of age had desired to take a house in
-London. He had lived hitherto between a cottage in the country, where
-he had stables and where he made it his pleasure to ride, and rooms in
-town off St. James’s Street. He had also two clubs, one of which he
-continually visited. From his thirtieth year onward he had come more
-often to town; he was heavier in build; he rode with less pleasure.
-He had taken to writing and had published more than one little study,
-chiefly upon the creative work of other men. He was under no compulsion
-to write or to do any other thing, for he had a private fortune of
-about £3000 a year. This he managed with some ability so that it
-neither increased nor diminished, and like many other Englishmen, he
-had wisely invested abroad, from the year 1897 onwards. Now, I say,
-that middle age was upon him, London controlled him more and more. He
-was in sympathy with the maturity of the great town, which responded
-to his own maturity. He could find a leisure in it which he had never
-found in youth. The multitude of the books and the easy access to
-them, the sensible and varied conversation of men of his own rank and
-age, and that sort of peopled quiet which supports the nights of men
-living in London--all these had become a sort of food to him; they
-greatly pleased him. So also did the physical food of London. He took
-an increasing pleasure in changing the choice of his wine, which (an
-invariable effect of age) he now distinguished. His rooms in London had
-thus become for now some years past more and more his home; but he had
-begun to feel that rooms could not be a home; and he would set up for
-himself; he would be a master. He would feel again and in a greater way
-that comfortable consciousness of self and of surroundings fitting one
-which a man has in early youth every time he enters his father’s house.
-
-With this purpose the man of whom I speak looked at several houses,
-going first to agents, but finding himself disappointed in all. He
-soon learned a wiser way, which was to ask friends of what houses they
-had heard, and then to see for himself whether he liked them, and to
-do this before even he knew what rent was asked. Also he would wander
-up and down the streets, his heavy, well-dressed figure ponderous and
-moving at a measured pace, and as he so wandered he would cast his eyes
-over houses.
-
-London, like all great things, has about it a quality for which I do
-not know the word, but when I was at school there was a Greek word for
-it. “Manifold” is too vague; “multitudinous” would not explain the idea
-at all. What I mean is a quality by which one thing contains several
-(not many) parts, each individual, each with a separate life and
-colour of its own, and yet each living by a common spirit which builds
-up the whole. Thus London, a great town, is also a number (not a large
-number) of towns within. And to this man, who had cultivation and so
-often wrote upon the creative work of other men, the spirit and the
-delight of each quarter was well known. The words “Chelsea,” “Soho,”
-“Mayfair,” “Westminster,” “Bloomsbury”--all meant to him things as
-actual as colours or as chords of music, and each represented to him
-not measurable advantages or drawbacks, but separate kinds of pleasure.
-He loved them all, but he gravitated, as it is right and natural that
-a man of his wealth and sort should do, to the houses north of Oxford
-Street and south of the Marylebone Road. He had no territorial blood,
-nor had his ancestry engaged in commerce; he was European in every
-ramification of his descent. He came of doctors, of soldiers, of
-lawyers, and in a word, of that middle class which has now disappeared
-as a body and remains among us only in a few examples whose tradition,
-though we respect it, is no longer a corporate tradition. For three
-hundred years his people had had Greek, Latin, and French, and had in
-alternate generations experienced ease or constraint according to the
-circumstances of English life. He was the first to enjoy so complete a
-leisure.
-
-To this part of London, therefore, he naturally turned at last, and
-following the sound rule that a man’s rent should be one-tenth of
-his income--if that income is moderate--he looked about for a large
-and comfortable house. The very streets had separate atmospheres for
-him. He fixed at last upon what seemed a very nice house indeed in
-Queen Anne Street. First he looked at it well from without, admired
-the ironwork and the old places for lanterns, and the extinguishers;
-he looked at the solid brick, and at that expression which all houses
-have from the position of their windows. It was a house such as his
-own people might have built or lived in under George III, and in
-the earlier part of the reign of that unfortunate, though virtuous,
-monarch. In a little while he had gone so far as to get his ticket from
-the agent, and he would view the house. He came one day and another; he
-was very much taken with the arrangement of it and with the quiet rooms
-at the back, and he was pleased to see that the second staircase was
-so arranged that there would be little noise of service. He remembered
-with a sort of sentimental but pleasing feeling his childhood passed in
-such a house, for his father had been a surgeon, somewhat famous, and
-they lived in such rooms and in such a neighbourhood. He was pleased
-with the old-fashioned arrangements for heating the water; he did not
-propose to change them. But he was glad that electric light had taken
-the place of gas, and he did propose to change the disposition of this
-light made by the last tenants.
-
-With every day that he visited the place it pleased him more. It
-became a daily occupation of his, and it took up most of his thoughts.
-The agents were gentle and kind; no mention of competitors was made,
-and the reason for this would have been plain to any other but himself,
-for he was offering a larger rent than the house was worth. But his
-offer was not yet confirmed. Many years of successful investment, in
-which, as I have said, he had neither increased nor diminished his
-fortune, had given him a just measure of prudence in these affairs,
-and he would not sign in a definite way until the whole scheme was
-quite clear in his mind. For a week he visited and revisited, until the
-caretaker, an elderly woman of rich humour, began to count upon the
-conversation which she enjoyed at his daily appearances.
-
- * * * * *
-
-In the wealthier part of London--next door to the modern abomination of
-some new man or other who was destined to no succession, to no honour,
-and whose fate in the future would probably prove to be some gamble
-or other upon the Continent--next door to such a house, just round
-the corner, so that you could only see the Park sideways, lived an
-admirable woman. She was the wife of a Peer and the mother of numerous
-children, of whom the eldest now served as a soldier and was an expense
-to them, as was the youngest, from the traditions of his school, which
-was also expensive. It was her husband’s business, when that half
-of the politicians to which he belonged was not in office, to speak
-at meetings and to write lithographed letters imploring aid of the
-financial kind for institutions designed to relieve the necessities of
-the poor. He also shot both on his own land and on that of friends,
-and he would fish in Scotland, but as he had no land there, he had to
-hire the fishing. The same was true of his sport with the birds in that
-Northern Kingdom; so one way and another they were not rich for their
-position, and this admirable woman it was who made all things go well.
-She was strong in body, handsome in face, and of a clear, vivacious
-temper, which pleased all the world about her, and made it the better
-for her presence. But none of these attributes were so worthy, nor gave
-her so general an admiration, as the splendid and evident virtue of her
-soul. There was in her very gesture, and in every tone of her voice
-when she chose to be serious, that fundamental character of goodness
-which is at once the chief gift to mortals from Almighty God, and the
-chief glory and merit of those recipients who have used it well. She
-had done so, and the whole of her life was a sacrament and a support to
-all who were blessed with her acquaintance.
-
-Among these was the Man who was taking the House, for he had known her
-brother very well at college. She was much of the same rank as himself,
-though a little older. During many years of his youth he had so taken
-for granted her perfections and her companionship, that these had,
-as it were, made his world for him; he had judged the world by that
-standard. Now that he knew the world, he used that standard no more.
-It would not be just to say that at her early marriage he had felt any
-pain save a necessary loss of some companionship. He had never had a
-sister; he continued to receive her advice and to enter her house as
-a relative, for though he was not a relative, the very children would
-have been startled had they ever chosen to remember that he was not
-one, and his Christian name came as commonly upon their lips, upon
-hers, and upon her husband’s as any name under their own roof. He would
-not, of course, finally take this house until she had seen it.
-
-He was waiting, therefore, in the hall one morning of that winter a
-little impatiently to show her his choice, and to take her verdict upon
-certain details of it before he should write the last letter which
-should bind him to the place. He heard a motor-car come up, looked out
-and saw that it was hers, and met her upon the steps and led her in.
-She also was pleased with everything she saw, and her pleasure suddenly
-put light into the house, so that if you had seen her there, moving and
-speaking and laughing, you would have had an illusion that the sun had
-come shining in all the windows; a true physical illusion. You would
-have remembered the place as sunlit. She noted the panelling, she
-approved of one carved fireplace, she disapproved of another; she said
-the house was too large for him; she was sure it would suit him. She
-showed him where his many books would go, and warned him on a hundred
-little things which he had never guessed at, in the arrangement of a
-home. She was but half an hour in his company, and still smiling, still
-full of words, she went away. He was to see her again in a very short
-time; he was to lunch at their house, and he stood for a moment after
-the door had shut in the silence of the big place, as though wondering
-how he should pass his time. The hall in which he lingered was surely
-very desolate; the bare boards he was sure he would remember, however
-well they were covered; he never could make those cold walls look
-warm.... Anyhow, one didn’t live in one’s hall. He just plodded
-upstairs slowly to what had been the drawing-room of the house, and the
-big brass curtain rods offended him; the rings were still upon them. He
-would move them away, but still they offended him. The lines were too
-regular, and there was too little to appeal to him. He hesitated for a
-moment as to whether he would go up farther and look again at the upper
-rooms which they had discussed together, but the great well of the
-staircase looked emptier than all the rest; the great mournful windows,
-filled with a grey northern sky, lit it, but gave it no light. And he
-noticed, as he trod the bare wood of the last flight, how dismally his
-footsteps echoed. Then he called up the caretaker and gave her the key,
-surprised her with a considerable fee, and said he would communicate
-that day with the agents, and left.
-
-When he got to lunch at his friends’ house he told them that he would
-not take the Empty House after all, whereat they all buzzed with
-excitement, and asked him what he had found at the last moment. And he
-said, in a silly sort of way, that it was not haunted enough for him.
-But anyhow he did not take it: he went back to live in his rooms, and
-he lives there still.
-
-
-
-
-The Landfall
-
-
-It was in Oxford Street and upon the top of an omnibus during one of
-those despairing winter days, the light just gone, and an air rising
-which was neither vigorous nor cold, but sodden like the hearts of all
-around, that I fell wondering whether there were some ultimate goal for
-men, and whether these adventures of ours, which grow tamer and so much
-tamer as the years proceed, are lost at last in a blank nothingness,
-or whether there are revelations and discoveries to come. This debate
-in the mind is very old; every man revolves it, none has affirmed a
-solution, though all the wisest of men have accepted a received answer
-from authority external to themselves. I was not on that murky evening
-concerned with authority, but with the old problem or rather mood of
-wonder upon the fate of the soul.
-
-As I so mused to the jolting of the bus I began unconsciously to
-compare the keenness of early living with the satiety or weariness
-of later years; and so from one thing to another, I know not how, I
-thought of horses first, and then of summer rivers, and then of a
-harbour, and then of the open sea, and then of the sea at night, till
-this vague train took on the form of an exact picture, and my mind
-lived in an unforgotten day.
-
- * * * * *
-
-In my little boat, with my companion asleep in the bows, I steered at
-the end of darkness eastward over a warm and easy sea.
-
-It was August: the roll was lazy, and the stars were few and distant
-all around, because the sky, though clear, was softened by the pleasant
-air of summer at its close; moreover, an arch of the sky before me was
-paling and the sea-breeze smelt of dawn.
-
-My little boat went easy, as the sea was easy. There was just enough
-of a following wind dead west to keep her steady and to keep the
-boom square in its place right out a-lee, nor did she shake or swing
-(as boats so often will before a following wind), but went on with a
-purpose gently, like a young woman just grown used to her husband and
-her home. So she sailed, and aft we left a little, bubbling wake, which
-in the darkness had glimmered with evanescent and magic fires, but now,
-as the morning broadened, could be seen to be white foam. The stars
-paled for an hour and then soon vanished; although the sun had not yet
-risen, it was day.
-
-The line of the horizon before me was fresh and sharp, clear tops
-of swell showed hard against the faint blue of the lowest sky, and
-for some time we were thus alone together in the united and living
-immensity of the sea: my sleeping companion, my boat, and I. Then it
-was that I perceived a little northward and to the left of the rising
-glow a fixed appearance very far away beyond the edge of the world; it
-was grey and watery like a smoke, yet fixed in outline and unchanging;
-it did not waver but stood, and so standing confirmed its presence. It
-was land; and this dim but certain vision which now fixed my gaze was
-one of the mighty headlands of holy Ireland.
-
-The noble hill lifted its mass upon the extreme limits of sight, almost
-dissolved by distance and yet clear; its summit was high and plain, and
-in the moment it was perceived the sea became a new thing. It was no
-longer void or absorbing, but became familiar water neighbourly to men;
-and was now that ocean, whose duty and meaning it is to stream around
-and guard the shores on which are founded cities and armies, families
-and enduring homes. The little boat sailed on, now in the mood for
-companions and for friends.
-
-My companion stirred and woke; he raised himself upon his arm, and,
-looking forward to the left and right, at last said, “Land!” I told him
-the name of the headland. But I did not know that there lay beyond it
-a long and narrow bay, nor how, at the foot of this land-locked water,
-a group of small white houses stood, and behind it a very venerable
-tower.
-
-It was not long before the sun came up out of a sea more clear and into
-a sky more vivid than you will see within the soundings of the Channel.
-It poured upon all the hills an enlivening new light quite different
-from the dawn, and this was especially noticeable upon the swell and
-the little ridges of it, which danced and shone so that one thought of
-music.
-
-Meanwhile the land grew longer before us and this one headland merged
-into the general line, and inland heights could be seen; a little later
-again it first became possible to distinguish the divisions of the
-fields and the separate colours of rocks and of grassland and of trees.
-A little while later again the white thread showed all along that coast
-where the water broke at the meeting of the rocks and the sea; the tide
-was at the flood.
-
-We had, perhaps, three miles between us and the land (where every
-detail now stood out quite sharp and clear) when the wind freshened
-suddenly and, after the boat had heeled as suddenly and run for a
-moment with the scuppers under, she recovered and bounded forward. It
-was like obedience to a call, or like the look that comes suddenly into
-men’s eyes when they hear unexpectedly a familiar name. She lifted at
-it and she took the sea, for the sea began to rise.
-
-Then there began that dance of vigour which is almost a combat, when
-men sail with skill and under some stress of attention and of danger.
-I would not take in an inch because of the pleasure of it, but she
-was over-canvased all the same, and I put her ever so little round for
-fear of a gybe, but the pleasure of it was greater than the fear, and
-the cordage sang, and it gave me delight to glance over my shoulder at
-that following rush which chases a small boat always when she presses
-before a breeze and might poop her if her rider did not know his game.
-That which had been a long, long sail through the night with an almost
-silent wake and the bursting of but few bubbles, and next a steady
-approach before the strong and easy wind, had now become something
-inspired and exultant, a course which resembled a charge; and the more
-the sea rose the larger everything became--the boat’s career, the land
-upon which she was determined, and our own minds, while all about us as
-we urged and raced for shore were the loud noises of the sea.
-
-We ran straight for a point where could be seen the gate to the inland
-bay; we rounded it, and our entry completed all, for when once we had
-rounded the point all fell together; the wind, the heaving of the
-water, the sounds and the straining of the sheets. In a moment, and
-less than a moment, we had cut out from us the vision of the sea, a
-barrier of cliff and hill stood between us and the large horizon. The
-very lonely slopes of these western mountains rose solemn and enormous
-all around, and the bay on which we floated, with only just that way
-which remained after our sharp turning, was quite lucid and clear,
-like the seas by southern beaches where one can look down and see a
-world underneath our own. The boom swung inboard, the canvas hung
-in folds, and my companion forward cut loose the little anchor from
-its tie, the chain went rattling down, and so silent was that sacred
-place that one could hear an echo from the cliffs close by returning
-the clanking of the links; the chain ran out and slowly tautened as
-she fell back and rode to it. Then we let go the halyards, and when
-the slight creaking of the blocks had ceased there was no more noise.
-Everything was still.
-
- * * * * *
-
-There was the vision that returned to me.
-
-I was in the midst of it, I was almost present, I had forgotten the
-streets of the treacherous and evil town, when suddenly, I know not
-what, a cry, or some sharp movement near me, brought me back from such
-a place and day, from such an experience, such a parallel and such a
-security.
-
-With that return to the common business of living the thought on which
-my mind had begun its travel also returned, but in spite of the mood I
-had so recently enjoyed my doubts were not resolved.
-
-
-
-
-The Little Old Man
-
-
-It was in the year 1888 (“O noctes coenasque deum!”--a tag) that, upon
-one of the southern hills of England, I came quite unexpectedly across
-a little old man who sat upon a bench that was there and looked out to
-sea.
-
-Now you will ask me why a bench was there, since benches are not
-commonly found upon the high slopes of our southern hills, of which the
-poet has well said, the writer has well written, and the singer has
-well sung:--
-
- The Southern Hills and the South Sea
- They blow such gladness into me
- That when I get to Burton Sands
- And smell the smell of the home lands,
- My heart is all renewed, and fills
- With the Southern Sea and the South Hills.
-
-True, benches are not common there. I know of but one, all the way from
-the meeting place of England, which is upon Salisbury Plain, to that
-detestable suburb of Eastbourne by Beachy Head. Nay, even that one of
-which I speak has disappeared. For an honest man being weary of labour
-and yet desiring firewood one day took it away, and the stumps only now
-remain at the edge of a wood, a little to the south of No Man’s Land.
-
-Well, at any rate, upon this bench there sat in the year 1888 a little
-old man, and he was looking out to sea; for from this place the English
-Channel spreads out in a vast band 600 ft. below one, and the shore
-perhaps five miles away; it looks broader than any sea in the world,
-broader than the Mediterranean from the hills of Alba Longa, and
-broader than the Irish Sea from the summit of the Welsh Mountains:
-though why this is so I cannot tell. The little old man treated my
-coming as though it was an expected thing, and before I had spoken to
-him long assured me that this view gave him complete content.
-
-“I could sit here,” he said, “and look at the Channel and consider the
-nature of this land for ever and for ever.” Now though words like this
-meant nothing in so early a year as the year 1888, yet I was willing
-to pursue them because there was, in the eyes of the little old man, a
-look of such wisdom, kindness, and cunning as seemed to me a marriage
-between those things native to the earth and those things which are
-divine. I mean, that he seemed to me to have all that the good animals
-have, which wander about in the brushwood and are happy all their
-lives, and also all that we have, of whom it has been well said that
-of every thing which runs or creeps upon earth, man is the fullest
-of sorrow. For this little old man seemed to have (at least such was
-my fantastic thought in that early year) a complete acquiescence in
-the soil and the air that had bred him, and yet something common to
-mankind and a full foreknowledge of death.
-
-His face was of the sort which you will only see in England, being
-quizzical and vivacious, a little pinched together, and the hair on
-his head was a close mass of grey curls. His eyes were as bright as
-are harbour lights when they are first lit towards the closing of our
-winter evenings: they shone upon the daylight. His mouth was firm, but
-even in repose it permanently, though very slightly, smiled.
-
-I asked him why he took such pleasure in the view. He said it was
-because everything he saw was a part of his own country, and that just
-as some holy men said that to be united with God, our Author, was the
-end and summit of man’s effort, so to him who was not very holy, to
-mix, and have communion, with his own sky and earth was the one banquet
-that he knew: he also told me (which cheered me greatly) that alone of
-all the appetites this large affection for one’s own land does not grow
-less with age, but rather increases and occupies the soul. He then made
-me a discourse as old men will, which ran somewhat thus:--
-
-“Each thing differs from all others, and the more you know, the more
-you desire or worship one thing, the more does that stand separate: and
-this is a mystery, for in spite of so much individuality all things are
-one.... How greatly out of all the world stands out this object of my
-adoration and of my content! you will not find the like of it in all
-the world! It is England, and in the love of it I forget all enmities
-and all despairs.”
-
-He then bade me look at a number of little things around, and see how
-particular they were: the way in which the homes of Englishmen hid
-themselves, and how, although a great town lay somewhat to our right
-not half a march away, there was all about us silence, self-possession,
-and repose. He bade me also note the wind-blown thorns, and the
-yew-trees, bent over from centuries of the south-west wind, and the
-short, sweet grass of the Downs, unfilled and unenclosed, and the long
-waves of woods which rich men had stolen and owned, and which yet in a
-way were property for us all.
-
-“There is more than one,” said I in anger, “who so little understands
-his land that he will fence the woods about and prevent the people from
-coming and going: making a show of them, like some dirty town-bred
-fellow who thinks that the Downs and the woods are his villa-garden,
-bought with gold.”
-
-The little old man wagged his crooked forefinger in front of his face
-and looked exceedingly knowing with his bright eyes, and said: “Time
-will tame all that! Not they can digest the county, but the county
-them. Their palings shall be burnt upon cottage hearths, and their sons
-shall go back to be lackeys as their fathers were. But this landscape
-shall always remain.”
-
-Then he bade me note the tides and the many harbours; and how there was
-an inner and an outer tide, and the great change between neaps and
-springs, and how there were no great rivers, but every harbour stood
-right upon the sea, and how for the knowledge of each of these harbours
-even the life of a man was too short. There was no other country, he
-said, which was thus held and embraced by the mastery of the Atlantic
-tide. For the patient Dutch have their towns inland upon broad rivers
-and ships sail up to quays between houses or between green fields;
-and the Spaniards and the French (he said) are, for half their nature
-and tradition, taught by a tideless sea, but we all around have the
-tide everywhere, and with the tide there comes to character salt and
-variety, adventure, peril, and change.
-
-“But this,” I said, “is truer of the Irish.”
-
-He answered: “Yes, but I am talking of my own soil.”
-
-Then when he had been silent for a little while he began talking of the
-roads, which fitted into the folds of the hills, and of the low long
-window panes of men’s homes, of the deep thatch which covered them, and
-of that savour of fullness and inheritance which lay fruitfully over
-all the land. It gave him the pleasure to talk of these things which it
-gives men who know particular wines to talk of those wines, or men who
-have enjoyed some great risk together to talk together of their dangers
-overcome.
-
-It gave him the same pleasure to talk of England and of his corner of
-England that it gives some venerable people sometimes to talk of those
-whom they have loved in youth, or that it gives the true poets to
-mouth the lines of their immortal peers. It was a satisfaction to hear
-him say the things he said, because one knew that as he said them his
-soul was filled.
-
-He spoke also of horses and of the birds native to our Downs, but not
-of pheasants, which he hated and would not speak to me about at all.
-He spoke of dogs, and told me how the dogs of one countryside were the
-fruits of it, just as its climate and its contours were; notably the
-spaniel, which was designed or bred by the mighty power of Amberley
-Wildbrook, which breeds all watery things. He showed me how the plover
-went with the waste flats of Arun and of Adur and of Ouse, and he
-showed me why the sheep were white and why they bunched together in a
-herd. “Because,” he said, “the chalk pits and the clouds behind the
-Down are wide patches of white; so must the sheep be also.” For a
-little he would have told me that the very names of places, nay, the
-religion itself, were grown right out of the sacred earth which was our
-Mother.
-
- * * * * *
-
-These truths and many more I should have learned from him, these
-extravagences and some few others I should have whimsically heard, had
-I not (since I was young) attempted argument and said to him: “But all
-these things change, and what we love so much is, after all, only what
-we have known in our short time, and it is our souls within that lend
-divinity to any place, for, save within the soul, all is subject to
-time.”
-
-He shook his head determinedly and like one who knows. He did assure
-me that in a subtle mastering manner the land that bore us made us
-ourselves, and was the major and the dominant power which moulded, as
-with firm hands, the clay of our being and which designed and gave us,
-and continued in us, all the form in which we are.
-
-“You cannot tell this,” I said, “and neither can I; it is all guesswork
-to the brevity of man.”
-
-“You are wrong,” he answered quietly. “I have watched these things for
-quite 3000 years.” And before I had time to gasp at that word he had
-disappeared.
-
-
-
-
-The Long March
-
-
-The French Service, by some superstition of theirs which is probably
-connected with clear thinking and with decision, have perpetually in
-mind two things where Infantry is (or are) concerned; these two things
-are, marching power and carrying weight.
-
-It is their thesis, or rather it is their general opinion, that of
-all things in which civilised armies may differ the power of trained
-endurance is the most variable, and that the elements in which this
-endurance is most usefully manifested are the elements of bearing a
-weight for long and of marching for long and far between a sleep and a
-sleep.
-
-There is no Service in the world but would agree that rapidity of
-movement (other things being equal) is to the advantage of an army.
-Not even the Blue Water School (for which school armies are distant
-and vague things) would deny that. It is even true that most men
-(though by no means all) who have to do with thinking out military
-problems would admit that, other things again being equal, the power
-of carrying weight was an advantage to an army. But the French Service
-differs from its rivals in this, that it regards these two factors in
-a sort of fundamental way, testing the whole Army by them and keeping
-them perpetually present before the whole of that Army, so that the
-stupidest driver in front of the guns is worrying in a muddled way
-as to whether the Line have not too much to do, and the cleverest
-young captain on the staff is wondering whether the strain put upon
-a particular regiment has not been too great that day. The exercise
-is continual, and is made as much a part of the men’s mode of thought
-as cricket is made a part of the mode of thought of a boy at school,
-or as the daily paper is made a part of the mode of thought of a man
-who comes in daily from the suburbs to gamble in the City of London.
-And the French Service shows its permeation in the matter of these
-two ideas by this very characteristic test, that not only are the
-supporters of either element in the power of Infantry numerous and
-enthusiastic, but also that those (and I believe for a moment Negrier)
-who think these theories have been overdone recognise at the back of
-their minds the general importance of them; while the great neutral
-mass that sometimes discuss, but hardly ever think originally, take
-them as it were for granted in all their discussions.
-
-It would be possible to continue for some time the exposition of
-this most interesting thing; it would be possible to show how this
-point of view was connected with the conservatism of the French mind.
-It would be possible and fascinating perhaps to show the relation
-of such theories with the mentality which is convinced upon the
-retention of private property and upon the subdivision of it, upon the
-all-importance of agriculture to a State, upon the possession at no
-matter what sacrifice of a vast amount of vaulted, tangible, material
-gold. But my business in these lines is not to argue whether the French
-are right or wrong in this military aspect of their philosophy, nor to
-show them wise or unwise in regarding even the railways of a modern
-State as being only supplementary to marching power, and even the vast
-and mobile modern methods of road carriage as being only supplementary
-to the knapsack, which can go across ploughed fields or climb a tree.
-My business is not to discuss the philosophy of the thing, though I am
-grievously tempted to do so, but to speak of one particular thing I saw.
-
-I saw the beginning, the middle, and the end of it. Had I myself been
-in the Line such things might have been so familiar to me that they
-would not in the long run have stood out in my imagination, and I might
-not have been as fascinated as I now am by the recollections of that
-strange experience.
-
-The Infantry that was the support of our pieces (for we were
-Divisionary Artillery) was quartered near to us in a little village
-of what is called “the Champagne Pouilleuse,” that is, “the lousy,”
-or “the dusty” Champagne, to distinguish it from the chalky range of
-the mountain of Rheims, those hot slopes whereon is grown the grape
-producing the most northern and the most exhilarating of wines.
-
-In this little village were we side by side, and very far off along the
-horizon we had seen the night before, to the north, guns and linesmen
-together, the goal of our journey, which was that roll in the ground
-upon the summit of which the very tall spire of a famous shrine led the
-eye on toward the larger mass of the Cathedral. The Road was straight
-both upon the map and in our weary minds. It crossed the fields on
-which had been decided the fate of Christendom in the defeat of Attila
-and again in the cannonade of Valmy. Little we cared for these things.
-What we cared about, or rather what the fellows on foot cared about,
-was a distance of nearly thirty miles with fifty pound and more upon
-one’s back.
-
-I lay in the straw of the stable near my horses, whose names were Pacte
-and Basilique--Basilique was the elder one and was ridden, and Pacte
-was the led horse--when I heard the sound of a bugle. I was already
-awake, I cannot tell why, I had no duties; I strolled out from the
-stable into the square and watched the Line assembling. They were of
-all sorts and sizes in the dark morning, for the French are profoundly
-indifferent to making a squad look neat. Some shuffled, others ran,
-others affected to saunter to where the sergeant, with the roll in his
-hand and a lantern held above it, stood ready to call out the names. As
-they gathered to fall in I heard their comments, which were familiar
-enough, for they did not differ from the comments we also made when
-any effort was required of us. They cursed all order and discipline.
-Some boasted that the thing was not tolerable, and that they were the
-men to make the system impossible. Others cunningly hinted that they
-would deceive the doctor and fall out, and in general it would have
-been conceded by any man listening to them that this march could never
-be accomplished.
-
-With the usual oaths, dreadful to an intellectual ear, but to us a sort
-of atmosphere, they fell in, and all over the village square were other
-companies falling in and other sergeants holding other rolls. Then
-the names were called, with no trappings, in a rather low voice, and
-rapidly.
-
-One man was missing, and the sergeant looked round, saw me leaning
-against my stable door, and told me to go for the guard; but when I had
-got four men from the guard the missing man had come up. He was a very
-little man, in a hurry; he was not punished, he was warned. Hardly had
-I returned and hardly had the four men of the guard (who that day of
-the march were Cavalry) gone back straggling when the various companies
-shuffled into place, formed fours, and began the marching column. No
-drums rolled, no bugle inspirited them. The little village was now more
-clearly seen under a growing light, and there were bands of colour
-above the distant ridge of the Argonne. It was not quite four in the
-morning, and there was a mist from the meadows beside the road.
-
-They went out silently. There was a sort of step kept, but it was very
-loose. They sang no songs, they were a most unfortunate crowd.
-
- * * * * *
-
-We had been for two hours upon our horses, we who had started long
-after sunrise after our horses had been groomed and fed and watered,
-and treated like Christian men--for it was a saying of ours that the
-Republic was kinder to a horse than to a man, because a horse cost
-money. We had gone, I said, two hours also along the road, trotting and
-walking alternately, with the interminable clatter-clank-clank of the
-limber and the pieces behind us, and with the occasional oath of the
-sergeant or the corporal when a trace went loose or when a bit of bad
-riding on the part of some leader checked the column of guns; we had so
-pounded along into the heat of the day; the sun was beginning to offend
-us--we were more in a sweat than our horses--when we heard a long way
-off upon the road before us the faint noise of a song, and soon we saw
-from one of those recurring summits of the arrow-like French road, the
-jolly fellows of the Line. They were not more than a thousand yards
-before us; they made a little dust as they went, and as they went
-their rifles swinging on the shoulder gave them a false appearance
-of unity--for unity they were not caring at all. Somewhat before we
-reached them we saw their cohesion break, they became a doubled mob
-upon either side of the road, and we knew that they were making the
-regulation halt of five minutes, which is ordered at the end of every
-hour; but probably their commanding officer had somewhat advanced or
-retarded this in order to make a coincidence with the going by of the
-guns.
-
-We saw them as we approached lying in all attitudes upon either side
-of the road, some few munching bread from the haversack, and some
-few drinking from their gourds. As we came up they were compelled to
-rise to salute another arm upon its passage, and their faces, all
-their double hedge of faces, were full of insolence and of merriment,
-for they had recently sung and eaten, and the march had done them
-good--they had covered about eighteen miles.
-
-So we went by, and when we had left them some few hundred yards we
-again heard faintly behind us the beginning of a new song, the tune of
-which was known among us as “The Washerwoman.” It is a good marching
-song. But shortly after this we heard no more, for first the noise of
-the horse hoofs extinguished the singing, and later distance swallowed
-it up altogether.
-
- * * * * *
-
-We had come into quarters early in the afternoon, we had groomed our
-horses and fed them, and watered them at the chalkiest stream, we had
-brought them back to their stables, and the stable guard was set; those
-who were not on duty went off about the village, and several, of
-whom I was one, gathered in the house of a man whose relative in the
-regiment had led us thither.
-
-He received us well, for he was a farmer in a large way; he gave us
-wine, bread, and eggs, and a little bacon. He said he hoped that no
-more troops would come into the little village that day. We told him
-that the Line would come, so far as we knew, but he answered that he
-had heard from his brother, who was mayor of the adjoining commune,
-that the Line were to be quartered in that neighbouring parish, that
-they would march through the village in which we were, and sleep in the
-houses about a mile ahead of us upon the road to Rheims.
-
-While he was speaking thus we heard again, but much louder than before
-(for it came upon us round the corner of the village street), the noise
-of a marching song. They were singing at the top of their voices--they
-were in a sort of fury of singing.
-
-They passed along making more dust than ever before, and anyone who
-had not known them would have said they were out of hand. Several were
-limping as they went, one or two, recognising the gunners and the
-drivers, waved their hands. The rest still sang. No one had fallen out.
-Their arms they carried anyhow, and more than one man was carrying
-two rifles (probably for money), and more than one man was carrying
-none, and some had their rifles slung across their backs, and some
-tucked under their arms. So they went forward, and again we heard
-their singing dwindle, but this time it continued much longer than
-before, and I think we heard it up to the halt, when their task was
-accomplished and the march was done.
-
-They are an incredible people!
-
-
-
-
-On Saturnalia
-
-
-One of the bothers of writing is that words carry about upon their
-backs nowadays a great pack of past meanings and derivations, and
-that--particularly to-day--no word is standing still as it were and
-meaning something once and for all which a plain man can say without
-being laughed at for ignorance or for affectation. For instance,
-Saturnalia. To one man it means a certain bundle of ritual many
-centuries dead, common to a particular district of Italy and practised
-in midwinter. To another man it means a lot of poor people having an
-exaggerated beanfeast and thereby annoying the rich people. But it does
-not mean either of these things to the plain man. It means to the plain
-man occasion and specific occasion for turning things upside down and
-getting breathing space for a while from the crushing order of this
-world. That is what “Saturnalia” means to the ordinary user of the
-word, and note, he has no other word by which to express the idea--so
-thoroughly has the thing died out since modern English was formed.
-I suppose the nearest word for it in English--when such feasts were
-still known in England--was the vague word “Misrule.” Anyhow, it is
-Saturnalia now, and Saturnalia it shall be here.
-
-If a man were to come back from the past and watch the modern world
-into which he had tumbled he would note any number of things that
-would, I am certain, intoxicate him with wonder and delight. Just
-as one is intoxicated with wonder and delight on landing in youth
-upon the quays of a foreign port for the first time--that is, if the
-foreign port is well governed, for there is no wonder or delight either
-in barbarism or in decay. Such a man would be perpetually running
-to telephones, those curious toys, and marvelling at cinematographs
-and rejoicing in express trains and clear print and big guns and
-phonographs; he couldn’t help it. Motor-cars moving by themselves would
-fill him with magic--but he would bitterly mislike certain absences,
-and he would complain that half a dozen things were very wrong with the
-world. So many men free and yet owning nothing--so much the greater
-part of men free and yet owning nothing--would seem to him a monstrous
-and perilous thing. The exact and mechanical accuracy that clocks and
-railways have made would offend him; he would see it as a disease
-wearing out men’s nerves. The modern arguments all in a circle round
-and round the old insoluble problems would bore him dreadfully, and
-still more perhaps the fresh discoveries every week of principles and
-plain truths as old as the Mediterranean--but nothing surely would
-astonish him or grieve him or frighten him more than the absence of
-topsy-turvydom without some recurrent breath of which the soul of man
-perishes.
-
-And why? There is a question you may ask some time before it will be
-answered. One thing is sure, though the sureness of it reposes on some
-base we cannot see: in the proportion that men are secure of their
-philosophy and social scheme, in that proportion they must in some
-fixed manner turn it upside down from time to time for their delight
-and show it on a stage or enact it in a religious ritual with all
-its rules reversed and the whole thing wrong way about. They have
-always done this in healthy States, and if ever our State gets healthy
-they will begin to do it again. It is a human craving, an intense
-craving--but why, it would be a business to say.
-
-It must not be imagined that the craving or the expression of it has
-passed from us to-day. They have no more passed from us than the desire
-for property or for the tilling of the land. But their corporate
-character is broken up, they appear sporadically in individuals only,
-and are therefore often evil. They appear in the irony which is an
-increasing feature of our letters, in mad freaks and outbreaks for
-which men strained beyond bearing are punished, and they appear in
-fantastic prophecies of a changed world.
-
-One sees that craving for a burst of misrule in quite unexpected
-enthusiasms for things remote from our lives, in great senseless
-mobs furious about minor things--the minor actions of a campaign or
-the minor details of law-making--in the public clamour about the
-misfortunes of some foreign prisoner or the politics of some alien
-State. One sees it in the men who suddenly start rules of life based on
-some careful negation of what all around them do, in the leaders and
-teachers who first note exactly what nearly all their fellow-beings
-eat or drink or wear, and then most loudly proclaim salvation to
-lie in _not_ eating, drinking, or wearing these obviously necessary
-things. The neighbours stare! And no wonder--for private Saturnalia are
-dangerously near to vice in the sane, in the weak to insanity.
-
-But true Saturnalia, public Saturnalia, were healthy because they were
-corporate. Custom and religion had dug a sort of channel into which
-all that emotion could commonly run, and in midwinter, when it had
-long been very dark, the mischiefs, the comic spirits came out of the
-woods and for some days possessed the souls of men, and these, by that
-possession, were purged and freed. So it was for hundreds upon hundreds
-of years--until quite the modern time. Why have we lost it, and how
-long must we wait for it to return?
-
-When the relations of slave and master seemed as obvious and necessary
-as seem to us (let us say) the reading of a daily paper or the taking
-of a train, yet the obvious and necessary routine was broken in
-midwinter, the slave was the master for a moment and the master a slave.
-
-When the ritual of the Church was as much a commonplace as the ritual
-of social life is to us to-day, there was a season (it was this season
-between Christmas and the Epiphany) when the dead weight of order was
-lifted and a boy was dressed as a bishop or a donkey was put to chaunt
-the office, and the people sang:--
-
- Plebs autem respondet:
- Hé sire Ane, ho! Chantez!
- Vous aurez du foin assez
- Et de l’avoine à manger!
-
-When the awful authority of civil and hereditary powers was
-unquestioned they yet set up in English halls Lords of Misrule who
-governed that season. The Inns of Court, I believe, delighted in them,
-and certainly till quite late in the seventeenth century the peasantry
-of the villages.
-
-It has gone. It will return. During its absence (and may that absence
-not be much prolonged) perhaps one can see its nature the more
-clearly because one sees it from the outside and as a distant though
-a desired thing. Perhaps we, living in a very unreasonable age, when
-realities are forgotten and imaginaries preferred, when we solemnly
-reiterate impossibilities, affirm our faith in scientific guesswork
-and our doubts upon the plain rules of arithmetic, can understand
-why our much more reasonable fathers thirsted for and obtained these
-feasts of unreason. It seems to have been a little like the natural
-craving for temporary oblivion (sleep--a chaos) once in every day;
-a sort of bath in that muddle or nothingness out of which the world
-was made. Equality, which lies at the base of society, was brought
-to surface by a paradox and shown at large. Intensity of conviction
-and of organisation took refuge in the relief of a momentary--and not
-meant--denial of that conviction and organisation, and the whole of
-society collectively expanded its soul by one collective foolery at
-high pressure, as does the healthy individual by one good farce or peal
-of laughter when occasion serves.
-
-How the Saturnalia will return (as return they will) no one can say.
-The seeds of reaction from the tangle of the modern world lie all
-around in the customs and the demands of the populace: but seeds
-are never known or perceived till they have sprouted. Sometimes one
-catches the echo of the return in a chance jest; especially if it be a
-cabman’s. Sometimes in a solemn hoax largely indulged in by many poor
-men against one richer than themselves. Sometimes in the voluntary
-humour and cynical goodness of heart of a powerful or wealthy man
-exposing the illusions of his kind.
-
-Anyhow, one way or another, sooner or later, the Saturnalia will
-return; may it be sooner rather than later, and at the latest not later
-than 1938, when so many of us will be so very old.
-
-For my part I shall look for the first signs in the provinces of rich
-and riotous blood as on the Border (and especially just north of it)
-or in Flanders, or, better still, in Burgundy from Nuits and Beaune
-northward and eastward. I have especially great hopes of the town of
-Dijon.
-
-
-
-
-A Little Conversation in Herefordshire
-
-
-There is a country house (as the English phrase goes) in the County
-of Hereford, at a little distance from the River Wye; the people who
-live in this house are very rich. They are not rich precariously,
-nor with doubts here and there, nor for the time, but in a solid
-manner; that is, they believe their riches to be eternal. Their income
-springs from very many places, of which they have not an idea; it is
-spent in a straightforward manner, which they fully comprehend. It is
-spent in relieving the incompetence--the economic incompetence--of
-all those about them; in causing wine to come into England from Ay,
-Vosne, Barsac, and (though they do not know it) from the rougher soil
-of Algiers. It also causes (does the way in which they exercise what
-only pedants call their Potential Demand) tea to be grown in Ceylon
-for their servants and in China for themselves, horses to be bred in
-Ireland, and wheat to be sown and most laboriously garnered in Western
-Canada, Ohio, India, South Russia, the Argentine, and other places.
-Also, were you to seek out every economic cause and effect, you would
-find missionaries living where no man can live, save by artifice, and
-living upon artificial supply in a strange climate by the strength of
-this Potential Demand rooted in the meadows of the Welsh March.
-
-Then, also, if you were to follow the places whence their wealth is
-derived, it would interest you very much. You would see one man earning
-so much in the docks and handing on a Saturday evening so much of his
-wages into their fund. You would see another clipping off cloth in
-Manchester and offering it to them, and another plucking cotton in
-Egypt and exchanging it, at their order, against something which they,
-not he, needed. Altogether you would see the whole world paying tithe,
-and a stream flowing into Hereford as into a reservoir, and a stream
-flowing out again by many channels.
-
-These good people were at dinner; upon the 5th of October, to be
-accurate. Parliament had not yet met, but football had begun, and there
-was shooting, also a little riding upon horses, though this is not
-to-day a popular amusement, and few will practise it. As for the women,
-one wrote and the other read--which was a fair division of labour; but
-the woman who wrote was not read by the woman who read, for the woman
-who wrote (and she was the daughter) preferred to write upon problems.
-But her mother, who did the reading, preferred what is called fiction,
-and Mr. Meredith was a favourite author of hers; but, indeed, she would
-read all fiction so only that it was in her native tongue.
-
-Now the men of the family were very different from this, and the things
-they liked were hunting of a particular kind (which I shall not here
-describe), shooting of a similar kind, their country, and politics,
-which last interest it would have been abominable to deny them, for the
-two men, both father and son, were actively engaged in the making of
-laws, each in a different place; the laws they made (it is true in the
-company of, and with the advice of, others) are to be found in what is
-called the Statute Book, which neither you nor I have ever seen.
-
-All these four, the father, the son, the mother, and the daughter, in
-different ways intelligent, but all four very kind and good, were at
-dinner upon this day of which I speak, the 5th of October, but they
-were not alone. They had to meet them several people who were staying
-in the house. The one was a satirist who had been born in Lithuania.
-He was poor and proud and had learnt the English tongue, and he wrote
-books upon the pride of race and upon battling with the sea. He was an
-envious sort of man, but as he never had nor ever would have any home
-or lineage, England was much the same to him as any other place. He
-hated all our nations with an equal hatred.
-
-Another guest was a little man called Copp. He was a lord; his title
-was not Copp. Only his name was Copp, and even this name he hid, for
-old father Copp, who had married a Miss Billings in the eighteenth
-century, had had a son John Billings, since the Billings were richer
-than the Copps. And John Billings had married Mary Steyning, who was
-the Squire’s daughter, and they had had a son John Steyning, since
-John was by this time the hereditary name. Now John Steyning was in the
-Parliament that worked for the Regent, and a short one it was, and he
-became plain Lord Steyning, and then he and his son and his grandson
-married in all sorts of ways, and the title now was Bramber, but the
-family name was Steyning, and the real name was Copp. So much for
-Copp. He was as lively as a grig, he had travelled everywhere, and he
-knew about ten languages. He was peculiarly brave, and as a boy he had
-stoutly refused to go to the University.
-
-Then also there was the Doctor, who was absurdly nervous and could ill
-afford to dine out, and there was a young man who was in Parliament
-with the son of the family; this young man had been to Oxford with
-him also, not at Cambridge; he was a lawyer, and he was making three
-thousand pounds a year, but he said he was making six when he talked to
-his wife and mother, and most serious men believed that he was making
-ten. The women of these were also present with them, saving always that
-Copp, who was called Steyning, and whose title was Bramber, was not
-married.
-
-These then, sitting round the table, came to talk of something after
-all not remote from the interest of their lives. They talked of
-Socialists, and it all began by Copp (who called himself Steyning,
-while his title was Bramber) saying that his uncle Gwilliam had just
-missed being a Socialist because he was too stupid.
-
-The Head of the Family, who had most imperfectly caught the
-pronouncement of Copp as to his relative, said, “Yes, Bramber; got to
-be pretty stupid to be that!” By which the Head of the House meant that
-one had to be pretty stupid to be a Socialist, whereas what Copp had
-said was that his uncle had been too stupid to be a Socialist. But it
-was all one.
-
-The Son of the House said that there were lots of Socialists going
-about, and the young lawyer friend said there were a lot of people who
-said they were Socialists but who were not Socialists.
-
-The Daughter of the House said that it was very interesting the way in
-which Socialism went up and down. She said: “Look at the Fabians!” The
-Mother of the House looked all round, smiling genially, for she thought
-that her daughter was speaking of the name of a book.
-
-The Doctor said: “It’s all a pose, those sort of people.” But which
-sort he did not say, so the Daughter of the House said sharply: “Which
-sort of people?” For she loved to cross-examine struggling professional
-men, and the Doctor got quite red, and said; “Oh, all that sort of
-people!”
-
-The young lawyer, who was quick to see a difficulty, helped him out by
-saying, “He means people like Bensington!”
-
-The Doctor, who had never heard of Bensington, nodded eagerly, and
-the Head of the House, frowning a healthy frown, said, “What, not John
-Bensington, old William Bensington’s son?”
-
-“Yes,” said the young lawyer. “That’s the kind of man he means,” and
-the Doctor nodded again.
-
-His enemy was dropping farther and farther behind him with every
-stride, but she made a brilliant rally. “Do you mean John Bensington?”
-she said. The Doctor, in some alarm, and with his mouth full, nodded
-vigorously for the third time. The Head of the House, still frowning,
-broke into all this with a solid roar: “I don’t believe a word of
-it.” He sat leaning back again, not relaxing his frown and trying to
-connect the son of his old friend with a gang of treasonable robbers.
-He remembered Jock’s marriage--for it was a bad one--and a silly book
-of verses he had written, and how keen he had been against his father’s
-selling the bit of land along the coast, because it was bound to go up.
-He could fit Jock in with many unpleasant things, but he couldn’t fit
-him in with the very definite picture that rose in his mind whenever he
-heard the word “Socialist.” There was something adventurous and violent
-and lean about the word--something like a wolf. There was nothing of
-all that in Jock. So much thought matured at last into living words,
-and the Head of the House said, “Why, he’s on the County Council.”
-
-The Daughter of the House turned to the lawyer and said, “How would
-you define a Socialist, Mr. Layton?”
-
-Mr. Layton defined a Socialist, and his silent wife, who was sitting
-opposite, looked at him happily on account of the power of his mind.
-The Lithuanian, who had said nothing all this while, but had been
-glancing with eyes as bright as a bird’s, now at one speaker, now
-at another, nerved himself to intervene. Then there passed over his
-little soul the vivid pictures of things he had seen and known: the
-dens in Riga, the pain, the flight upon a Danish ship, the assumption
-first of German, then of English nationality, the easy gullibility of
-the large-hearted wealthy people of this land. He remembered his own
-confidence, his own unwavering talent, and his contempt of, and hatred
-for, other men. He could have trusted himself to speak, for he was in
-full command of his little soul, and there was not a trace of anything
-in his accent definitely foreign. But the virtue and the folly of these
-happy luxurious people about him pleased him too much and pleased him
-wickedly.
-
-He went on tasting them in silence, until the Daughter of the House,
-who felt awe for him alone of all those present--much more awe than she
-did for her strong and good father--said to him, almost with reverence,
-that he should take to writing now of the meadows of England, since he
-had so wonderfully described her battles at sea. And the Lithuanian
-was ready to turn the talk upon letters, his bright eyes darting all
-the while. The old man, the Head of the House, sighed and muttered:
-“Jock was no Socialist.” That was the one thing that he retained;
-... and meanwhile wealth continued to pour in from all corners of
-the world into his house, and to pour out again over the four seas,
-doing his will, and no one in the world, not even the chief victims
-of that wealth, hated it as the little Lithuanian did, and no one in
-the world--not even of them who had seen most of that wealth--hungered
-bestially for it as did he.
-
-
-
-
-On the Rights of Property
-
-
-There is in the dark heart of Soho, not far from a large stable
-where Zebras, Elephants, and trained Ponies await their turn for the
-footlights and the inebriation of public applause, a little tavern,
-divided, as are even the meanest of our taverns, into numerous
-compartments, each corresponding to some grade in the hierarchy of our
-ancient and orderly society.
-
-For many years the highest of these had been called “the Private
-Bar,” and was distinguished from its next fellow by this, that the
-cushions upon its little bench were covered with sodden velvet, not
-with oilcloth. Here, also, the drink provided by the politician who
-owned this and many other public-houses was served in glasses of
-uncertain size and not by imperial measure. This, I say, had been the
-chief or summit of the place for many years; from the year of the
-great Exhibition, in fact until that great change in London life which
-took place towards the end of the eighties and brought us, among other
-things, a new art and a new conception of world-wide power. In those
-years, as the mind of London changed so did this little public-house
-(which was called “the Lord Benthorpe”), and it added yet another step
-to its hierarchy of pens. This new place was called “the Saloon Bar.”
-It was larger and better padded, and there was a tiny table in it.
-Then the years went on and wars were fought and the modern grip of man
-over natural forces marvellously extended, and the wealth of a world’s
-Metropolis greatly swelled, and “The Lord Benthorpe” found room for yet
-another and final reserve wherein it might receive the very highest of
-its clients. This was built upon what had been the backyard, it had
-several tables, and it was called “the Lounge.”
-
-So far so good. Here late one evening when the music-halls had just
-discharged their thousands, and when the Elephants, the Zebras, and
-the Ponies near by were retiring to rest, sat two men, both authors;
-the one was an author who had written for now many years upon social
-subjects, and notably upon the statistics of our industrial conditions.
-He had come nearer than any other to the determination of the Incidence
-of Economic Rent upon Retail Exchange and had been the first to show
-(in an essay, now famous) that the Ricardian Theory of Surplus did not
-apply in the anarchic competition of Retail Dealing, at least in our
-main thoroughfares.
-
-His companion wielded the pen in another manner. It was his to analyse
-into its last threads of substance the human mind. Rare books proceeded
-from him at irregular and lengthy intervals packed with a close
-observation of the ultimate motives of men and an exact portrayal
-of their labyrinth of deed; nor could he achieve his ideal in this
-province of letters save by the use of words so unusual and, above all,
-arranged in an order so peculiar to himself, as to bring upon his few
-readers often perplexity and always awe.
-
-Neither of these two men was wealthy. Such incomes as they gained had
-not even that quality of regular flow which, more than mere volume,
-impresses the years with security. Each was driven to continual
-expedients, and each had lost such careful habits as only a regular
-supply can perpetuate. The consequence of this impediment was
-apparent in the clothing of both men and in the grooming of each;
-for the Economist, who was the elder, wore a frock-coat unsuited to
-the occasion, marked in many places with lighter patches against its
-original black, and he had upon his head a top hat of no great age and
-yet too familiar and rough, and dusty at the brim. The Psychologist,
-upon the other hand, sprawled in a suit of wool, grey and in places
-green, which was most slipshod and looked as though at times he slept
-in it, which indeed at times he did. Unlike his elder companion he wore
-no stiff collar round his throat, a negligence which saved him from
-the reproach of frayed linen worn through too many days; his shirt
-was a grey woollen shirt with a grey woollen collar of such a sort as
-scientific men assure us invigorates the natural functions and prolongs
-the life of man.
-
-These two fell at once to a discussion upon that matter which absorbs
-the best of modern minds. I mean the organisation of Production in
-the modern world. It was their favourite theme. Their drink was Port,
-which, carelessly enough, they continued to order in small glasses
-instead of beginning boldly with the bottle. The Port was bad, or
-rather it was not Port, yet had they bought one bottle of it they would
-have saved the earnings of many days.
-
-It was their favourite theme.... Each was possessed of an intellectual
-scorn for the mere ritual of an older time; neither descended to an
-affirmation nor even condescended to a denial of private property. Both
-clearly saw that no organised scheme of production could exist under
-modern conditions unless its organisation were to be controlled by the
-community. Yet the two friends differed in one most material point,
-which was the possibility, men being what they were, of settling thus
-the control of _machinery_. Upon land they were agreed. The land must
-necessarily be made a national thing, and the conception of ownership
-in it, however limited, was, as a man whom they both revered had put
-it, “unthinkable.” Indeed, they recognised that the first steps towards
-so obvious a reform were now actually taken, and they confidently
-expected the final processes in it to be the work of quite the next
-few years; but whereas the Economist, with his profound knowledge of
-external detail, could see no obstacle to the collective control of
-capital as well, the Psychologist, ever dwelling upon the inner springs
-of action, saw no hope, no, not even for so evident and necessary a
-scheme, save in some ideal despotism of which he despaired. In vain
-did the Economist point out that our great railways, our mines, the
-main part of our shipping, and even half our textile industry had
-now no personal element in their direction save that of the salaried
-management; the Psychologist met him at every move with the effect
-produced upon man by the mere illusion of a personal element in all
-these things. The Economist, not a little inspired as the evening
-deepened, remembered and even invented names, figures, cases that
-showed the growing unity of the industrial world; the Psychologist
-equally inspired, and with an equal increase of fervour, drew picture
-after picture, each more vivid and convincing than the last, of
-man caught in the tangle of imaginary motive and unobedient to any
-industrial control, unless that control could by some miracle be given
-the quality of universal tyranny.
-
-Music was added to their debate, and subtly changed, as it must always
-change, the colour of thought. In the street without a man with a
-fine baritone voice, which evidently he had failed through vice or
-carelessness to exploit with success, sang songs of love and war,
-and at his side there accompanied him a little organ upon wheels
-which a weary woman played. The rich notes of his voice filled “The
-Lord Benthorpe” through the opened windows of that hot night, and
-drowned or modified the differences of cabmen and others in the Public
-Bar; as he sang the two disputants rose almost to the lyric in their
-enthusiasm, the one for the new world that was so soon to be, the other
-for that gloomy art of his by which he read the hearts of men and saw
-their doom.
-
- * * * * *
-
-It has been remarked by many that we mortals are surrounded by
-coincidence, and least observe Fate at its nearest approach, so that
-friends meet or leave us unexpectedly, and that the accidents of
-our lives make part of a continual play. So it was with these two.
-For as they warmly debated, and one of them had upset and broken
-his glass while the other lay back repeating again and again some
-favourite phrase, a third was on his way to meet them. A man much
-older than either, a man who did nothing at all and lived when his
-sister remembered him, was in that neighbourhood, vaguely wandering
-and feeling in every pocket for a coin. His hand trembled with age,
-and also a little with anxiety, but to his great joy he felt at last
-through the lining of his coat a large round hardness, and very
-carefully searching through a tear, and aided by the light that shone
-from the windows of “The Lord Benthorpe,” he discovered and possessed
-half a crown. With that he entered in, for he knew that his friends
-were there. In what respect he held them, their accomplishments, and
-their public fame, I need not say, for that respect is always paid by
-the simple to the learned. He sat by them at the little table, drinking
-also, and for some minutes listened to their stream of affirmation and
-of vision, but soon he shook his head in a quavering senile way, as
-he very vaguely caught the drift of their contention. “You’ve got the
-wrong end of the stick,” he said.... “You’ve got the wrong end of the
-stick!... Can’t take away what a man’s got ... ’tis _wrawng_!... ’Vide
-it up, all the same next week.... Same hands! Same hands!” he went on
-foolishly wagging his head, and still smiling almost like an imbecile.
-“All in the same hands again in a week!... ’Vide it up ever so much.”
-They neglected him and continued their ardent debate, and as they flung
-repeated bolts of theory he, their new companion, still murmured to
-himself the security of established things and the ancient doctrine of
-ownership and of law.
-
-But now the night and the stars had come to their appointed hour,
-and the ending which is decreed of all things had come also to their
-carousal. A young man of energy stood before them in his shirt sleeves,
-crying, “Time, Time!” as a voice might cry “Doom!” and, by force of
-crying and of orders, “The Lord Benthorpe” was emptied, and there was
-silence at last behind its shutters and its bolted doors.
-
-These three, not yet in a mood for sleep, sauntered together westward
-through the vast landed estates of London, westward, to their distant
-homes.
-
-
-
-
-The Economist
-
-
-A gentleman possessing some three thousand acres of land, the most
-of it contiguous, one field with another, or, as he himself, his
-agent, his bailiff, his wife, his moneylender, and others called it,
-“in a ring fence,” was in the habit of asking down to the country at
-Christmas time some friend or friends, though more usually a friend
-than friends, because the income he received from the three thousand
-acres of land had become extremely small.
-
-He was especially proud of those of his friends who lived neither by
-rent from land nor from the proceeds of their business, but by mental
-activity in some profession, and of none was he prouder than of an
-Economist whom he had known for more than forty years; for they had
-been at school together and later at college. Now this Economist was
-a very hearty, large sort of a man, and he made an amply sufficient
-income by writing about economics and by giving economic advice in the
-abstract to politicians, and economic lectures and expert economic
-evidence; in fact, there was no limit to his earnings except that
-imposed by time and the necessity for sleep. He was not married and
-could spend all his earnings upon himself--which he did. He was
-tall, lean, and active, with bright vivacious eyes and an upstanding
-manner. He had two sharp and healthy grey whiskers upon either side of
-his face; his hair was also grey but curly; and altogether he was a
-vigorous fellow. There was nothing in economic science hidden from him.
-
-This Economist, therefore, and his friend the Squire (who was a short,
-fat, and rather doleful man) were walking over the wet clay land which
-one of them owned and on which the other talked. There was a clinging
-mist of a very light sort, so that you could not see more than about
-a mile. The trees upon that clay were small and round, and from their
-bare branches and twigs the mist clung in drops; where the bushes were
-thick and wherever evergreens afforded leaves, these drops fell with
-a patter that sounded almost like rain. There were no hills in the
-landscape and the only thing that broke the roll of the clay of the
-park land was the house, which was called a castle; and even this they
-could not see without turning round, for they were walking away from
-it. But even to look at this house did not raise the heart, for it was
-very hideous and had been much neglected on account of the lessening
-revenue from the three thousand acres of land. Great pieces of plaster
-had fallen off, nor had anything been continually repaired except the
-windows.
-
-The Economist strode and the Squire plodded on over the wet grass, and
-it gave the Squire pleasure to listen to the things which the Economist
-said, though these were quite incomprehensible to him. They came to
-a place where, after one had pushed through a tall bramble hedge and
-stuck in a very muddy hidden ditch, one saw before one on the farther
-side, screened in everywhere and surrounded by a belt or frame of low,
-scraggy trees and stunted bushes, a large deserted field. In colour
-it was very pale green and brown; myriads of dead thistles stood in
-it; there were nettles, and, in the damper hollows, rushes growing.
-The Economist took this field and turned his voluble talk upon it. He
-appreciated that much he said during their walk, being sometimes of an
-abstract and always of a technical nature, had missed the mind of his
-friend; he therefore determined upon a concrete instance and waved his
-vigorous long arm towards the field and said:
-
-“Now, take this field, for instance.”
-
-“Yes,” said the Squire humbly.
-
-“Now, this field,” said the Economist, “_of itself_ has no value at
-all.”
-
-“No,” said the Squire.
-
-“_That_,” said the Economist with increasing earnestness, tapping one
-hand with two fingers of the other, “that’s what the layman must seize
-first ... every error in economics comes from not appreciating that
-things in themselves have no value. For instance,” he went on, “you
-would say that a diamond had value, wouldn’t you ... a large diamond?”
-
-The Squire, hoping to say the right thing, said: “I suppose not.”
-
-This annoyed the Economist, who answered a little testily: “I don’t
-know what you mean. What _I_ mean is that the diamond has no value in
-itself....”
-
-“I see,” broke in the Squire, with an intelligent look, but the
-Economist went on rapidly as though he had not spoken:
-
-“It only has a value because it has been transposed in some way from
-the position where man could not use it to a position where he can.
-Now, you would say that land could not be transposed, but it can be
-made from _less_ useful to man, _more_ useful to man.”
-
-The Squire admitted this, and breathed a deep breath.
-
-“Now,” said the Economist, waving his arm again at the field, “take
-this field, for instance.”
-
-There it lay, silent and sullen under the mist. There was no noise of
-animals in the brakes, the dirty boundary stream lay sluggish and dead,
-and the rank weeds had lost all colour. One could note the parallel
-belts of rounded earth where once--long, long ago--this field had been
-ploughed. No other evidence was there of any activity at all, and it
-looked as though man had not seen it for a hundred years.
-
-“Now,” said the Economist, “what is the value of this field?”
-
-The Squire had begun his answer, when his friend interrupted him
-testily. “No, no, no; I don’t want to ask about your private affairs;
-what I mean is, what is it builds up the economic value of this field?
-It is not the earth itself; it is the use to which man puts it. It is
-the crops and the produce which he makes it bear and the advantage
-which it has over other neighbouring fields. It is the _surplus value_
-which makes it give you a rent. What gives _this_ field its value is
-the competition among the farmers to get it.”
-
-“But----” began the Squire.
-
-The Economist with increasing irritation waved him down. “Now, listen,”
-he said; “the worst land has only what is called prairie value.”
-
-The Squire would eagerly have asked the meaning of this, for it
-suggested coin, but he thought he was bound to listen to the remainder
-of the story.
-
-“That is only true,” said the Economist, “of the worst land. There _is_
-land on which no profit could be made; it neither _makes_ nor loses. It
-is on what we call the _margin of production_.”
-
-“What about rates?” said the Squire, looking at that mournful stretch,
-all closed in and framed with desolation, and suggesting a thousand
-such others stretching on to the boundaries of a deserted world.
-
-How various are the minds of men! That little word “rates”--it has but
-five letters; take away the “e” and it would have but four--and what
-different things does it not mean to different men! To one man the
-pushing on of his shop just past the edge of bankruptcy; to another the
-bother of writing a silly little cheque; to another the brand of the
-Accursed Race of our time--the pariahs, the very poor. To this Squire
-it meant the dreadful business of paying a great large sum out of an
-income that never sufficed for the bare needs of his life ... to tell
-the truth, he always borrowed money for the rates and paid it back out
-of the next half year ... he had such a lot of land in hand. Years
-ago, when farms were falling in, in the eighties, a friend of his, a
-practical man, who went in for silos and had been in the Guards and
-knew a lot about French agriculture, had told him it would pay him to
-have his land in hand, so when the farms fell in he consoled himself by
-what the friend had said; but all these years had passed and it had not
-paid him.
-
-Now to the Economist this little word “rates” suggested the hardest
-problem--the perhaps insoluble problem--of applied economics in our
-present society. He turned his vivacious eyes sharply on to the Squire
-and stepped out back for home, for the Castle. For a little time
-he said nothing, and the Squire, honestly desiring to continue the
-conversation, said again as he plodded by his friend’s side, “What
-about rates?”
-
-“Oh, they’ve nothing to do with it!” said the Economist, a little
-snappishly. “The proportionate amount of surplus produce demanded
-by the community does not affect the basic process of production. Of
-course,” he added, in a rather more conciliatory tone, “it _would_ if
-the community demanded the total unearned increment and _then_ proposed
-taxes beyond that limit. _That_, I have always said, would affect the
-whole nature of production.”
-
-“Oh!” said the Squire.
-
-By this time they were nearing the Castle, and it was already dusk;
-they were silent during the last hundred yards as the great house
-showed more definitely through the mist, and the Economist could note
-upon the face of it the coat-of-arms with which he was familiar. They
-had been those of his host’s great-grandfather, a solicitor who had
-foreclosed. These arms were of stucco. Age and the tempest had made
-them green, and the head of that animal which represented the family
-had fallen off.
-
-They went into the house, they drank tea with the rather worried but
-well-bred hostess of it, and all evening the Squire’s thoughts were of
-his two daughters, who dressed exactly alike in the local town, and
-whose dresses were not yet paid for, and of his son, whose schooling
-was paid for, but whose next term was ahead: the Squire was wondering
-about the extras. Then he remembered suddenly, and as suddenly put out
-of his mind by an effort of surprising energy in such a man, the date
-February 3rd, on which he must get a renewal or pay a certain claim.
-
-They sat at table; they drank white fizzy wine by way of ritual, but it
-was bad. The Economist could not distinguish between good wine and bad,
-and all the while his mind was full of a very bothersome journey to the
-North, where he was to read a paper to an institute upon “The Reaction
-of Agricultural Prosperity upon Industrial Demand.” He was wondering
-whether he could get them to change the hour so that he could get back
-by a train that would put him into London before midnight. And all this
-cogitation which lay behind the general talk during dinner and after it
-led him at last to say: “Have you a ‘Bradshaw’?”
-
-But the Squire’s wife had no “Bradshaw.” She did not think they could
-afford it. However, the eldest daughter remembered an old “Bradshaw” of
-last August, and brought it, but it was no use to the Economist.
-
- * * * * *
-
-How various is man! How multiplied his experience, his outlook, his
-conclusions!
-
-
-
-
-A Little Conversation in Carthage
-
-
-HANNO: Waiter! Get me a copy of _The Times_. [_Mutters to himself.
-The waiter brings the copy of_ The Times. _As he gives it to Hanno he
-collides with another member of the Club, and that member, already
-advanced in years, treads upon Hanno’s foot._]
-
-HANNO: Ah! Ah! Ah!... Oh! [_with a grunt_]. Bethaal, it’s you, is it?
-
-BETHAAL: Gouty?
-
-HANNO [_after saying nothing for some time_]: ’Xtraordinary thing....
-Nothing in the papers.
-
-BETHAAL: Nothing odd about that! [_He laughs rather loudly, and
-Hanno, who wishes he had said the witty thing, smirks gently without
-enthusiasm. Then he proceeds on another track._] I find plenty in the
-papers! [_He puffs like a grampus._]
-
-HANNO: Plenty about yourself!... That’s the only good of politics, and
-precious little good either.... What I can’t conceive--as you _do_
-happen to be the in’s and not the out’s--is why you don’t send more men
-from somewhere; he has asked for them often enough.
-
-BETHAAL [_wisely_]: They’re all against it; couldn’t get anyone to
-agree but little Schem [_laughs loudly_]; he’d agree to anything.
-
-HANNO [_wagging his head sagely_]: He’ll be Suffete, my boy! He’ll be a
-Sephad all right! He’s my sister’s own boy.
-
-BETHAAL [_surlily_]: Shouldn’t wonder! All you Hannos get the pickings.
-
-HANNO: You talk like a book.... Anyhow, what about the
-reinforcements?--that _does_ interest me.
-
-BETHAAL [_wearily_]: Oh, really. I’ve heard about it until I’m tired.
-It isn’t the reinforcements that are wanted really; it’s money, and
-plenty of it. That’s what it is. [_He looks about the room in search
-for a word._] That’s what it is. [_He continues to look about the
-room._] That’s what it is ... er ... really. [_Having found the word
-Bethaal is content, and Hanno remains silent for a few minutes, then_:]
-
-HANNO: He doesn’t seem to be doing much.
-
-BETHAAL [_jumping up suddenly with surprising vigour for a man of close
-on seventy, and sticking his hands into his pockets, if Carthaginians
-had pockets_]: That’s it! That’s exactly it! That’s what I say, What
-Hannibal really wants is money. He’s got the _men_ right enough. The
-_men_ are splendid, but all those putrid little Italian towns are
-asking to be bribed, and I _can’t_ get the money out of Mohesh.
-
-HANNO [_really interested_]: Yes, now? Mohesh has got the old
-tradition, and I do believe it’s the sound one. Our money is as
-important to us as our Fleet, I mean our _credit’s_ as important to
-us as our Fleet, and he’s perfectly right is Mohesh.... [_Firmly_] I
-wouldn’t let you have a penny if I were at the Treasury.
-
-BETHAAL [_surlily_]: Well, he’s bound to take Rome at last anyway, so I
-don’t suppose it matters whether he has the money or not; but it makes
-_me_ look like a fool. When everything was going well I didn’t care,
-but I do care now. [_He holds up in succession three fat fingers_].
-First there was Drephia----
-
-HANNO [_interrupting_]: Trebbia.
-
-BETHAAL: Oh, well, I don’t care.... Then there was Trasimene; then
-there was that other place which wasn’t marked on the map, and little
-Schem found for me in the very week in which I got him on to the Front
-Bench. You remember his speech?
-
-[HANNO _shakes his head_.]
-
-BETHAAL [_impatiently_]: Oh well, anyhow you remember Cannae, don’t you?
-
-HANNO: Oh yes, I remember Cannae.
-
-BETHAAL: Well, he’s bound to win. He’s bound to take the place, and
-then [_wearily_], then, as poor old Hashuah said at the Guildhall,
-“Annexation will be inevitable.”
-
-HANNO: Now, look here, may I put it to you shortly?
-
-BETHAAL [_in great dread_]: All right.
-
-HANNO [_leaning forward in an earnest way, and emphasising what he
-says_]: All you men who get at the head of a Department only think
-of the work of that Department. That’s why you talk about Hannibal’s
-being bound to win. Of course he’s bound to win; but Carthage all
-hangs together, and if he wins at too great a price in money _you’re_
-weakened, and your _son_ is weakened, and _all_ of us are weakened. We
-shall be paying five per cent where we used to pay four. Things don’t
-go in big jumps; they go in gradations, and I do assure you that if you
-don’t send more men----
-
-BETHAAL [_interrupting impatiently_]: Oh, curse all that! One can
-easily see where _you_ were brought up; you smell of Athens like a
-Don, and you make it worse by living out in the country, reading books
-and publishing pamphlets and putting people’s backs up for nothing. If
-you’d ever been in politics--I mean, if you hadn’t got pilled by three
-thousand at....
-
-[_At this moment an obese and exceedingly stupid Carthaginian of the
-name of Matho strolls into the smoking-room of the club, sees the two
-great men, becomes radiant with a mixture of reverence, admiration, and
-pride of acquaintance, and makes straight for them._]
-
-HANNO: Who on earth’s that? Know him?
-
-BETHAAL [_in a whisper astonishingly vivacious and angry for so old a
-man_]: Shut your mouth, can’t you? He’s the head of my association!
-He’s the Mayor of the town!
-
-MATHO: Room for little un? [_He laughs genially and sits down,
-obviously wanting an introduction to Hanno._]
-
-BETHAAL [_nervously_]: I haven’t seen you for ages, my dear fellow! I
-hope Lady Matho’s better? [_Turning to Hanno_] Do you know Lady Matho?
-
-HANNO [_gruffly_]: Lady _Who_?
-
-BETHAAL [_really angry, and savage on that half of his face which is
-turned towards Hanno_]: This gentleman’s wife!
-
-MATHO [_showing great tact and speaking very rapidly in order to bridge
-over an unpleasant situation_]: Wonderful chap this Hannibal! Dogged
-does it! No turning back! Once that man puts his hand to the plough he
-won’t take it off till he’s [_tries hard, and fails to remember what a
-plough does--then suddenly remembering_] till he’s finished his furrow.
-That’s where blood tells! Same thing in Tyre, same thing in Sidon, same
-thing in Tarshish; I don’t care who it is, whether it’s poor Barca, or
-that splendid old chap Mohesh, whom they call “Sterling Dick.” They’ve
-all got the blood in them, and they don’t know when they’re beaten.
-Now [_as though he had something important to say which had cost him
-years of thought_], shall I tell you what I think produces men like
-Hannibal? I don’t think it’s the climate, though there’s a lot to be
-said for _that_. And I don’t think it’s the sea, though there’s a lot
-to be said for _that_. I think it’s our old Carthaginian home-life
-[_triumphantly_]. That’s what it is! It isn’t even hunting, though
-there’s a lot to be said for that. It’s the old---- [_Hanno suddenly
-gets up and begins walking away._]
-
-BETHAAL [_leaning forwards to Matho_]: Please don’t mind my cousin.
-You know he’s a little odd when he meets anyone for the first time;
-but he’s a really good fellow at heart, and he’ll help anyone. But,
-of course [_smiling gently_], he doesn’t understand politics any more
-than---- [_Matho waves his hand to show that he understands._] But such
-a good fellow! Do you know Lady Hanno? [_They continue talking, chiefly
-upon the merits of Hannibal, but also upon their own._]
-
-
-
-
-The Strange Companion
-
-
-It was in Lichfield, now some months ago, that I stood by a wall that
-flanks the main road there and overlooks a fine wide pond, in which you
-may see the three spires of the Cathedral mirrored.
-
-As I so gazed into the water and noted the clear reflection of the
-stonework a man came up beside me and talked in a very cheery way.
-He accosted me with such freedom that he was very evidently not from
-Europe, and as there was no insolence in his freedom he was not a
-forward Asiatic either; besides which, his face was that of our own
-race, for his nose was short and simple and his lips reasonably thin.
-His eyes were full of astonishment and vitality. He was seeing the
-world. He was perhaps thirty-five years old.
-
-I would not say that he was a Colonial, because that word means so
-little; but he talked English in that accent commonly called American,
-yet he said he was a Brittishur, so what he was remains concealed;
-but surely he was not of this land, for, as you shall presently see,
-England was more of a marvel to him than it commonly is to the English.
-
-He asked me, to begin with, the name of the building upon our left, and
-I told him it was the Cathedral, to which his immediate answer was,
-was I sure? How could there be a cathedral in such a little town?
-
-I said that it just was so, and I remembered the difficulty of the
-explanation and said no more. Then he looked up at the three spires and
-said: “Wondurful; isn’t it?” And I said: “Yes.”
-
-Then I said to him that we would go in, and he seemed very willing; so
-we went towards the Close, and as we went he talked to me about the
-religion of those who served the Cathedral, and asked if they were
-Episcopalian, or what. So this also I told him. And when he learnt that
-what I told him was true of all the other cathedrals, he said heartily:
-“Is thet so?” And he was silent for half a minute or more.
-
-We came and stood by the west front, and looked up at the height of it,
-and he was impressed.
-
-He wagged his head at it and said: “Wondurful, isn’t it?” And then he
-added: “Marvlurs how they did things in those old days!” but I told him
-that much of what he was looking at was new.
-
-In answer to this (for I fear that his honest mind was beginning to be
-disturbed by doubt), he pointed to the sculptured figures and said that
-they were old, as one could see by their costumes. And as I thought
-there might be a quarrel about it, I did not contradict; but I let him
-go wandering round to the south of it until he came to the figure of
-a knight with a moustache, gooseberry eyes, and in general a face so
-astoundingly modern that one did not know what to say or do when one
-looked at it. It was expressionless.
-
-My companion, who had not told me his name, looked long and
-thoughtfully at this figure, and then came back, more full of time
-and of the past of our race than ever; he insisted upon my coming
-round with him and looking at the image. He told me that we could not
-do better than that nowadays with all our machinery, and he asked me
-whether a photograph could be got of it. I told him yes, without doubt,
-and what was better, perhaps the sculptor had a duplicate, and that we
-would go and find if this were so, but he paid no attention to these
-words.
-
-The amount of work in the building profoundly moved this man, and he
-asked me why there was so much ornament, for he could clearly estimate
-the vast additional expense of working so much stone that might have
-been left plain; though I am certain, from what I gathered of his
-character, he would not have left any building wholly plain, not even
-a railway station, still less a town hall, but would have had here and
-there an allegorical figure as of Peace or of Commerce--the figure
-of an Abstract Idea. Still he was moved by such an excess of useless
-labour as stood before him. Not that it did not give him pleasure--it
-gave him great pleasure--but that he thought it enough and more than
-enough.
-
-We went inside. I saw that he took off his hat, a custom doubtless
-universal, and, what struck me much more, he adopted within the
-Cathedral a tone of whisper, not only much lower than his ordinary
-voice, but of quite a different quality, and I noticed that he was
-less erect as he walked, although his head was craned upward to look
-towards the roof. The stained glass especially pleased him, but there
-was much about it he did not understand. I told him that there could be
-seen there a copy of the Gospels of great antiquity which had belonged
-to St. Chad; but when I said this he smiled pleasantly, as though I
-had offered to show him the saddle of a Unicorn or the tanned skin of
-a Hippogriff. Had we not been in so sacred a place I believe he would
-have dug me in the ribs. “St. _Who_?” he whispered, looking slily
-sideways at me as he said it. “St. Chad,” I said. “He was the Apostle
-to Mercia.” But after that I could do no more with him. For the word
-“Saint” had put him into fairyland, and he was not such a fool as to
-mix up a name like Chad with one of the Apostles; and Mercia is of
-little use to men.
-
-However, there was no quarrelsomeness about him, and he peered at the
-writing curiously, pointing out to me that the letters were quite
-legible, though he could not make out the words which they spelled,
-and very rightly supposed it was a foreign language. He asked a little
-suspiciously whether it was the Gospel, and accepted the assurance that
-it was; so that his mind, sceptical to excess in some matters, found
-its balance by a ready credence in others and remained sane and whole.
-He was again touched by the glass in the Lady Chapel, and noted that
-it was of a different colour to the other and paler, so that he liked
-it less. I told him it was Spanish, and this apparently explained the
-matter to him, for he changed his face at once and began to give me the
-reason of its inferiority.
-
-He had not been in Spain, but he had evidently read much about the
-country, which was moribund. He pointed out to me the unnatural
-attitude of the figures in this glass, and contrasted its half-tones
-with the full-blooded colours of the modern work behind us, and he was
-particularly careful to note the irregularity of the lettering and
-the dates in this glass compared with the other which had so greatly
-struck him. I was interested in his fixed convictions relative to the
-Spaniards, but just as I was about to question him further upon that
-race I began to have my doubts whether the glass were not French. It
-was plainly later than the Reformation, and I should have guessed the
-end of the sixteenth or beginning of the seventeenth century. But I
-hid the misgiving in my heart, lest the little trust in me which my
-companion still had should vanish altogether.
-
-We went out of the great building slowly, and he repeatedly turned to
-look back up it, and to admire the proportions. He asked me the exact
-height of the central spire, and as I could not tell him this I felt
-ashamed, but he told me he would find it in a book, and I assured him
-this could be done with ease. The visit had impressed him deeply; it
-may be he had not seen such things before, or it may be that he was
-more at leisure to attend to the details which had been presented to
-him. This last I gathered on his telling me, as we walked towards the
-Inn, that he had had no work to do for two days, but that same evening
-he was to meet a man in Birmingham, by whom, he earnestly assured
-me, he was offered opportunities of wealth in return for so small
-an investment of capital as was negligible, and here he would have
-permitted me also to share in this distant venture, had I not, at some
-great risk to that human esteem without which we none of us can live,
-given him clearly to understand that his generosity was waste of time,
-and that for the reason that there was no money to invest. It impressed
-him much more sharply than any plea of judgment or of other investments
-could have done.
-
-Though I had lost very heavily by permitting myself such a confession
-to him, he was ready to dine with me at the Inn before taking his
-train, and as he dined he told me at some length the name of his native
-place, which was, oddly enough, that of a great German statesman,
-whether Bismarck or another I cannot now remember; its habits and its
-character he also told me, but as I forgot to press him as to its
-latitude or longitude to this day I am totally ignorant of the quarter
-of the globe in which it may lie.
-
-During our meal it disturbed him to see a bottle of wine upon the
-table, but he was careful to assure me that when he was travelling he
-did not object to the habits of others, and that he would not for one
-moment forbid the use in his presence of a beverage which in his native
-place (he did not omit to repeat) would be as little tolerated as any
-other open temptation to crime. It was a wine called St. Emilion, but
-it no more came from that Sub-Prefecture than it did from the hot
-fields of Barsac; it was common Algerian wine, watered down, and--if
-you believe me--three shillings a bottle.
-
-I lost my companion at nine, and I have never seen him since, but he is
-surely still alive somewhere, ready, and happy, and hearty, and noting
-all the things of this multiple world, and judging them with a hearty
-common sense, which for so many well fills the place of mere learning.
-
-
-
-
-The Visitor
-
-
-As I was going across Waterloo Bridge the other day, and when I had got
-to the other side of it, there appeared quite suddenly, I cannot say
-whence, a most extraordinary man.
-
-He was dressed in black silk, he had a sort of coat, or rather shirt,
-of black silk, with ample sleeves which were tied at either wrist
-tightly with brilliant golden threads. This shirt, or coat, came down
-to his knees, and appeared to be seamless. His trousers, which were
-very full and baggy, were caught at his ankles by similar golden
-threads. His feet were bare save for a pair of sandals. He had nothing
-upon his head, which was close cropped. His face was clean shaven.
-The only thing approaching an ornament, besides the golden threads of
-which I have spoken, was an enormous many-coloured and complicated
-coat-of-arms embroidered upon his breast, and showing up magnificently
-against the black.
-
-He had appeared so suddenly that I almost ran into him, and he said
-to me breathlessly, and with a very strong nasal twang, “Can you talk
-English?”
-
-I said that I could do so with fluency, and he appeared greatly
-relieved. Then he added, with that violent nasal twang again, “You
-take me out of this!”
-
-There was a shut taxi-cab passing and we got into it, and when he had
-got out of the crush, where several people had already stopped to stare
-at him, he lay back, panting a little, as though he had been running.
-The taxi-man looked in suddenly through the window, and asked, in the
-tone of voice of a man much insulted, where he was to drive to, adding
-that he didn’t want to go far.
-
-I suggested the “Angel” at Islington, which I had never seen. The
-machine began to buzz, and we shot northward.
-
-The stranger pulled himself together, and said in that irritating
-accent of his which I have already mentioned twice, “Now say, _you_,
-what year’s this anyway?”
-
-I said it was 1909 (for it happened this year), to which he answered
-thoughtfully, “Well, I have missed it!”
-
-“Missed what?” said I.
-
-“Why, 1903,” said he.
-
-And thereupon he told me a very extraordinary but very interesting tale.
-
-It seems (according to him) that his name was Baron Hogg; that
-his place of living is (or rather will be) on Harting Hill, above
-Petersfield, where he has (or rather will have) a large house. But the
-really interesting thing in all that he told me was this: that he was
-born in the year 2183, “which,” he added lucidly enough, “would be
-your 2187.”
-
-“Why?” said I, bewildered, when he told me this.
-
-“Good Lord!” he answered, quite frankly astonished, “you must know,
-even in 1909, that the calendar is four years out?”
-
-I answered that a little handful of learned men knew this, but that we
-had not changed our reckoning for various practical reasons. To which
-he replied, leaning forward with a learned, interested look:
-
-“Well, I came to learn things, and I lay I’m learning.”
-
-He next went on to tell me that he had laid a bet with another man that
-he would “hit” 1903, on the 15th of June, and that the other man had
-laid a bet that he would get nearer. They were to meet at the Savoy
-Hotel at noon on the 30th, and to compare notes; and whichever had won
-was to pay the other a set of Records, for it seems they were both
-Antiquarians.
-
-All this was Greek to me (as I daresay it is to you) until he pulled
-out of his pocket a thing like a watch, and noted that the dial was set
-at 1909. Whereupon he began tapping it and cursing in the name of a
-number of Saints familiar to us all.
-
-It seems that to go backwards in time, according to him, was an art
-easily achieved towards the middle of the Twenty-second Century, and it
-was worked by the simplest of instruments. I asked him if he had read
-“The Time Machine.” He said impatiently, “You have,” and went on to
-explain the little dial.
-
-“They cost a deal of money, but then,” he added, with beautiful
-simplicity, “I have told you that I am Baron Hogg.”
-
-Rich people played at it apparently as ours do at ballooning, and with
-the same uncertainty.
-
-I asked him whether he could get forward into the future. He simply
-said: “What _do_ you mean?”
-
-“Why,” said I, “according to St. Thomas, time is a dimension, just like
-space.”
-
-When I said the words “St. Thomas” he made a curious sign, like a man
-saluting. “Yes,” he said, gravely and reverently, “but you know well
-the future is forbidden to men.” He then made a digression to ask if
-St. Thomas was read in 1909. I told him to what extent, and by whom. He
-got intensely interested. He looked right up into my face, and began
-making gestures with his hands.
-
-“Now that really _is_ interesting,” he said.
-
-I asked him “Why?”
-
-“Well, you see,” he said in an off-hand way, “there’s the usual
-historic quarrel. On the face of it one would say he wasn’t read at
-all, looking up the old Records, and so on. Then some Specialist gets
-hold of all the mentions of him in the early Twentieth Century, and
-writes a book to show that even the politicians had heard of him. Then
-there is a discussion, and nothing comes of it. _That’s_ where the fun
-of Travelling Back comes in. You find out.”
-
-I asked him if he had ever gone to the other centuries. He said, “No,
-but Pop did.” I learned later that “Pop” was his father.
-
-“You see,” he added respectfully, “Pop’s only just dead, and, of
-course, I couldn’t afford it on my allowance. Pop,” he went on, rather
-proudly, “got himself back into the Thirteenth Century during a walk in
-Kent with a friend, and found himself in the middle of a horrible great
-river. He was saved just before the time was up.”
-
-“How do you mean ‘the time was up’?” said I.
-
-“Why,” he answered me, “you don’t suppose Pop could afford more than
-one hour, do you? Why, the Pope couldn’t afford more than six hours,
-even after they voted him a subsidy from Africa, and Pop was rich
-enough, Lord knows! Richer’n I am, coz of the gurls.... I told you I
-was Baron Hogg,” he went on, without affectation.
-
-“Yes” said I, “you did.”
-
-“Well, now, to go back to St. Thomas,” he began----
-
-“Why on earth----?” said I.
-
-He interrupted me. “Now that _is_ interesting,” he said. “You know
-about St. Thomas, and you can tell me about the people who know about
-him, but it _does_ show that he had gone out in the Twentieth Century,
-for you to talk like that! Why, I got full marks in St. Thomas. Only
-thing I did get full marks in,” he said gloomily, looking out of the
-window. “That’s what _counts_,” he added: “none of yer high-falutin’
-dodgy fellows. When the Colonel said, ‘Who’s got the most stuff in
-him?’ (not because of the rocks nor because I’m Baron Hogg), they all
-said, ‘_That’s_ him.’ And that was because I got first in St. Thomas.”
-
-To say that I simply could not make head or tail of this would be to
-say too little: and my muddlement got worse when he added, “That’s why
-the Colonel made me Alderman, and now I go to Paris by right.”
-
-Just at that moment the taxi-man put in his head at the window and
-said, with an aggrieved look:
-
-“Why didn’t you tell me where I was going?”
-
-I looked out, and saw that I was in a desolate place near the
-River Lea, among marshes and chimneys and the poor. There was a
-rotten-looking shed close by, and a policeman, uncommonly suspicious.
-My friend got quite excited. He pointed to the policeman and said:
-
-“Oh, how like the pictures! Is it true that they are the Secret Power
-in England? Now _do_----”
-
-The taxi-man got quite angry, and pointed out to me that his cab was
-not a caravan. He further informed me that it had been my business to
-tell him the way to the “Angel.” His asset was that if he dropped me
-there I would be in a bad way; mine was that if I paid him off there he
-would be in a worse one. We bargained and quarrelled, and as we did so
-the policeman majestically moved up, estimated the comparative wealth
-of the three people concerned, and falsely imagining my friend to be an
-actor in broad daylight, he took the taxi-man’s part, and ordered us
-off back to the “Angel,” telling us we ought to be thankful to be let
-off so lightly. He further gave the taxi-man elaborate instructions for
-reaching the place.
-
-As I had no desire to get to the “Angel” really, I implored the
-taxi-man to take me back to Westminster, which he was willing to do,
-and on the way the Man from the Future was most entertaining. He
-spotted the public-houses as we passed, and asked me, as a piece of
-solid, practical information, whether wine, beer, and spirits were sold
-in them. I said, “Of course,” but he told me that there was a great
-controversy in his generation, some people maintaining that the number
-of them was, in fiction, drawn by enemies; others said that they were,
-as a fact, quite few and unimportant in London, and others again that
-they simply did not exist but were the creations of social satire. He
-asked me to point him out the houses of Brill and Ferguson, who, it
-seems, were in the eyes of the Twenty-second Century the principal
-authors of our time. When I answered that I had never heard of them he
-said, “That _is_ interesting.” I was a little annoyed and asked him
-whether he had ever heard of Kipling, Miss Fowler, or Swinburne.
-
-He said of course he had read Kipling and Swinburne, and though he
-had not read Miss Fowler’s works he had been advised to. But he said
-that Brill for wit and Ferguson for economic analysis were surely the
-glories of our England. Then he suddenly added, “Well, I’m not sure
-about 1909. The first _Collected_ Brill is always thought to be 1911.
-But Ferguson! Why he knew a lot of people as early as 1907! He did the
-essay on Mediæval Economics which is the appendix to our school text of
-St. Thomas.”
-
-At this moment we were going down Whitehall. He jumped up excitedly,
-pointed at the Duke of Cambridge’s statue and said, “That’s Charles I.”
-Then he pointed to the left and said, “That’s the Duke of Buccleuigh’s
-house.” And then as he saw the Victoria Tower he shouted, “Oh, that’s
-Big Ben, I know it. And oh, I say,” he went on, “just look at the
-Abbey!” “Now,” he said, with genuine bonhomie as the taxi drew up with
-a jerk, “are those statues symbolic?”
-
-“No,” I said, “they are real people.”
-
-At this he was immensely pleased, and said that he had always said so.
-
-The taxi-man looked in again and asked with genuine pathos where we
-really wanted to go to.
-
-But just as I was about to answer him two powerful men in billycock
-hats took my friend quietly but firmly out of the cab, linked their
-arms in his, and begged me to follow them. I paid the taxi and did so.
-
-The strange man did not resist. He smiled rather foolishly. They hailed
-a four-wheeler, and we all got in together. We drove about half a
-mile to the south of Westminster Bridge, stopped at a large Georgian
-house, and there we all got out. I noticed that the two men treated the
-stranger with immense respect, but with considerable authority. He,
-poor fellow, waved his hand at me, and said with a faint smile as he
-went through the door, arm in arm with his captors:
-
-“Sorry you had to pay. Came away without my salary ticket. Very silly.”
-And he disappeared.
-
-The other man remaining behind said to me very seriously, “I hope his
-Lordship didn’t trouble you, sir?”
-
-I said that on the contrary he had behaved like an English gentleman,
-all except the clothes.
-
-“Well,” said the keeper, “he’s not properly a Lord as you may say; he’s
-an Australian gent. But he’s a Lord in a manner of speaking, because
-Parliament did make him one. As for the clothes--ah! you may well ask!
-But we durstn’t say anything: the doctor and the nurse says it soothes
-him since his money trouble. But _I_ say, _make_ ’em act sensible and
-they will be sensible.”
-
-He then watched to see whether I would give him money for no particular
-reason, and as I made no gestures to that effect I went away, and thus
-avoided what politicians call “studied insolence.”
-
-
-
-
-A Reconstruction of the Past
-
-
-“It has been said with some justice that we know more about the
-Victorian Period in England than we do of any one of the intervening
-nine centuries, even of those which lie closest to our own time, and
-even of such events as have taken place upon our own soil in the Malay
-Peninsula. I will attempt to put before you very briefly, as a sort of
-introduction to the series of lectures which I am to deliver, a picture
-of what one glimpse of life in London towards the end of the Nineteenth
-Century must have resembled.
-
-“It is a sound rule in history to accept none but positive evidence and
-to depend especially upon the evidence of documents. I will not debate
-how far tradition should be admitted into the reconstruction of the
-past. It _may_ contain elements of truth; it _must_ contain elements of
-falsehood, and on that account I propose neither to deny nor to admit
-this species of information, but merely to ignore it; and I think the
-student will see before I have done with my subject that, using only
-the positive information before us, a picture may be drawn so fully
-detailed as almost to rival our experience of contemporary events.
-
-“We will imagine ourselves,” continued the professor, with baleful
-smile of playful pedantry, “in Piccadilly, the fashionable promenade of
-the city, at nine o’clock in the morning, the hour when the greatest
-energies of this imperial people were apparent in their outdoor life;
-for, as we know from the famous passage which we owe to the pen of the
-pseudo-Kingsley, the English people, as befitted their position, were
-the earliest risers of their time. We will further imagine (to give
-verisimilitude to the scene) the presence of a north-east wind, in
-which these hardy Northerners took exceptional delight, and to which
-the anonymous author above alluded to has preserved a famous hymn.
-
-“Piccadilly is thronged with the three classes into which we know the
-population to have been divided--the upper class, the middle, and the
-lower, to use the very simple analytical terms which were most common
-in that lucid and strenuous period. The lower class are to be seen
-hurrying eastward in their cloth caps and ‘fustian,’ a textile fabric
-the exact nature of which is under dispute, but which we can guess,
-from the relics of contemporary evidence in France, to have been of a
-vivid blue, highly glazed, and worn as a sort of sleeved tunic reaching
-to the knees. The headgear these myriads are wearing is uniform: it is
-a brown skull cap with a leather peak projecting over the eyes, the
-conjectural ‘cricket cap,’ of which several examples are preserved.
-It has been argued by more than one authority that the article in
-question was not a headgear. It appears in none of the statuary of
-the period. No mention of it is made in any of the vast compilations
-of legal matter which have come down to us, and attempts have been
-made to explain in an allegorical sense the very definite allusions
-to it with which English letters of that time abound. I am content
-to accept the documentary evidence in the plain meaning of the words
-used, and to portray to you these ‘toiling millions’ (to use the phrase
-of the great classic poet) hurrying eastward upon this delightful
-morning in March of the year 1899. Each is carrying the implement of
-his trade (possession in which was secured to him by law). The one
-holds a pickaxe, another balances upon his head a ladder, a third is
-rolling before him a large square box or ‘trunk’--a word of Oriental
-origin--upon a ‘trolley’ or small two-wheeled vehicle dedicated to
-some one of the five combinations of letters which had a connection
-not hitherto established with the system of roads and railways in the
-country. Yet another drags after him a small dynamo mounted on wheels,
-such as may be seen in the frieze illustrating the Paris Exhibition of
-ten years before.
-
-“Interspersed with this crowd may be seen the soldiery, clad entirely
-in bright red. But these, by a custom which has already the force of
-law, are compelled to occupy the middle of the thoroughfare. They are
-of the same class as the labouring men round them, and like these
-carry the implements of their trade, with which we must imagine them
-from time to time threatening the passers-by. All, I say, are hurrying
-eastward to their respective avocations in the working part of this
-great hive.
-
-“Appearing as rarer units we perceive members of the second or _middle_
-class proceeding at a more leisurely and dignified pace towards their
-professional or commercial pursuits, the haunts of which lie less to
-the eastward and more in the centre of the city. These are dressed
-entirely in black, and wear upon their heads the round hat to which
-one of my colleagues erroneously gave the title of a religious emblem,
-a position from which, I am glad to see, he has recently receded.
-Nothing is more striking in the scene than the absolute uniformity of
-this costume. In the right hand is carried, according to the ritual
-of a secret society to which the greater part of this class belong, a
-staff or tube. The left hand grasps a roll of printed paper which we
-may premise without too much phantasy to be the original news-sheet
-from which the innumerable forgeries and copies of the succeeding dark
-ages proceeded. We are, of course, ignorant of its name, but we may
-accept it as the prototype of that vast mass of printed matter which
-purports to be contemporary in date, but which recent scholarship has
-definitely proved to be of far later origin. Beyond these, but in
-numbers certainly few, the exact extent of which I shall discuss in
-a moment, are the _upper_ classes, or Gentry. How many they may be
-in such a crowd, I repeat, we cannot tell. We know that to the whole
-population they stood somewhat as one to 10,000. The proportion in
-London may have been slightly higher, for we have definite documentary
-information that in certain provincial centres ‘not a gentleman’ could
-be discovered, though for what reason these centres were less favoured
-we are not told. In a street full of some thousands we shall certainly
-not be exaggerating if we put the number of the Gentry present at
-certainly a couple of individuals, and we may put as our highest limits
-half a dozen. How are they dressed? In a most varied manner. Some in
-grey, some in pink (these are off to hunt the fox in the fields of
-Croydon or upon the heath of Hampstead, or possibly--to follow the
-conjecture of the Professor of Geology in his fascinating book on the
-Thames Valley--to Barking Level). Others are in black silk with a
-large oval orifice exposing the chest. Others again will be in white
-flannel, and others in a species of toga known as ‘shorts.’ These are
-students from the university, or their professors, and they will be
-distinguished by a square cap upon the head which, unlike so many other
-conjectural forms of headgear, we can definitely pronounce to have had
-a religious character. A tassel sometimes of gold hangs from the centre
-of this square. With the exception of this headgear the Gentry discover
-upon their heads as uniform a type of covering as their inferiors of
-the middle class, who salute them as they pass by lifting the round
-hat with the right hand. This headgear is tubular and probably of some
-light metal, polished to a highly reflecting surface, and invariably
-(as we know by the fascinating diaries recently collected by the
-University Press) polished in the same direction upon some sort of
-lathe.
-
-“If we are lucky we may see at this hour one member of a class
-restricted even among the few gentlemen of that period, the Peers.
-Should we see such an one he will be walking in a red plush robe.
-It is probable that he will carry upon his head the same species of
-hat as the others of his rank, but I admit that it is open to debate
-whether this hat were not surrounded by a circle of metal spikes, each
-surmounted with a small ball. Such a person will be walking at an even
-more leisurely pace than the few other members of the Gentry who may be
-present, and upon the accoutrements of his person will be discovered
-a small shield, varying in size from a couple of inches to as many
-feet, stamped with a representation of animals and often ornamented by
-a device in the English or in the Latin tongue. These devices, many
-of which have come down to us engraved upon metal, are of the utmost
-value to the historian. They have enabled him to reconstruct the exact
-appearance of animals now long extinct, and it is even possible in some
-cases to ascertain the particular families to which they belonged. No
-class of object, however, has suffered more from frequent forgeries
-than these emblems. Luckily there is an almost invariable test for
-recognising such forgeries, which consists in the use of the French
-language misspelt. Of some thousands of such signs many hundreds affect
-a legend in the French tongue, and of these hardly one is correctly
-spelt. Moreover, essential words are often omitted, and in general the
-forgeries betray that imperfect acquaintance with the contemporary
-language of Paris which was one of the marks of social inferiority
-at that time. When I add that the total number of Peers at any given
-moment was less than seven hundred out of forty million people,
-while the number of these shields which have been discovered already
-amounts to over five hundred thousand, it will be apparent that the
-proportion of genuine emblems must be very small. Now and then a house
-will bear the picture of some such shield painted and hung out upon a
-board before it. This sometimes, but not universally, indicates the
-nobility of the tenant. In the matter of religion....” At this point
-the professor looked narrowly at his notes, held one sheet of them in
-various positions, put it up to the light, shook his head, and next,
-observing the hour, said that he would deal with this important subject
-upon the following Wednesday or Thursday, according to sale of tickets
-during the intervening days. With these words, after a fit of coughing,
-he withdrew.
-
-
-
-
-The Reasonable Press
-
-
-THE OPPOSITION PAPER: LEADER
-
-It is difficult to repress a feeling of natural indignation when one
-considers the policy which the Government and Mr. Robespierre have
-seen fit to pursue during the last two years, and especially since the
-unfortunate blunder of Mr. Danton and Mr. Desmoulins. We have never
-hidden our opinion that these two gentlemen--able and disinterested men
-as they undoubtedly were--acted rashly in stepping out of the party
-(as it were) and attempting to form an independent organisation at a
-moment when the strictest discipline was necessary in the face of the
-enormous and servile majority commanded by the Government. However
-unrepresentative that majority may be of the national temper at this
-moment, the business of a member of the Convention lies chiefly on the
-floor of the House, and it is the height of unwisdom to divide our
-forces even by an act of too generous an enthusiasm for the cause.
-We would not write a word that might give offence to the surviving
-relatives of the two statesmen we have named, but this much _must_
-be said: the genius of the nation is opposed to particular action of
-this sort; the electors understand Government and Opposition, by
-separate action like Mr. Danton’s and Mr. Desmoulin’s they are simply
-bewildered. Such eccentric displays do no good, and may do very great
-harm. Meanwhile, we must repeat that the general attitude of the
-Government is indefensible. That is a strong word, but hardly too
-strong under the circumstances. It is not the executions themselves
-which have (as we maintain) alienated public sentiment, nor their
-number--though it must be admitted that 1200 in four months is a high
-record--it is rather the pressure of business in the Courts and the
-disorganisation of procedure which the Plain Man in the Street notices
-and very rightly condemns, and we would warn Mr. Robespierre that
-unless a larger number of judges are created under his new Bill the
-popular discontent may grow to an extent he little imagines, and show
-itself vigorously at the polls. We are all agreed that Mr. Carnot shows
-admirable tact and energy at the War Office, and it is characteristic
-of that strong man that he has left to others the more showy trappings
-of power. We would urge upon him as one who is, in a sense, above
-party politics, to counsel his colleagues in the Government in the
-direction we have suggested. It may seem a small point, but it is one
-of practical importance, and the Man in the Street cares more for
-practical details than he does for political theories.
-
-
-THE GOVERNMENT PAPER: LEADER
-
-The present moment is opportune for reviewing the work of the
-Government to date, and drawing up a political balance-sheet as it
-were of its successes and failures. We have always been open critics
-of the present Administration, whenever we thought that national
-interests demanded such criticism, and our readers will remember that
-we heartily condemned the ill-fated proposal to change the place of
-public executions from the Place de la Revolution to the Square de
-l’Egalité--a far less convenient spot; but apart from a few tactical
-errors of this sort it must be admitted, and is admitted even by his
-enemies, that Mr. Robespierre has handled a very difficult situation
-with admirable patience and with a tremendous grasp of detail. It is
-sometimes said of Mr. Robespierre that he owes his great position
-mainly to his mastery over words. To our thinking that judgment is as
-superficial as it is unjust. True, Mr. Robespierre is a great orator,
-even (which is higher praise) a great _Parliamentary_ orator, but it
-is not this one of his many talents which is chiefly responsible for
-his success. It is rather his minute acquaintance with the whole of
-his subject which impresses the House. No assembly in the world is a
-better judge of character than the Convention, and its appreciation
-of Mr. Robespierre’s character is that it is above all a practical
-one. His conduct of the war--for in a sense the head of the Government
-and Leader of the House may be said to conduct any and every national
-enterprise--has been remarkable. The unhappy struggle is now rapidly
-drawing to a close and we shall soon emerge into a settlement to which
-may be peculiarly applied the phrase “Peace with Honour.” The restraint
-and kindliness of our soldiers has won universal praise, even from
-the enemy, and it is a gratifying feature in the situation that those
-of our fellow-citizens in Toulon, Lyons, and elsewhere who could not
-see eye to eye with us in our foreign and domestic policy are now
-reconciled to both. One last word upon the Judges Bill. We implore Mr.
-Robespierre to stand firm and not to increase the present number, which
-is ample for the work of the Courts even under the somewhat exceptional
-strain of the last four years. After all it is no more fatigue to
-condemn sixty people to death than one. The delay in forensic procedure
-is (or rather was) due to its intolerable intricacy, and the reforms
-introduced by Mr. Robespierre himself, notably the suppression of
-so-called “witnesses” and of the old-fashioned rigmarole of “defence,”
-has done wonders in the way of expedition. We too often forget that Mr.
-Robespierre is not only a consummate orator and a past master of prose,
-but a great lawyer as well. We should be the last to hint that the
-demand for more judges was due to place-hunting: vices of that kind are
-happily absent in France whatever may be the case in other countries.
-The real danger is rather that if the new posts were created jealousy
-and a suspicion of jobbery might arise _after_ they were filled. Surely
-it is better to leave things as they are.
-
-
-THE OPPOSITION PAPER: LOBBY NOTES
-
-Really the Government Press seems determined to misrepresent last
-Friday’s incident! Mr. Talma has already explained that his allusion
-to cripples was purely metaphorical and in no way intended for Mr.
-Couthon, for whom, like everyone in the House, he has the highest
-respect.
-
-
-THE GOVERNMENT PAPER: LOBBY NOTES
-
-Last Friday’s incident is happily over. Mr. Talma has assured Mr.
-Couthon that he used the word “cripple” in a sense quite different from
-that in which that highly-deservedly popular gentleman unfortunately
-took it.
-
-
-SOCIAL AND PERSONAL
-
-The Marquis de Misenscene is leaving Paris tonight for Baden Baden.
-His Lordship intends to travel in the simplest fashion and hopes his
-incognito may be preserved.
-
-Mr. Couthon, the deservedly popular M.P., made a pathetic sight
-yesterday at Mr. Robespierre’s party in the Tuileries Gardens. As
-most people know, the honourable gentleman has lost the use of his
-lower limbs and is wheeled about in a bath-chair, but he can still
-gesticulate freely and his bright smile charms all who meet him.
-
-Madame Talma was At Home yesterday on behalf of the Society for the
-Aid and Rescue of Criminal Orphans. Whatever our political differences
-we all can unite in this excellent work, and the great rooms of Talma
-House were crowded. At Madame Talma’s dinner before the reception
-were present Major Bonaparte, Mr. Barrere, Mr. St. Just, Mrs. Danton
-(widow of statesman), Mrs. Desmoulins (mother of the late well known
-author-journalist), and Miss Charlotte Robespierre, who looked charming
-in old black silk with a high bodice and jet trimmings.
-
-
-LETTERS TO THE PAPERS
-
-Sir,--I hope you will find space in your columns for a protest against
-the disgraceful condition of the public prisons. I have not a word to
-say, sir, against the presence of the prisoners in such large numbers
-at this exceptional moment; moreover, as nearly all their cases are
-_sub judice_ it would be highly improper in me to comment upon them. I
-refer, sir, only to the intolerable noise proceeding from the cells and
-rendering life a burden to all ratepayers in the vicinity. Prisoners
-are notoriously degenerate and often hysterical, and the nuisance
-created by their lamentations and protests is really past bearing. I
-can assure the Government that if they do not provide gags, _and use
-them_, they shall certainly not have my vote at the next election.--I
-am, &c.,
-
- DISGUSTED.
-
-Sir,--_May_ I trespass upon your space to make known to our _many_
-friends that the memorial service for my late husband, the Archbishop
-of Paris, is postponed till the 1st Decadi in Fructidor?--With many
-thanks in advance for your courtesy, I am, &c.,
-
- ASPASIA GOREL.
-
-
-OFFICIAL NEWS
-
-We are requested by the Home Office to give publicity to the
-arrangements for to-morrow’s executions. These will be found on page 3.
-There will be no executions on the day after to-morrow.
-
-
-
-
-Asmodeus
-
-
-“Can you not show me,” said the Student, as they flew swiftly through
-the upper air over Madrid, he clinging tightly to the Devil’s skirts,
-“can you not show me other sights equally entertaining before we finish
-our journey?”
-
-“Readily,” replied Asmodeus, “for I have the power of showing you every
-heart and thought in Madrid, and of unroofing every house if it be my
-pleasure, and I am determined to repay you in whatever way you choose
-for the service you have done me. First, then, cast your eyes down at
-the very well-dressed gentleman whom you see in that open taxi-cab,
-enjoying as he whirls along the warm air of a night in the season. He
-is a wealthy man in charge of one of the great departments of State;
-nay, I can tell you which one, for the mines in Peru are his special
-department.”
-
-“Doubtless,” said the Student, “he is at this moment considering some
-weighty matter in connection with his duties.”
-
-“No,” said the Devil; “you must guess again.”
-
-“Why, then, since you have shown me so many diverting weaknesses in
-men I must believe that he is plotting for the advancement of some
-favourite.”
-
-“Yet again you are wrong,” said the Devil. “His whole mind is occupied
-in watching the sums marked by the taximeter, which he constantly
-consults by the aid of a match; only last Wednesday, the Feast of St.
-Theresa, he was overcharged a matter of a quarter of a real by one of
-these machines, and he is determined this shall not happen again. You
-perceive the great house which he is now passing. It is lit up at every
-window, and the sounds of music are proceeding from it.”
-
-“I not only see it,” said the Student, “but have seen this sort of
-sight so often during the season in Madrid that I am certain you will
-not find anything here to surprise me.”
-
-“No,” said the Devil, “I was perhaps wrong in attempting to amuse you
-by so commonplace a spectacle as that of a moneylender entertaining
-very nearly all those in Madrid with whom he has had no dealings,
-and even some of those who are in his power; that is, if, on account
-of their nobility or from some other cause, it is worth his while to
-have them seen in his rooms. But what I would particularly point out
-to you is, not this kind of feast which (as you say) you have seen a
-thousand times, but the old man who is mumbling strange prayers over a
-dish of food in that common servants’ room which you may perceive to
-lie half above the ground and half beneath it next to the kitchen. He
-is the father of the wealthy gentleman who is entertaining the guests
-upstairs.”
-
-“It is evident,” said the Student, “that he has no liking for High
-Life.”
-
-“No,” said Asmodeus, “and in this eccentricity he is supported with
-true filial sympathy by his son.”
-
-“I perceive,” said the Student, “a man tossing uneasily in his sleep,
-and from time to time crying out as one does to a horse when it is
-restive, or rather as men cry to horses which they can hardly control.”
-
-“I am well acquainted with him,” said the Devil. “He is one of my most
-earnest clients, but in nothing does he divert me more than in these
-nightmares of his wherein he cries ‘Whoa there! Steady, old girl!’
-And again, ‘Now then! Now then!’ not omitting from time to time, ‘You
-damned brute!’ and a cuff upon his pillow.”
-
-“To what, my dear Asmodeus, do we owe this diversion?” asked the
-Student wonderingly. “He seems to be a wealthy man, if we may judge by
-the house in which we see him and the furniture of the room in which he
-so painfully sleeps. And surely there is nothing upon his mind?”
-
-“You are wrong,” said the Devil; “there is upon his mind a most
-weighty matter, for he considers it a necessity in his position to ride
-every morning along the soft road especially prepared for that exercise
-upon the banks of the Manzanares, where he may meet the wealth and
-fashion of Madrid occupied in the same pastime. But unfortunately for
-him he is wholly devoid of the art of equitation and stands in as much
-terror of his mount as does a lady of her dressmaker. For one hour,
-therefore, of every day, he suffers such tortures that I greatly fear
-we shall not be able to add to them appreciably in my dominions when
-the proper time arrives. But let us leave these wealthy people, whose
-foibles are, after all, much the same, and turn to the poorer quarters
-which lie south of the King’s Royal Palace.”
-
-In a few moments they had reached these and were examining a mean house
-not far from the Church of St. Alphonso, in a bare upper room of which
-a woman with a starved and anxious expression was writing, late as was
-the hour, at top speed.
-
-“Poor woman!” said the Student. “I perceive that she is one of those
-unhappy people whom grinding poverty compels to produce ephemeral
-literature which is afterwards printed and sold at one real for the
-divertisement of the populace of Madrid. I know of no trade more
-pitiful, and I can assure you the sight of her industry moves me to the
-bottom of my heart.”
-
-“The sight is indeed pitiful,” said the Devil, “to those at least who
-permit themselves the luxury of pity--a habit which I confess I have
-long ago abandoned. For you must know that in the company of Belphegor,
-Ashtaroth, and the rest even the softest-hearted of devils will grow
-callous. But more interesting to you perhaps than the sad necessities
-of her trade is the matter which she is at present engaged upon.”
-
-“What is that?” said the Student.
-
-“Why,” said Asmodeus, “she is writing ‘Nellie’s Notes’ for a paper
-called _The Spanish Noblewoman_, and she is at this very moment setting
-down her opinion that there is no better way to pass a rainy afternoon
-than taking out and cleaning one’s Indian Bracelets, Ropes of Pearls,
-Diamonds, and other gems. She is good enough to add that she herself
-thinks it wise and a good discipline to clean her own jewellery and not
-leave it to a maid.”
-
-“In the room below you will see a young man whom I very much regret to
-say is in a state of complete intoxication.”
-
-“I do not know,” said the Student, “why you should regret such a sight,
-for I had imagined that all human frailty was a matter of pleasure to
-your highnesses.”
-
-“Yes,” replied Asmodeus, “in the general it is so, but you must know
-that this particular vice is so inimical to the province which I
-control that I regard it with peculiar detestation, and I am not upon
-so much as speaking terms with Shamarel, who has been deputed by the
-Council to look after those who exceed in wine.”
-
-“Is not that the same,” asked the Student, “whom they say twice
-appeared to a hermit at Carinena?”
-
-“You are right,” said Asmodeus, betraying a slight annoyance, “but
-pray do not put it about that a personage of such importance was at
-the pains of appearing to a common hermit. The fact is, he was at that
-moment visiting the Campo Romano to assure himself that the vines were
-in good condition, and it was by the merest accident that the hermit
-caught sight of him during this journey, for you must know that he
-makes it a punctilio never to appear in person to one under the rank of
-Archbishop, and even then he prefers that the recipient of the favour
-should be a Cardinal into the bargain, and if possible a Grandee of
-Spain.”
-
-“You have told me so much about your amiable colleague,” said the
-Student, “that you have forgotten to tell me whether any moral
-divertisement attached to the poor young fellow whom we see in that
-offensive stupor.”
-
-“No,” said the Devil, “now I come to think of it, there is perhaps
-nothing remarkable in his condition, unless you think it worthy of
-notice that he is a medical student and will shortly be entrusted with
-the nerves and veins of the poor in the public hospitals of Madrid. It
-is to be hoped that he will soon put behind him these youthful follies,
-for if he persists in them they will make his hand tremble, and in that
-case he will never be permitted to practise the art of surgery upon the
-persons of the wealthy and more remunerative classes.”
-
-“Outside the house,” said the Student, “I see a policeman walking with
-some solemnity, and I confess that the sight is pleasing to me, for
-it gives me a feeling that the good people of Madrid are well looked
-after when so expensive an instrument of the law is spared for so poor
-a quarter.”
-
-“You are right,” said Asmodeus, “and were I now to show you the inner
-heart of the Duke of Medina y Barò who controls the police forces of
-Madrid, you would find that his chief anxiety in the distribution of
-his men came from the dilemma in which he perpetually finds himself,
-whether to furnish them rather in large numbers to the wealthier
-quarters for the defence of which policemen exist, or for the poorer
-quarters, the terrorising of which is necessarily their function.”
-
-“At any rate,” said the Student, “he need not bother himself about the
-houses of that large number of people (and I am one) from whom there
-is nothing to steal and who yet have never learnt any of the arts of
-theft. In a word, he is spared the trouble either of protecting or of
-keeping down what are called the middle classes.”
-
-“True,” said Asmodeus, “but most unfortunately this kind of person does
-not herd together in special districts. If they did so it would be a
-great relief to the strain upon the Police Department; but they are
-scattered more or less evenly throughout the wealthier and the poorer
-quarters.”
-
-“Can you tell me,” asked the Student, “whether it is worth our while
-to watch the policeman for a few moments in the exercise of his duties
-and whether he would provide us with any entertainment as we watched
-him unseen?”
-
-“Alas!” answered the Devil sadly, “I have no power to forecast the
-future; but from my knowledge of the past I can tell you that during
-the ten years since he has joined the force this officer has not once
-arrested a rich man in error on a dark night, nor perjured himself
-before a Magistrate so openly as to be detected, nor done any of those
-things which legitimately amuse us in people of his kind.”
-
-“But do you not think,” said the Student, “that we might by remaining
-here see him help an old woman across the road amid the plaudits of the
-governing classes, or take a little child that is lost by the hand and
-lead it to its mother’s home?”
-
-“Doubtless,” said the Devil, yawning, “we should find him up to tricks
-of that sort were we willing to wait here, floating in the air, for
-another ten or dozen hours, when the streets will be full of people.
-But the play-acting to which you so feelingly allude is but rarely
-indulged in by these gallant men when onlookers are wanting. Come, the
-sky is already pale in the direction of the eastern mountains; it will
-soon be day, and I desire before you are completely tired out to show
-you one more sight.”
-
-With these words Asmodeus took the Student by the hand and darted with
-inconceivable rapidity over the roofs of the city until he came to a
-particular spot which he had evidently marked in his flight.
-
-“Cast your eyes,” he said, “upon this narrow but busy thoroughfare
-beneath us. It is the only street in Madrid which at so late an hour is
-still full of people and of business. It is called Fleet Street.”
-
-“I have heard of it,” said the Student.
-
-“No doubt,” said the Devil; “but what I particularly desire to point
-out to you is a man whom you will see in his shirt-sleeves, seated upon
-a swivel-chair and writing away for dear life, matter which will appear
-to-morrow in the _Morning Post_.”
-
-“Well,” said the Student, “what of that?”
-
-“Can you guess what he is writing?” asked Asmodeus.
-
-“That I am quite unable to do,” said the Student.
-
-“It is,” said the Devil, “a series of satirical remarks upon the
-frailties and follies of others--and yet he is a journalist!”
-
-
-
-
-The Death of the Comic Author
-
-
-A Comic Author of deserved repute was lodging at the beginning of this
-month in a house with broken windows, in a court off the Gray’s Inn
-Road.
-
-He had undertaken to produce a piece of Humorous Fiction to the length
-of 75,000 words.
-
-The Comic Author, a man of experience (for this was his forty-seventh
-book), had sat down to begin his task. He calculated how long it would
-last him. He was good for 1500 words a day, if they were short words,
-and even when doom or accident compelled him to the use of long ones he
-could manage from 1163 to 1247.
-
-The specification was lucid and simple. There was to be nothing in
-the work that could offend the tenderness of the patriot nor the ease
-of good manners, let alone the canons of decency and right living. A
-powerful love interest which he was compelled under Clause VII of his
-contract to introduce immediately after each of the wittiest passages
-had been deftly woven into the fabric, and (as was clearly laid down
-in Clause IX) no matter already published might appear in those virgin
-pages. If any did so, be sure it was so veiled by the tranposition
-of phrases and other slight changes of manner as to escape the
-publisher’s eye.
-
-So far so good. But upon the 13th of August, a day of great beauty, but
-of excessive heat, the Comic Author, sitting at his desk, was struck by
-Apollo, the God and patron of literary men.
-
-It was the custom of the Comic Author, who was a teetotaler and a
-vegetarian, to wear a soft shirt entirely made of wool and devoid of
-a collar, which ornament, he was assured by Members of the Faculty,
-exercised a prejudicial effect upon the health. It was equally his
-custom to compose his famous periods with his back turned to the light.
-This habit he had also adopted at the dictation of the Faculty, who
-had proved to him beyond possibility of refutation that the human eye
-is damaged by nothing more than by reading or writing with one’s face
-towards the window. With his back, therefore, to the window in his room
-(it was unbroken), it was the Comic Artist’s wont to sit at a plain
-and dirty small deal table and express his mind upon paper, his head
-reposing upon his left hand, his fountain pen grasped firmly in his
-right, and his lips and tongue following the movement of his nib as it
-slowly crawled over the page before him.
-
-The Comic Author (again under the impulse of the Faculty) kept his
-hair cut short at the back; to cut it short all over was more than his
-profession would allow. You have, then, the Comic Author sitting at his
-desk with his back to the unbroken window, his neck exposed from the
-shortness of hair and the absence of collar, under the brilliant light
-of the 13th of August.
-
-A fourth condition must now be considered: by some physical action
-never properly explained, glass, though it may act as a screen to
-radiant heat, will also store and intensify the action of sunlight.
-So that anything placed immediately beneath it upon a bright day will
-(it is notorious) suffer or enjoy an effect of heat far greater than
-that discoverable upon its outer side. The common greenhouse is a proof
-of this. The Comic Author was therefore in a situation to receive the
-full power of Apollo. It took the form of a sunstroke, and with his
-story uncompleted, nay, in the midst of an unfinished phrase, he fell
-helpless.
-
-His Landlady, summoning a neighbour to her aid (for the charwoman never
-stayed after ten o’clock, and it was already noon), dragged him to his
-room and sent for the parish doctor, who, after a brief examination of
-the patient, declared him to be in some danger; but the poor fellow was
-not so far gone as to forget his obligations, and he murmured a few
-words which, after some difficulty, they understood to be the address
-of the publisher whom he would not for worlds have disappointed.
-Imagining this address to be in some way connected with a pecuniary
-advantage to herself, the Landlady sent to it immediate word of his
-accident, and within half an hour a motor-car of surpassing brilliance
-and immense power was purring at the door. From this vehicle descended
-in a gentlemanly but commanding manner One who seemed far too great
-for the humble lodging which he entered. And the Doctor, leaving his
-patient for a moment, was pleased to receive the visitor in a lower
-room, while the Landlady, who was also interested in the event,
-listened with due courtesy in the passage without.
-
-The Publisher (for it was he) learned with increasing concern the
-desperate position of the Comic Author, and while he was naturally
-chiefly concerned with the financial loss the little accident might
-involve, it should be remembered to his credit that he made inquiries
-as to the state of the patient and even asked whether he suffered
-physical pain. Upon hearing that the Comic Author, though fuddled
-by cerebral congestion, did undoubtedly suffer the Visitor’s brow
-perceptibly darkened; he pointed out to the Doctor that if this
-accident had but happened ten days later it would have had consequences
-much less serious to himself.
-
-The Doctor was eager to point out that the fault was none of his. He
-had come the moment he had heard of the case, and, moreover, sunstroke
-was a disease which betrayed itself by no premonitory symptoms. He
-assured the Publisher that if the Comic Author’s survival could in any
-way be of service to the firm he would do everything in his power to
-save his life.
-
-The Publisher replied, a little testily, that the value of the Comic
-Author’s survival would entirely depend upon the talent remaining to
-him after his recovery, and pointed out what the Doctor had overlooked,
-that a sensational death, if it received due recognition from the
-Press, often caused the works of the deceased to sell for a week or
-more with exceptional rapidity.
-
-He next asked whether the Comic Author had not left manuscripts, and
-the Landlady was pleased to bring him not only all that lay upon the
-deal table, but much more beside, and all his private correspondence
-as well, which she found where she had often perused it, in various
-receptacles of her lodger’s room.
-
-The Publisher upon receiving these seemed to feel his position less
-acutely, and sending the sheets out at once to his secretary in the car
-(with instructions that those stories or sketches hitherto unpublished
-should be carefully noted) he resumed his conversation with the medical
-man. He was first careful to ask how long cases of this sort when they
-proved fatal commonly endured, and expressed some relief at hearing
-that certain benignant exceptions had lingered for several days. He
-was further assured that lucid intervals might be counted on, and in
-general he discovered that the lines upon which the story had been
-intended to proceed might be recovered from the lips of the dying man
-before he should exchange the warm and active existence of this world
-for the Unknown Beyond.
-
-He re-entered his motor-car, therefore, with a much lighter heart,
-promising to send an Expert Stenographer who should take down the last
-and necessary instructions from the lips of Genius. The motor-car
-then left that court off the Gray’s Inn Road where the tragedy was in
-progress, and swept westward to the larger atmosphere of St. James’s.
-
-At this point again, when the activity and decision of one master brain
-seemed to have saved all, Fate intervened. The Expert Stenographer,
-having lacked regular employment for nearly eighteen weeks, was
-so overjoyed at learning the news and the price attached to his
-immediate services, that he could not resist cheerful refreshment and
-conversation with friends in celebration of the occasion. He reached
-the Gray’s Inn Road, therefore, somewhat late in the day; he was
-further delayed by a difficulty in discovering the house with broken
-windows which had been indicated to him, and when he entered it was to
-receive the unwelcome news that the Comic Author was dead.
-
-The Doctor, whose duties had already for some hours called him to other
-scenes where it was his blessed mission to alleviate human suffering,
-was not present to confirm the sad event, and the Expert Stenographer,
-who could not believe that he had been baulked of so unexpected a
-piece of fortune, insisted upon proof which the Landlady was unable
-to afford. He even sat for some few moments by the side of the Poor
-Lifeless Clay in the vain hope that some further indication as to the
-general trend of the book might fall from the now nescient lips. But
-they were dumb.
-
-How many consequent misfortunes depended upon this untoward accident
-the reader may easily guess. The Landlady, to whom the Comic Author
-had owed thirty shillings for a month’s rent and service, was in a
-very natural anxiety for some days, an anxiety which was increased by
-the discovery that her former lodger had no friends, while his few
-relatives seemed each to have, in their own small way, claims against
-him of a pecuniary nature.
-
-His dress clothes, upon which she had confidently counted, turned out
-to belong to a costumier of the neighbourhood, who loudly complained
-that he had had no notice of this intempestive demise, and was at least
-a sovereign out of pocket by so awkward a conjunction; nor was he
-appreciably relieved when it was pointed out to him that the suit would
-at least carry no contagious disease.
-
-The Stenographer, as I have already indicated, lost the remuneration
-dependent upon his Expert Services, and was further at the charge of
-the refreshment which he had foolishly consumed in anticipation of that
-gain.
-
-The Doctor, indeed, was not disappointed, for he had expected nothing,
-but by far the worst case was that of the generous and wealthy man who
-had been at all the risk of advertising, partly printing, and already
-ordering the binding of the work which he now found himself at a loss
-to produce.
-
-There is no moral to this simple story: it is one of the many tragedies
-which daily occur in this great city, and from what I know of the Comic
-Author’s character, he would have been the last to have inflicted so
-much discomfort had it in any way depended upon his own volition; but
-these things are beyond human ordinance.
-
-
-
-
-On certain Manners and Customs
-
-
-I was greatly interested in the method of government which I discovered
-to obtain in the Empire of Monomotapa during my last visit there. I
-say “during my last visit” because although, as everyone knows, I have
-repeatedly travelled in the more distant provinces of that State, I had
-never spent any time to speak of in the capital until I delayed there
-last month for the purpose of visiting a friend of mine who is one of
-the State Assessors. He was good enough to explain to me many details
-of their Constitution which I had not yet grasped, and I conceive
-it--now that I have a full comprehension of it--to be as wise a method
-of governing as it is a successful one.
-
-I must first put before the reader the elements of the matter. Every
-citizen in Monomotapa takes a certain fixed rank in the State; for
-the inhabitants of that genial clime have at once too much common
-sense and too strict a training to talk nonsense about equality or
-any other similar metaphysical whimsey. Every man, therefore, can
-precisely tell where he stands in relation to his fellows, and all
-those heart-burnings and jealousies which are the bane of other States
-are by this simple method at once exorcised. Moreover, the method by
-which a man’s exact place is determined is simplicity itself, for it
-reposes upon his yearly revenue; and there is a gradually ascending
-scale from the poorest, whose revenue may not amount from all sources
-to more than 40 Tepas a month, to the Supreme Council, the wealthier
-members of which may have as much as 10,000,000 Tepas a month, or
-even more. There is but one drawback to this admirably practical and
-straightforward way of ordering the State, which is that by a very
-ancient article of their religion the Monomotapians are each forbidden
-to disclose to others what the state of their fortunes may be. It is
-the height of impertinence in any man, even a brother, to put questions
-upon the matter; all documents illuminating it are kept strictly
-secret, and though religious vows and binding oaths are very much
-disliked among this people, yet one is rigidly observed, which is that
-forbidding the divulgence by a bank of the sums of money entrusted to
-it by its clients. Certain rash spirits have indeed proposed to destroy
-the anomaly and either to make some other standard arrange the order
-of society (which is unthinkable) or else to allow questions of money
-to be freely debated, and the incomes of all to be matter of public
-comment.
-
-Now, like many excellent and rational attempts at religious or social
-reform, these propositions must wholly fail in practice. As for setting
-up some other standard than that of wealth by which to decide the
-importance of one’s fellow citizens, the Monomotapians very properly
-regard such a proposal as fantastic to the point of buffoonery. Nor,
-to do them justice, do those who propose the scheme seriously intend
-this part of it. They rather put it forward to emphasise the second
-half of their programme, which has much more to be said for it. But
-here a difficulty arises of a sort that often upsets the calculations
-of idealists, namely, that however much you change the laws you can
-with more difficulty change the customs of the people, and though you
-might compel all banking accounts to be audited, or even insist upon
-every man making a public return of his income, yet it is certain that
-the general opinion upon this matter would result, in practice, in much
-the same state of affairs as they now have. Men would devise some other
-system than that of banks; their returns would be false, and there
-would be a sort of general unconscious conspiracy among all to support
-fraud in this matter.
-
-My host next explained to me the manner in which laws are made among
-the Monomotapians and the manner in which they are administered. It
-seems that by a fundamental rule of their Constitution no law may be
-passed in less than twenty-five years, unless it can be proved to have
-its origin in terror.
-
-If indeed those who are the wealthiest and therefore the most important
-in the State can prove to the satisfaction of all that they have gone
-blind with panic, then indeed the passage of a law is permitted even
-in a few hours. Thus, when a certain number of young gentlemen had
-so far forgotten their good breeding as to torture by way of sport
-considerable numbers of the poorer classes, one of these in his turn,
-oblivious to the rules of polite behaviour, so far forgot himself as to
-strike his young master in the face. It was under these circumstances,
-when the greater part of the governing classes had fled abroad, or were
-closely locked in behind their doors, that the “Tortures Restrictions
-Bill” was passed; but this haste was even then regarded as somewhat
-indecent, and it would have been thought more honourable to have
-discussed the matter for at least two days. Nominally, however, affairs
-of real importance cannot be legislated upon, as I have said, in less
-than twenty-five years. It is customary for the Monomotapians first to
-wait until some neighbouring State has attempted a particular reform.
-When that reform has been working for some years, if it be successful
-in its working, the wealthier Monomotapians begin to talk about it
-according to set rules. And it is again a fundamental point in their
-Constitution that one-half of those who so debate must be for, the
-other half against the proposed change. The discussion is carried
-on by some seventy or eighty men, of whom two-thirds at least must
-possess a fortune of at least 1000 Tepas a month, but it is customary
-to mix among them one or two men of exceptional poverty, as this is
-imagined in some way or other to please the Gods. The middle class,
-on account of their intolerable habit of referring to learned books
-and to the results of their travel, are very properly excluded. These,
-then, debate for a term of years, and when they are weary of it they
-will very often begin to debate again. Meanwhile the institution or
-the reform upon which their discussion has turned will have taken
-root in those foreign countries which it is their pride to copy, and
-they can at last be certain that in following suit Monomotapa will
-have nothing to lose. When all this is decided a certain number of
-men are set apart, the poorer of whom are given a sum of money and
-the wealthier certain titles on condition that they vote in favour of
-the change; while another body of men are set apart and rewarded in a
-precisely similar manner for giving a pledge of the opposite sort. But
-great care is taken that the first body shall be slightly larger than
-the second, for by an unexplained decision of their priests the force
-of a law depends upon the margin between the two bodies so chosen.
-These electors once named are put into an exceedingly narrow passage
-in which it would be difficult for any very stout person to move at
-all. At the end of the passage doors still narrower open upon the
-street, the door upon the left being used to record affirmative, that
-upon the right negative votes. The whole mass, which consists of near
-a thousand men, is then kindly but firmly pushed by Assistants of
-the King (as they are called) until its last member has been squeezed
-through one of the two doors. This process is immensely popular among
-the Monomotapians, who will gather in crowds to cheer the wretched
-men whom avarice or ambition has devoted to so pleasant a task. And
-when they have come out, covered with sweat and perhaps permanently
-affected in their hearts by the ordeal, they are very often granted
-civic honours by their fellow-townsmen over and above the sums of money
-or titles which they have already received. With such frenzied delight
-do the Monomotapians regard this singular practice that even women have
-lately petitioned to be permitted to join in the scrimmage. This they
-will undoubtedly be granted in cases where they can prove a certain
-wealth, for, indeed, there is no reason why an exercise of this sort
-should be confined to one sex. But it is understood that a certain part
-of the women of Monomotapia, many of them also wealthy, are willing to
-pay money to prevent such a result, and if this indeed be the case a
-very curious situation, almost unknown in the annals of Monomotapia,
-will arise; for since all government is in the hands of the rich, it
-is necessary that the rich should act together in serious affairs of
-State. And what on earth will happen when one section of the wealthy,
-whether men or women, are opposed to the actions of another section, it
-would indeed be difficult to determine. Nor are the older men and the
-more experienced without grave misgivings as to the issue of such an
-unprecedented conflict.
-
-I cannot conclude without telling you briefly the manner in which
-their Kings are elected, for it reflects in every detail at once the
-originality and the wisdom of this people.
-
-There are in Monomotapa some three or four hundred public halls in
-which is conducted the national sport, which consists in competitions
-between well-known talkers as to who can talk the longest without
-exhaustion, and it rapidly becomes known, through well-developed
-agencies of information as well as by public repute, which individuals
-have attained to the greatest proficiency in this regard. Sometimes
-in the remotest province will arise a particular star, but more often
-it is in the Metropolis or its neighbourhood that your really great
-talkers can be found; a man in the tradition of that great King of the
-last century who upon one occasion talked the clock round and was in
-reward for that feat permitted to hold the Kingship for three terms in
-succession.
-
-When by a process of elimination the two strongest talkers have been
-discovered, they are brought to the capital, set up upon a stage before
-a vast audience of Assessors (of which my friend, as I have told you,
-was one), and begin talking one against the other with great rapidity,
-starting at a signal made by an official who is paid for this duty a
-very high salary indeed. It may well be imagined that the interest
-in the struggle grows keen after the first few hours have passed. The
-panting breath, the discoloured cheeks, the drooping attitude of either
-competitor, call forth cheers of encouragement from his supporters and
-even murmurs of sympathy from his numerous judges. At last, it may be
-in the sixth or the seventh hour, one of the two goes groggy--if I may
-so express myself--he falters in his words, perhaps repeats himself,
-passes his hand to his forehead or takes a drink of gin (which, from
-its resemblance to water, is greatly favoured in these contests). Such
-signals of distress are the beginning of the end. His successful rival,
-straining himself to one last effort, will pour out a great string of
-sentences of an approved pattern, dealing as a rule with the glories
-and virtues of those who have listened to him, of their ancestry, and
-their hold upon the Monomotapian State, and as the defeated competitor
-falls lifeless to the floor this successful fellow is crowned amid the
-applause of the vast assembly. I was at the pains to ask whether it was
-necessary that these long harangues should make sense, for it seemed to
-me that this added labour would very materially handicap many men who
-might otherwise possess all the physical requirements of victory, and
-I was free to add that it would seem to me, at least, as a foreigner,
-very foolish to weigh down some fine athlete worthy of the Crown by
-demanding of him the rare characteristics of the pedant. I was relieved
-to hear that there was no obligation as to the choice of words used
-or the order in which they were to be pronounced, saving that they
-must be words in the vulgar tongue. But it seems, oddly enough, that
-the trainers in this sport after generations of experience have
-discovered that the competitors actually suffer less fatigue if they
-will repeat certain set and ritual phrases than if they take refuge in
-mere gibberish, just as men marching in step are said to suffer less
-fatigue than men marching at ease. So at least I was assured, but my
-insufficient acquaintance with the Monomotapian tongue forbade me to
-make certain upon the matter.
-
-
-
-
-The Statesman
-
-
- “HÔTEL DE FERRAS, PARIS, _August 1, 1846_.
-
-“My dear Father,--I got in here last night, after a very painful and
-tiresome journey, at eleven o’clock. At least it was eleven o’clock
-by Calais time, but they are so careless in this country about their
-clocks that it would be very difficult to say what the right time
-really was were I not able to consult the excellent chronometer
-which you and Mamma were so kind as to give me after my success in
-the Schools at Oxford this summer. I confess to the childishness of
-having rung the chimes in it five or six times during the night to
-while away the tedium of the journey in the Diligence from Beauvais.
-Beauvais contains a really remarkable cathedral, but it is unfinished.
-I notice, indeed, that many of the buildings undertaken by the French
-remain in an incomplete condition. The Louvre, for instance (which is
-so near this hotel, and the roofs of which I can see from my window),
-would be a really fine building if it were completed, but this has
-never been done, and the total effect is very distressing. I fancy it
-is the numerous wars, in which the unhappy people have been engaged
-at the caprice of their rulers, which have led to such deplorable
-inconsequence. You have often warned me not to judge rashly upon
-a first impression, but I confess the people seem to me terribly
-poverty-stricken, especially in the country districts, where the
-children may often be seen hobbling about in rough _wooden_ shoes,
-without stockings to their feet. I say no more. I hope, dear Papa,
-that when Parliament meets I shall be returned from Italy, and that I
-shall be able to follow your action in the House of Commons. You know
-how ardently I attend to the great struggle for Free Trade, to the
-attainment of which, as of every form of Righteousness, you have ever
-trained my early endeavours.
-
- “I am, your affectionate son,
-
- “JO. BILSTED.”
-
-
- “HÔTEL DE FERRAS, _January 15, 1853_.
-
-“My dear Julia,--I write you a hurried note to tell you that I have
-left behind me, at Number Eleven, my _second beaver hat_. It is in
-the hatbox in the white cupboard on the landing outside the nursery
-door. Do not send anything else with it, as you were imprudent enough
-to do last time I asked you to despatch luggage; the Customs are
-very particular, and it is important for me just now, amid all these
-political troubles, not to have what the French call ‘histoires.’ I
-have really nothing to tell you more as to the condition of affairs,
-nor anything to add to the brief remarks in my last letter. Were I not
-connected by business ties with the Continent nothing should tempt
-me to this kind of journey again. The train service is ridiculously
-slow, and there is a feeling of distress and ill-ease wherever one
-goes. It is truly amazing to me that any people, however stunted by
-centuries of oppression, should tolerate the form of government which
-has been recently set up by brute force in this unhappy country!
-Meanwhile, though everyone discusses politics, nothing is _done_, and
-the practical things of life are wholly neglected. The streets still
-remain the narrow, ill-lit thoroughfares which would be a disgrace to
-a small English provincial town, and the Army, so far as any civilian
-can judge, is worthless. The men slouch about with their hands in
-their pockets; the Cavalry sit their horses very badly; and even the
-escort of the ‘Emperor’ would look supremely ridiculous in any other
-surroundings. I have little doubt that if horse racing were more
-thoroughly developed the Equine Race would improve. As it is, the
-horses here are deplorable. I hope to persuade M. Behrens, who is one
-of the few sensible and clear-sighted men I have met during this visit,
-to accept our proposals, and I will write you further on the matter.
-
- “Your affectionate husband,
-
- “JO. BILSTED.
-
-“P.S.--I somewhat regret that you have accepted the invitation to the
-Children’s Party. However, I never interfere with you in these matters.
-I must, however, positively forbid your taking little Charles, who,
-though he is eldest, suffers, I fear, from a weak heart, inherited from
-your dear mother. I hope to return this day fortnight.”
-
-
- “HÔTEL DE FERRAS, _July 15, 1870_.
-
-“My dear Julia,--It was a matter of great regret to me that you should
-have been compelled to leave Paris a few days before myself; but I
-shall follow to-morrow, and hope to be at Number Eleven by Thursday at
-the latest. You will then have learned the terrible truth that war has
-been finally declared. Nothing could have more deeply _im_pressed and
-_op_pressed me at the same time. The overwhelming military power which
-in better hands and under a proper guidance might have been turned to
-such noble uses is to be hurled against the insecure combination of
-German States which have recently been struggling, perfectly rightly
-in my opinion, to become One Great Nation; for I make no doubt that
-the lesser States will throw in their lot with Prussia: a menace to
-one is a menace to all. I write from the bottom of my heart (my dear
-Julia), when I say that I am convinced that after the first triumphs
-of this Man of Blood our own Government will speak with no uncertain
-voice, and will defend the new German people against the aggressor. It
-was sufficiently intolerable that his Italian policy should have been
-framed before our eyes, without intervention, and that the unity of
-that ancient land should be deferred through his insolence. I have not
-borne to visit Rome since the hateful presence of a foreign garrison
-was established there. I will even go so far (perhaps against your own
-better judgment) as to raise the matter in Parliament, but I greatly
-fear that the House will not be sitting when the most drastic action
-is needed. However, I repeat what I have said; I am confident in the
-ultimate Righteousness of our intervention. I am therefore confident
-that we shall not allow the further expansion of this Military Policy.
-
-“As I write the garish, over-lit façades of this luxurious Babylon, its
-broad, straight streets, with their monotonous vulgar splendour, and
-the swarms of the military all round, fill me with foreboding. It would
-be a terrible thing if this very negation of True Civilisation and
-Religion were to triumph, and I am certain that unless we speak boldly
-we ourselves shall be the next victim. But we _shall_ speak boldly....
-My faith is firm.
-
- “Your affectionate husband,
-
- “JO. BILSTED.
-
-“P.S.--I am glad that Charles has got through his examination
-successfully. I hope he clearly understands that I have no intention of
-letting him be returned for Pensbury until a year has elapsed.”
-
-
- “HÔTEL DE FERRAS, _April 1, 1886_.
-
-“My dear Charles,--It was a filial thought in you to send a letter
-which would reach me upon my sixtieth birthday, and believe me that,
-speaking as your father, I am not insensible to it.
-
-“I wish you could come and see your mother and me if only for a few
-hours, but I know that your Parliamentary duties are heavier than ever;
-indeed, life in the House of Commons is not what it used to be! In my
-time it was often called ‘the best club in Europe.’ Alas, no one can
-say that now! Meanwhile your mother and I are very happy pottering
-about our old haunts in Paris; but you have no idea, my dear Charles,
-how changed it all is! You can, of course, remember the Second Empire
-as a child, but to your mother and me, who were so intimate with
-Paris during its most brilliant period, there is something tragic
-in the sight of this great capital since the awful chastisement of
-fifteen years ago. We ought not, of course, to judge foreign nations
-too harshly, but after no inconsiderable experience of Parliamentary
-life I cannot but have the most gloomy forebodings as to the future of
-this nation. There seems no settled policy of any kind. Yesterday I
-attended a debate in the Chamber, but the various speakers articulated
-so rapidly that I was not able to follow them with any precision. It is
-surely an error to pour out torrents of words in this fashion, and I
-cannot believe there is any mature thought behind it at all. I regret
-to say that the practice of duelling, though denounced by all the best
-thought in the country, is still rife, and nowhere do occasions for its
-exercise arise more frequently than in the undisciplined political
-life of this capital. One must not, however, look only on the dark
-side; there are certainly some very fine new buildings springing up,
-especially in the American quarter towards the Arc de Triomphe. Of
-course your mother and I keep to the old Hôtel de Ferras. We are at an
-age now when one does not easily change one’s habits, but it seems to
-me positively dingy compared with some of these new great palaces. It
-is a comfort, however, to deal with people who know what an English
-banknote is, and who will take an English cheque, and who can address
-one properly on the outside of an envelope. It amused your dear mother
-to see how quickly they seized the new honour which her Majesty has so
-graciously conferred upon me.
-
- “Your affectionate father,
-
- “JO. BILSTED.”
-
-
- “HÔTEL DE FERRAS, _October 19, 1906_.
-
-“My dear Charles,--I cannot tell you how warmly I agree with your last
-letter upon the state of Europe. I am an old man, I have seen many men
-and things, and I have been particularly familiar with foreign policy
-ever since I first entered the House of Commons, now nearly fifty years
-ago, but rarely have I known a moment more critical than the present.
-My one comfort lies in the fact that in spite of the divisions of
-Party, the heart of the nation is still sound, and the leaven of common
-sense in the electors will save us yet. I feel a shade of regret
-sometimes to think that the division no longer retains its old name;
-I should like to feel that, father and son, we had held it for three
-generations, but though the name has changed, the spirit of the place
-is the same.... I beg you to mark my words; I may say without boasting
-that I have rarely been wrong in my judgment of foreign affairs. When
-one sees things here one sometimes trembles for the future.
-
-“This Hotel is not at all what it was. It is ill-kept and damp, and I
-shall not return to it.
-
-“Expect me in London before the end of the week.
-
- “PENSHURST.”
-
- [Lord Penshurst died shortly after his return to London. He was
- succeeded by his son Charles, second Baron, but the Division is still
- represented by a member of the family in the person of Mr. George
- Bilstead, his second son, the husband of Mrs. Bilstead, and author of
- _The Coming Struggle in the Balkans_.]
-
-
-
-
-The Duel
-
-
-In the year 1895 of blessed memory there was living in the town of
-Paris at the expense of his parents a young English gentleman of the
-name of Bilbury; at least, if that were not his name his name was so
-nearly that that it doesn’t matter. He spoke French very well, and had
-for his age (which was twenty-four) a very good working acquaintance
-with French customs. He was popular among the students with whom he
-associated, and it was his especial desire not to seem too much of a
-foreigner on the various occasions when French life contrasts somewhat
-with that of this island. It was something of a little mania of his,
-for though he was patriotic to a degree when English history or English
-habits were challenged, yet it made him intolerably nervous to feel
-exceptional or eccentric in the town where he lived. It was upon this
-account that he fought a duel.
-
-There happened to be resident in the town of Paris at the same time
-another gentleman, whose name was Newman; he also was young, he
-also was English, but whereas Mr. Bilbury was by genius a painter,
-Mr. Newman was by vocation an engineer. And while Mr. Bilbury would
-spend hours in the studio of a master whom (in common with the other
-students) he despised, Mr. Newman was continually occupied in playing
-billiards with his fellow students of engineering in the University.
-And while Mr. Bilbury was spending quite twelve hours a day in finding
-out how to make a picture look like a thing if you stood a long way
-off from it (which is the end and object of his school in Paris), Mr.
-Newman had already acquired the art of making a billiard ball come
-right back again towards the cue after it had struck its neighbour. Mr.
-Bilbury had learned how to sing in chorus with the other students songs
-relating in no way to pictorial excellence; Mr. Newman had learned to
-sing those songs peculiar to students of engineering, but relating in
-no way to applied physics. In a word, these two young gentlemen had
-never met.
-
-But one day Mr. Bilbury, going arm-in-arm with three friends towards
-the river, met upon the pavement of the Rue Bonaparte Mr. Newman in
-much the same posture, but accompanied by a rather larger bodyguard. It
-would have been astonishing to anyone little acquainted with the temper
-of students in the University, and indeed it _was_ astonishing both to
-Mr. Newman and to Mr. Bilbury, though they had now for some months been
-acquainted with the inhabitants of that strange corner of the universe,
-to see how this trifling incident provoked an altercation which in its
-turn degenerated into a vulgar quarrel. Each party refused to give way
-to the other, and the members of each began comparing the members of
-the other to animals of every kind such as the pig, the cow, and even
-certain denizens of the deep. In the midst of the hubbub Mr. Bilbury,
-not to be outdone in the racy vigour of youth, shouted at Mr. Newman
-(who for all he knew might have been a Russian revolutionary or a man
-from St. Cyr) an epithet which he had come across in the contemporary
-literature of the capital, and which he imagined to be of common
-exchange among the merry souls of the University. To his surprise--nay,
-to his alarm--a dead silence followed the use of this very humble and
-ordinary word. Mr. Newman, to whom it was addressed, was not indeed
-ignorant of its meaning (for it meant nothing in particular and was
-offensive), but was astonished at the gravity of those round him when
-the little epithet had been uttered. With a sense of surprise now far
-exceeding that of Mr. Bilbury he saw his companions draw themselves
-up stiffly, take off their eccentric felt hats with large sweeping
-gestures, and march him off as stiff as pokers, leaving the Bilbury
-group solemn with the solemnity of men who have a duty to perform.
-
-That duty was very quickly accomplished. The eldest and most
-responsible of the three friends told Bilbury very gently but very
-firmly that there could be no issue but one to the scene which had just
-passed.
-
-“I am not blaming you, my dear John,” he said kindly (Mr. Bilbury’s
-name was John), “but you know there can be only one issue.”
-
-Meanwhile Mr. Newman’s friends, after maintaining their strict and
-haughty parade almost the whole length of the Rue Bonaparte, broke
-silence together, and said: “It is shameful, and you will not tolerate
-it!” To which Mr. Newman replied by an assurance that he would in no
-way fall beneath the dignity of the situation.
-
-More than this neither Mr. Bilbury nor Mr. Newman knew, but they both
-went to bed that night much later than either intended, and each felt
-in himself a something of what Ruth felt when she stood among the alien
-corn, or words to that effect.
-
-And next morning each of them woke with the knowledge that he had some
-terrible business on hand with some ass of a foreigner who had got
-excited, or, to be more accurate, had suddenly stopped being excited
-for wholly incomprehensible reasons at a particular moment in a lively
-conversation. Both Mr. Newman and Mr. Bilbury were, I say, in this mood
-when there entered to Mr. Newman in his room in the Rue des Ecoles
-(which he could ill afford) two of his friends of the night before, who
-said to him very simply and rapidly that it would be better for them
-to act as his seconds as the others had chosen them as most fitted. To
-this Mr. Newman murmured his adhesion, and was about to ask anxiously
-whether he would soon see them again, when, with a solemnity quite out
-of keeping with their usual good-fellowship, they bowed in a ritual
-manner and disappeared.
-
-Meanwhile a similar scene was taking place in the little fourth-floor
-room which Mr. Bilbury occupied, and Mr. Bilbury, somewhat better
-acquainted with the customs of the University, dismissed his two
-friends with a little speech and awaited developments.
-
-Before lunch the thing was arranged, and Mr. Newman, who was waiting in
-a rather hopeless way for his friends’ return, was informed at about
-twelve o’clock that all was settled; it was to be at the end of the
-week, up in Meudon, in a field which belonged to one of his friends’
-uncles. “We are less likely to be disturbed there,” said the friend,
-“and we can carry the affair to a satisfactory finish.” Then he added:
-“It has a high wall all round it.”
-
-“But,” said the other second, interrupting him, “since we have chosen
-pistols that will not be much good, for the report will be heard.”
-
-“No,” said the first second in a nonchalant manner, “my uncle keeps
-a shooting gallery and the neighbours will think it a very ordinary
-sound. You had,” he explained courteously to Mr. Newman, “the choice of
-weapons as the insulted party, and we chose pistols of course.”
-
-“Of course,” said Mr. Newman, who was not going to give himself away
-upon details of this kind.
-
-“The other man’s seconds,” went on Mr. Newman’s friend genially,
-“wanted swords, but we told them that you couldn’t fence; besides
-which, with amateurs nothing ever happens with swords. And then,” he
-continued, musing, “if the other man is really good you’re done for,
-whereas with pistols there is always a chance.”
-
-To Mr. Bilbury, equally waiting for the luncheon hour in some
-gloominess of soul, the same tale was told, _mutatis mutandis_, as they
-say in what is left of the classical school of the University. His
-adversary had chosen pistols. “And you know,” said one of his seconds
-to Bilbury sympathetically, “he had the right of choice; technically
-he was the insulted party. Besides which, pistols are always better if
-people don’t know each other.”
-
-The other second agreed, and was firmly of the opinion that swords were
-only for intimate friends or politicians. They also mentioned the field
-at Meudon, but with this difference that it became in their mouths the
-ancient feudal property of one of their set, and they were careful to
-point out that the neighbours were all Royalists, devotedly attached to
-the family, and the safest and most silent witnesses in the world.
-
-For the remaining days Mr. Bilbury and Mr. Newman were conducted by
-their separate groups of friends, the first to a shooting gallery near
-Vincennes, the second to a shooting gallery near St. Denis. Their
-experiments were thus conducted many miles apart: and it was just as
-well. It was remarkable what an affluence of students came as the
-days proceeded to see the exercise in martial sport of Mr. Newman. At
-first from fifty to sixty of the students with one or two of the pure
-mathematicians and three or four chemists comprised the audience, but
-before the week was over one might say that nearly all the Applied
-Physics and Positive Sciences of the University were crowding round
-Vincennes and urging Mr. Newman to accurate and yet more accurate
-efforts at the target. At St. Denis the number of artists increased in
-a similar proportion, and to these, before the week was ended, were
-added great crowds of poets, rhetoricians, and even mere symbolists,
-who wore purple ties and wigs. These also urged Mr. Bilbury to add to
-his proficiency; and sometimes that principal himself would shudder
-to see a long-haired and apparently inept person with a greenish face
-pick up a pistol with dreadful carelessness and put out the flame of a
-candle at a prodigious distance with unerring aim.
-
-When the great day arrived two processions of such magnitude as gave
-proof of the latent wealth of the Republic crawled up the hill to
-Meudon. The occasion was far too solemn for a trot, and two men at
-least of those present thought several times uncomfortably about
-funerals. I must add in connection with funerals that a large coffin
-was placed upon trestles in a very conspicuous part of the field, into
-which each party entered by opposite wooden gates which, with the high
-square wall all round, quite shut out the surrounding neighbourhood.
-The two groups of friends (each over a hundred in number), all dressed
-in black and most of them in top-hats, retired to opposite corners of
-the field, nor was there any sign of levity in either body in spite
-of their youth; the four seconds, who were in frock-coats and full
-of an unnatural importance, deposited upon the ground between them a
-very valuable leather case which, when it was opened, discovered two
-perfectly new pistols of a length of barrel inordinate even for the use
-of Arabs, let alone for civilised men. These two were loaded in private
-and handed to either combatant, and Mr. Bilbury and Mr. Newman, having
-been directed each to hold the pistol pointed to the ground, were set
-apart by either wall while the seconds proceeded to pace the terrain.
-Mr. Newman remembered the cricket pitches of his dear home which
-perhaps he would never see again; Mr. Bilbury could think of nothing
-but a tune which ran in his head and caused him grave discomfort.
-
-When the ceremony of the pacing was over the two unfortunate gentlemen
-were put facing each other, but twisted, with the right side of the one
-turning to the corresponding side of the other, so as to afford the
-smallest target for the deadly missiles; and then one of the seconds
-who held the handkerchief retired to some little distance to give the
-signal.
-
-It was at this juncture, as Mr. Newman and Mr. Bilbury stood with their
-pistols elevated towards heaven, and waiting for the handkerchief
-to drop, each concentrated with a violent concentration upon the
-emotions of the moment, that a prodigious noise of hammering and
-shouting was heard at one of the doors of the enclosure, and that three
-gentlemen--the one wearing a large three-coloured sash, the like of
-which neither Mr. Bilbury nor Mr. Newman had ever seen--entered, and
-ordered the whole party to desist in the name of the law. So summoned,
-the audience with the utmost precipitation climbed over the wall,
-forced itself through the gates, and in every manner at its disposal
-vanished. And the gentleman with the tri-coloured sash, sitting down
-in the calmest manner upon one of the trestles and turning the coffin
-over by way of making a table, declared himself a public officer, and
-took notes of all that had occurred. It was interesting to see the
-businesslike way in which the seconds gave evidence, and the courtesy
-with which the two principals were treated as distinguished foreigners
-by the gentleman with the three-coloured sash. He was young, like all
-the rest, amazingly young for a public official of such importance, but
-collected and evidently most efficient. When he had done taking his
-notes he stood up in a half-military fashion, ranged Mr. Newman and
-Mr. Bilbury before him, and very rapidly read out a series of legal
-sentences, at the conclusion of which was a fine of one hundred francs
-apiece, and no more said about the matter. Mr. Bilbury and Mr. Newman
-were astonished that attempted homicide should cost so little in this
-singular country. They were still more astonished to discover that
-etiquette demanded a genial reconciliation of the two combatants under
-such circumstances, and they were positively amazed to find after that
-reconciliation that they were compatriots.
-
-It was their seconds who insisted upon standing the dinner that
-evening. The whole incident was very happily over save for one passing
-qualm which Mr. Bilbury felt (and Mr. Newman also) when he saw the
-gentleman, whom he had last met as the tri-coloured official of the
-Republic, passing through the restaurant singing at the top of his
-voice and waving his hand genially to the group as he went out upon the
-boulevard.
-
-But they remembered that in democracies the office is distinguished
-from the man. Luckily for democracies.
-
-
-
-
-On a Battle, or “Journalism,” or “Points of View”
-
- “_The art of historical writing is rendered the less facile in
- expression from I know not what personal differences which the most
- honest will admit into their record of events, and the most observant
- wilt permit to colour the picture proceeding from their pens._”
- (Extract from the Judicious Essay of a Gentleman in Holy Orders,
- author of _A History of Religious Differences_.)
-
-
-I
-
-FROM HIS ROYAL HIGHNESS THE COMMANDER-IN-CHIEF TO THE MINISTER OF WAR
- OF HIS BROTHER THE EMPEROR OF PATAGONIA.
-
- (Begins)
-
-I have the honour to report: Upon the morning of Sunday, the 31st,
-the enemy attacked the left of my position in great force, a little
-before dawn. I withdrew the XIth, XIIIth, and IInd Brigades, which were
-here somewhat advanced, covering their retirement with detachments
-from the First, the Thirty-seventh, and the Forty-second of the Line.
-The retirement was executed in good order and with small loss, the
-total extent of which I cannot yet determine, but of which by far the
-greater part consists of men but slightly wounded. Several pieces which
-had been irretrievably damaged were destroyed and abandoned. Upon
-reaching a position I had determined in my general plan before leaving
-the capital (see annexed sketch map A) the forces entrenched, defending
-a line which the enemy did not care to attack. I have reinforced the
-Brigade with two groups drawn from the Corps Artillery, and have
-despatched all aids, medicaments, etc., required.
-
-A simultaneous attack delivered upon the centre of my position was
-repulsed, the enemy flying in the utmost disorder, and leaving behind
-them two pieces of artillery and a colour, which last I have sent under
-the care of Major the Duke of Tierra del Fuego to be deposited among
-the glorious trophies that adorn the Military Temple.
-
-By noon the action showed no further development. In the early
-afternoon I determined to advance my right, largely reinforced from the
-centre, which was now completely secure from attack. The movement was
-wholly successful, and the result coincided exactly with my prearranged
-plans. The enemy abandoned all this upper portion of the right bank
-of the Tusco in the utmost confusion; his main body is therefore now
-in full retreat, and there is little doubt that over and above the
-decisive and probably final character of this success I shall be able
-to report in my next the capture of many prisoners, pieces, and stores.
-I congratulate His Majesty upon the conspicuous courage displayed in
-every rank, and recommend for distinguished service the 1847 names
-appended. His Majesty’s Government may take it that this action
-virtually ends the war. (Ends.)
-
-
-II
-
-FROM FIELD-MARSHAL THE MOST ILLUSTRIOUS THE LORD DUKE OF RAPELLO TO
- THE MINISTER OF WAR OF THE REPUBLIC OF UTOPIA.
-
-(Begins) Upon the morning of Sunday, the 31st, in accordance with the
-plan which I had drawn up before leaving the capital, I advanced my
-right a little before dawn against the left of the Imperial position,
-which was very strongly posted upon the edge of a precipitous cliff,
-one flank reposing upon an impassable gulf and the other on a deep and
-torrential river. The enemy resisted with the utmost stubbornness, but
-was eventually driven from his positions, though these were strongly
-entrenched after more than a week’s work with the spade. He abandoned
-the whole of his artillery. A great number of prisoners have fallen
-into my hands, and the loss of the enemy in killed alone must amount to
-many thousands. Particulars will follow later, but I am justified in
-saying that the left wing of the enemy is totally destroyed. Meanwhile,
-General Mitza, most ably carrying out my instructions, contained the
-enemy upon the centre without loss, save for one pom-pom and a Maxim,
-which were shattered by a chance shell early in the action. The 145th
-also report the loss by burning of a waggon containing their Colours,
-eighteen cans of tinned beef, and the Missionaries’ travelling library.
-Somewhat later in the day the enemy attempted to retrieve a hopeless
-position by advancing his right in great force. I had been informed of
-the movement (which was somewhat clumsily executed) in ample time, and
-withdrew the petty outposts I had thrown out for observation in his
-neighbourhood. There is little doubt that the enemy will now attempt
-to withdraw his main force along the line of the Tusco Valley, but a
-glance at the map will show that this retreat is closed to him by my
-occupation of the line X Y (see annexed sketch map), and he is now
-virtually contained.
-
-I congratulate the Government of the Republic upon the signal and
-decisive victory our troops have driven home, and I may confidently
-assure them that it is tantamount to the successful ending of the
-present campaign. Appended is a list of officers recommended for
-distinguished service, which I have made as brief as possible, and
-which I particularly beg after so glorious a day may not be curtailed
-by political intrigues, of which I have already been compelled to
-complain. (Ends.)
-
-
-III
-
-EXTRACT FROM A LEADING ARTICLE IN ONE OF THE MOST REPUTABLE
- NEWSPAPERS OF THE CAPITAL OF PATAGONIA UPON MONDAY THE 1ST.
-
-“We have always maintained in these columns that His Imperial Majesty’s
-Government was amply justified in undertaking the short, and now
-happily successful, campaign in which it was proposed to chastise the
-so-called ‘Republic’ of Utopia, whose chronic state of anarchy is a
-menace to the peace and prosperity of civilisation. It is a pleasure to
-be able to announce this morning what was already a foregone conclusion
-in the minds of all educated men. The enemy’s forces--if we may dignify
-them by that name--have been overwhelmed at the first contact, and it
-is now only a question of whether they will be utterly disorganised
-during retreat or will prefer to capitulate while some semblance of
-discipline remains to them. We must, however, implore public opinion
-to preserve at this juncture the calm, sane courage which is among the
-best traditions of our race, and we reiterate the absolute necessity of
-abstaining from any wild cat policy of annexation. It should be enough
-for us that the ‘Republic’ of Utopia will now exist in name only, and
-has ceased for ever to be a menace to its neighbours. A specially
-gratifying feature in the news before us is the skill and mastery
-displayed by the Prince, whose advanced years (we blush to remember it)
-had been the cause of so much secret criticism of his command.”
-
-
-IV
-
-
-EXTRACT FROM THE LEADING ARTICLE OF THE MOST POPULAR JOURNAL OF THE
- UTOPIAN REPUBLIC, SAME DATE.
-
-“Citizens, awake! All ye that kneel, arise! Ares (the god of battles)
-has breathed upon the enemy, and he has been destroyed! The cowardly
-mercenaries who handle the gold of Patagonia have broken and fled
-before our troops upon the very first occasion when their reputed
-valour was put to the test. The glorious and aged Mitza has guaranteed
-that the next news will be that of their complete submission. It will
-then be for the Government to decide whether our victorious lads should
-complete a triumphant march upon the Patagonian capital or whether it
-may not be preferable to wring from that corrupt and moribund society
-such an indemnity as shall make them for ever impotent to disturb the
-frontiers of free men.”
-
-
-V
-
-EXTRACT FROM THE NOTE OF THE MILITARY EXPERT OF THE AFORESAID WEIGHTY
- AND REPUTABLE JOURNAL OF THE CAPITAL OF PATAGONIA: A JOURNALIST.
-
-“It is not easy to reconstruct from the fragmentary telegrams that
-have come through from the front the tactical nature of the great
-and happily decisive victory upon the Tusco which has just ended
-the campaign. So far as one can judge, His Royal Highness the
-Commander-in-Chief lay _en biais_, reposing his right upon the river
-itself and his left upon the Cañon of the Encantado, his centre
-somewhat advanced ‘in gabion,’ his pivot points refused, and his right
-in double concave. Upon a theory of Ballistic and Shock, which all
-those who have read His Royal Highness’s daring and novel book of
-thirty years ago, entitled ‘Cavalry in the Field,’ will remember, our
-Corps Artillery and reserve of horse were doubtless some miles in the
-rear of the firing line. The enemy, with an amazing ignorance of the
-elements of military knowledge, appear to have attacked the _left_ of
-this position. It is an error to which we should hardly give credence
-were not the telegrams so clear and decisive on this point. The reader
-will immediately grasp the obvious result of such a piece of folly. His
-Royal Highness promptly refused _en potence_, wheeled his left centre
-round upon the Eleventh Brigade as a pivot, and supported this masterly
-move by the sudden and unexpected appearance of no less than thirty-six
-guns, the converging fire of which at once arrested the ill-fated and
-mad scheme of the enemy. The rest is easily told. Our centre retaining
-its position, in spite of the burning zeal of the men to take part in
-the general advance, the right, which had not yet come into action, was
-thrown forward with a sudden, sweeping movement, and behind its screen
-of Cavalry debouched upon the open plateau which dominates the left
-bank of the Tusco. After that all was over; the next news we shall have
-will certainly be the capitulation of our broken foe, unless, indeed,
-he prefer to be destroyed piecemeal in a scattered flight.”
-
-
-VI
-
-EXTRACT FROM THE NOTE OF THE MILITARY EXPERT OF THE POPULAR JOURNAL
- OF UTOPIA: FORMERLY A SERGEANT IN THE COMMISSARIAT DEPARTMENT OF THE
- ARMY.
-
-“It is not easy to reconstruct from the fragmentary telegrams which
-have come through from the front the tactical nature of the great and
-happily decisive victory upon the Tusco. Some points are obvious. In
-the first place, it was ‘a soldiers’ battle.’ Gallant old Mitz (to whom
-all honour is due) drew up the line of battle, but the hard work was
-done by Bill Smith and Tom Jones, and the rest in the deadly trenches
-above the right bank. It seems probable that all the heaviest work was
-done on our right, and therefore against the enemy’s left, unless,
-indeed, the private telegram received by a contemporary be accurate,
-which would make out the heaviest work to have been on our left
-against the enemy’s right. The present writer has an intimate personal
-knowledge of the terrain, over every part of which he rode during the
-manoeuvres of five years ago. It is sandy in places, interspersed
-with damp, clayey bits; much of it is undulating, and no small part
-of it rocky. Trees are scattered throughout the expanse of the now
-historic battlefield; their trunks afford excellent cover. The River
-Tusco, as our readers will have observed, is the dominating feature of
-the quadrilateral, which it cuts _en échelon_. The Patagonians boasted
-that though our army was acknowledgedly superior to their own, their
-commercial position would enable them to weary us out in the field.
-Yes, I don’t think!”
-
-
-VII
-
-EXTRACT FROM A LECTURE DELIVERED BY A PROFESSOR OF MILITARY HISTORY
- ONE HUNDRED YEARS LATER, IN THE UNIVERSITY OF LIMA.
-
-“Among the minor factors of this complicated situation was the
-permanent quarrel between Patagonia and Utopia, and though it has been
-much neglected by historians, and is, indeed, but a detail upon the
-flank of the great struggle of the coalition, a few moments must be
-given to the abortive operations in the Tusco Valley. They appear to
-have been conducted without any grasp of the main rules of strategy,
-each party advancing in a more or less complete ignorance of the
-position of the other, their communications parallel, their rate of
-advance deplorably slow, and neither possessing the information nor the
-initiative to strike at his opponent during a three-weeks’ march, at no
-point of which was either army so much as fifty miles from the other.
-These farcical three weeks ended in a sort of skirmish difficult to
-describe, and apparently confined to the extreme left of the Patagonian
-forces. The Utopians here effected some sort of confused advance,
-which was soon checked. At the other end of the line they retired
-before a partial movement of the enemy, effected without any apparent
-object, and certainly achieving no definite result. The total losses
-in killed and wounded were less than seven per cent of those engaged.
-The next day negotiations were entered into between the two generals;
-their weary discussion occupied a whole week, during which hostilities
-were suspended. The upshot of the whole thing was the retirement of
-the Patagonian Army under guarantees, and in consideration of the
-acceptation of the old frontier by the Utopian Government. Politically
-the campaign is beneath notice, as both territories were absorbed six
-months after in the recasting of the map after the Treaty of Lima, and
-the policing of them handed over to the now all-conquering Northern
-Power. Even as military history the operations deserve little more
-than passing notice, save, perhaps, as an example of the gross yet
-ever recurrent folly of placing numerically large commands in the
-hands of aged men. Mitza, upon the occasion of this fiasco, was over
-seventy-five years of age and long in his dotage, while the Prince
-of the Blood who had been chosen to lead (nominally, at least) the
-Patagonian Army was, apart from his increasing years, a notorious
-drunkard, and what is perhaps worse from a military point of view,
-daily subject to long and complete lapses of memory.”
-
-
-
-
-A Descendant of William Shakespeare
-
-
-It was during the early months of 1909 that I first became acquainted
-with a descendant of William Shakespeare the great dramatist, who
-happened at that moment to be in London.
-
-This gentleman (for he was of the male sex) was one of our American
-visitors, and was stopping at the Carlton Hotel. His name, as he
-assured me, Charlemagne K. Hopper. He resided, when he was at home, in
-the rapidly rising township of Bismarckville, Mo., where he added to a
-considerable private income the profits of an extensive corn business,
-dealing in wheat both white and red, and of both spring and autumn
-varieties, maize or Indian corn, oats, rye, buckwheat of every variety,
-seed corn, and bearded barley; indeed, no kind of cereal was unfamiliar
-to this merchant. His quick eye for the market and the geniality of his
-character had (he convinced me) made him friends in every circle. He
-has the entrée to the most exclusive coteries of Albany and Buffalo,
-and he had that season been received by the patrons of literature in
-Park Lane, Clarges Street, and Belgrave Square.
-
-Mr. Hopper’s descent from the Bard of Avon has been established but
-quite recently: these lines are perhaps the first to lay it before the
-public, and the discovery is an excellent example of the way in which
-two apparently insignificant pieces of evidence may, in combination,
-suggest an historical discovery of capital importance.
-
-It is, of course, common knowledge that Lady Barnard of Abington was
-a lineal descendant of William Shakespeare. She died (without issue,
-as was until recently supposed) at the end of the seventeenth century.
-But two almost simultaneous finds made in the early part of the present
-year have tended to modify the old-established conviction that this
-lady was the last descendant of the poet.
-
-The first of these finds was made by Mr. Vesey, of the British Museum,
-well known for his monograph on _The Family of Barnard of Abington_. It
-consisted in a small diary or notebook belonging to the Lady Barnard in
-question, in which, among other entries, was the record of the payment
-of twenty guineas made to a “Mrs. M.” just before Christmas of the
-year 1678. Mr. Vesey published this document in pamphlet form at the
-beginning of March, 1908.
-
-In the April number of _Cambridgeshire Notes and Queries_ Major Pepper,
-of Bellevue Villa, Teversham (not far from the Gog Magog Hills),
-published, as a matter of curiosity, a letter which he had purchased
-in a sale of MSS., but only so published on the chance that it might
-have an interest for those who follow the history of the county. It
-was a letter from one Joan Mandrell, the governess of Anne Hall,
-praying her correspondent to send “twenty guineas for the payment of
-rent.” The interest of this document to the students of local history
-lay in the fact that this Anne Hall was the ancestress of the Pooke
-family. Joan Mandrell’s letter was addressed upon the back of the
-sheet, though the name of the addressee was no longer decipherable,
-but the letters “...bington Hall” were, and are, clearly legible, as
-also the date. The letter further contains a minute description of
-Anne Hall’s return to London from a foreign school and of the writer’s
-devotion to the addressee, whom she treats throughout as mother of the
-young woman committed to her care. This Anne Hall later married Henry
-Pooke, whose son Charles made his fortune in politics under Walpole’s
-administration, founding the family and estate of Understoke, which is
-so familiar to every Cambridgeshire man.
-
-More than one student noted the coincidence between these two
-publications appearing but a fortnight apart; and at the end of May
-a paper was already prepared to be read to the Genealogical Society
-showing that the lineage of the poet had been continued in the Pookes.
-
-So far the matter was of merely antiquarian interest, for Charles
-Pooke’s great grandson, General Sir Arthur Pooke, had died in 1823 at
-Understoke without issue. It was, however, of some importance to all
-those who care for the literary history of their country to know that
-the blood of the poet could be traced so far.
-
-Just before the paper was read a further discovery came in to add a
-much greater and more living interest to the matter.
-
-Mr. Cohen, a charming and cultivated genealogist, whose business is
-mainly with America and the Colonies, had been for some months actively
-engaged for Mr. Hopper in tracing the arms of his, Mr. Hopper’s,
-maternal grandfather--a Mr. Pooke. When Mr. Cohen became acquainted
-with the facts mentioned above he cabled to Mr. Hopper, who sent
-by return of post copies of certain family documents which clearly
-proved that this Mr. Pooke was identical with a younger brother of Sir
-Arthur. This younger brother was an erratic and headstrong lad who had
-enlisted in early youth under Cornwallis, and had been killed, as it
-was believed, at Yorktown. He was as a fact wounded and made prisoner;
-he was not killed. He was released at the Peace of 1783, preferred
-remaining in the New World to facing his creditors in the Old, married
-the daughter of Peter Kymers, of Orange, N.J., and soon afterwards
-went West. In 1840 his only daughter Cassiopea, who was then keeping a
-small store in Cincinnati, married the Rev. Mr. Aesop Hopper, a local
-minister of the Hicksite persuasion. Charlemagne K. Hopper is the only
-issue of that marriage.
-
-The genealogy stands thus:
-
-
- WILLIAM SHAKESPEARE
- [+]1616 | (the Immortal Bard)
- |
- Susannah=+=Dr. John Hall
- |
- Elizabeth Lady Barnard (of Abington)
- |
- Anne Hall=+=Henry Pooke
- ([+]1703) |
- |
- Charles Pooke (First Bart.)
- [+]1772 |
- |
- +---------------------+-------------------+
- | | |
- William Gen. Sir Arthur Pooke Henry Pooke=+=Maria Kymers
- (died in infancy) o.s.p. 1823 [+]1830 |
- |
- Rev. Aesop Hopper=+=Cassiopea Pooke
- [+]1883 | [+]1902
- |
- CHARLEMAGNE K. HOPPER
-
-This family tree is now so well established that a full publication
-of the lineage, with a commentary upon the whole romantic story, is
-about to appear in one of the reviews from the pen of “Thersites,” a
-pseudonym which, as many of our readers are aware, barely hides the
-identity of one of our best-known experts upon Foreign Affairs.[1]
-
-Mr. Hopper did not remain in London beyond the close of the season.
-He had proposed to leave for Biskra a week or so after I made his
-acquaintance, but the change in the weather decided him to go no
-farther south than Palermo, whence he will return by Naples, Rome,
-Assisi, Genoa, and Boulogne, visiting on the way the quaint old city
-of Strasbourg. He will reach England again some time in the month of
-April, 1910, and on his return he proposes to devote some part of
-his considerable fortune to the erection of a suitable monument at
-Stratford-on-Avon in memory of his great ancestor. This generous gift
-will be accompanied by certain conditions, but there is little doubt
-that the town will accept the same, and that a fine fountain surrounded
-with symbolical figures of Justice, Prudence, and Mercy, and adorned
-with medallions of Queens Elizabeth and Victoria, George Washington and
-President Roosevelt, will soon adorn the quiet little Warwickshire town.
-
-Mr. Hopper also proposes to found a Shakespeare Scholarship at
-Sidney-Sussex College in Cambridge, and another at Wadham College in
-Oxford, each of the value of £300 a year, on the model of the Rhodes
-Scholarships, such scholarships to be granted not merely for book work
-but for business capacity and physical development. He has also planned
-a Chair for the propagation of Shakespearean knowledge in Glasgow, and
-he will endow a Reader in Shakespeare to the University of Aberdeen.
-
-Mr. Hopper is himself no mean _littérateur_, though a characteristic
-modesty has hitherto restrained him from publishing his verse, whether
-rhyme, blank, or in sonnet form. It is possible that now he is
-acquainted with his great descent his reluctance may be overcome and
-he may think better of this decision. I may add that Mr. Hopper places
-no credence in the Baconian theory, and hopes by diligent search among
-his family papers to prove the authenticity of at least the five major
-tragedies and _A Midsummer Night’s Dream_.
-
-Mr. Hopper is a total abstainer; he neither smokes nor chews; his
-religious views, always broad and tolerant, incline him strongly
-towards the New Theology, and, in common with many other men of
-exceptional intelligence, he has been profoundly affected by the
-popular translation of Dr. Haeckel’s _Riddle of the Universe_.
-
-Though delighting in social intercourse, Mr. Hopper has the true
-gentleman’s instinct against being lionised, and in particular stands
-in dread of the Duchess of Dundee. He has therefore begged me to
-insist as little as possible on his identity in anything I thought it
-my duty to record in print upon so interesting a matter, and I have so
-far acceded to his request as to have refrained from publishing these
-lines until he had left our shores; but I make little doubt that on his
-return in the spring this missing link between the two branches of the
-Anglo-Saxon kin cannot but receive the public recognition he deserves.
-
-
-
-
-On the Approach to Western England
-
-
-How difficult it is to say what one really feels about the landscapes
-and the countrysides and the subtle souls of Europe! I think that all
-men who are of European blood feel those countrysides and the soul of
-them very strongly; but I think that they feel as I feel now, as I
-write, a difficulty of expression. There is something in it like the
-difficulty of approaching a personality. One may admire, or reverence,
-or even love, but the personality is different from one’s own; it has
-a chastity of its own that must be respected, it has its boundaries
-and its honour, and one always fears that one will transgress such
-boundaries if one so much as speaks of the new thing one has come upon
-and desired to describe.
-
-With distant travel it is not so. One comes far over seas to a quite
-strange land and one treats it brutally. One’s appreciation is a sort
-of conquest; and you will note that those who speak of the Colonies,
-or of America, or of Africa, or of Asia speak of them with a hard
-intolerance as of something quite alien, or with a conventional set of
-phrases, as of something not worth the real expression of emotion. Now
-it is not so with our ancient provinces of Europe.
-
-A man coming out of the Cis-Alpine Gaul into old Italy across the
-Apennines feels something; indeed he feels it! What it is he feels very
-few men have written down; none has said it fully. You get out of one
-thing into something other when you climb up out of the Valley of the
-Parma and cross the High Apennines and look southward into the happy
-Garfagnana, and hear the noise of the little Serchio beginning in its
-meads. In the same way no one has described (to my knowledge at least)
-that shock of desolation and yet of mystery which comes upon a man when
-he crosses the River Couesnon and passes from Normandy into Brittany.
-Normandy is rich, Brittany is poor. Normandy loves ritual, Brittany
-religion. Normandy can make things, Brittany prayers. Normandy lives
-by Brittany in the matter of the soul, Brittany not by Normandy in the
-matter of the body. What Norman ever gave a Breton anything? You cross
-that river and everything changes. The men and women have dreamier
-eyes, the little children play more wonderfully, everybody is poor.
-
-Or, again, the passage from the hard industry of the Lancashire Plain
-suddenly on to the moors, where the farming men and women are so quiet
-and silent and self-respectful and seem so careful rather to preserve
-what they own than to add to it. Or, again, the startling passage
-over Carter Fell from the Englishmen of Rede-Dale to the Scotchmen of
-Jedburgh; or the sharp passage from the violent, active, sceptical,
-cruel, courageous, well-fed, ironical Burgundians into the gentle
-Germans of the Vosges: here is a boundary which is not marked in any
-political way, and yet how marked it is!
-
-Now in England we have many such approaches and surprises. I will not
-speak of that good change which comes upon a man as he travels south
-from Victoria Station and hears, almost at the same time that he first
-smells earth, the South Country tongue; nor will I speak of that other
-change which perhaps some of my readers know very well, the change from
-the active and grasping Cockney into the quiet tenacity of East Anglia.
-It is not my province--but if I am not wrong one strikes it within half
-an hour in the fast expresses--these people push with quants, they sail
-in wherries, they inhabit flat tidal banks, they are at peace. Nor will
-I here speak of the Marches and how, between a village and a village,
-one changes from the common English parish with the Squire’s house and
-the church and the cottages and all, into the hard slate roofs and the
-inner flame of Wales. Rather I would speak of something the boundary
-of which has never yet been laid down, but which people call (I think)
-“The West Country.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-One never knows, when one is tackling a thing like this, where one
-should first begin to tackle it, or by what end one should take it.
-Every man according to his own study, every man according to his own
-bent or accident of experience, takes it by his own handle, and the
-one man speaks of the language, the other of the hills, another of the
-architecture, another of the names. For my part I would desire to speak
-of all.
-
-When one gets over a certain boundary one is in a peculiar district
-of this world, a special countryside of Europe, a happy land with a
-conviction and a tradition of its own which may not have a name, but
-which is in general the West Country, and which by its hills and by its
-men and women convinces any true traveller at once of its personality.
-More than one man after a dreary wandering southwards through the
-Midlands has walked by night up one of its fresh streets to an inn and
-cried: “What! Have I come upon Paradise?” And this feeling comes also
-when one has climbed up the Cotswold through the little places of stone
-and suddenly sees the valley floor of the Severn so full of orchards,
-or has come over the flat deserts of the Upper Thames and had revealed
-to him the Golden Valley; or, after plodding through Wiltshire, has
-smelt an air which told him that not far off were the heavy tides of
-that haunted sea which runs between the Welsh hills and the peninsula
-of Cornwall and Devon. Men are lost in these seas and are saved in them
-perpetually as by miracles: I can appeal, in this print, to how many?
-They have been saved by the miracle of that water. Here Arthur was
-cast up by the waves: on to that flat salt, in its calm, full of mists,
-looked out those who gave us our legend of his Court.
-
-The boundary into this particular land is not only fetched by men on
-foot; in no matter what kind of travel one pursues, one recognises that
-boundary in a flash as one traverses it. It is not only the orchards,
-nor the abrupt and pointed hills, nor those domestic towns, happy with
-memories, nor those clear waters, nor those meadows, bounded by careful
-walls of stone, but something much more which tells one that one has
-got into the enchanted land. That spirit in it which made the stuff of
-our early history, which gave us the landing of Joseph of Arimathea and
-the glorious bush of Glastonbury and the cycle of the Round Table and
-those good verses with regard to passion unrestrained:
-
- ... well you wot that of such life
- There comes but sore battaille and strife
- And blood of men and hard Travail....
-
-And the prophecies of Merlin, and the story of Tristan and Iseult and
-all the vision of immortality and of resurrection inhabits it still.
-
-I never can believe (I speak for myself alone) that man can be
-dissociated from his earth any more than I can believe that the soul
-can be dissociated from the body. When men say to me that there is no
-soul, they can go on saying. But when men say that the soul can neglect
-the body then there is matter for argument; and when the argument is
-finished one finds it is not so. Now thus it is with the earth that
-breeds us and into which if we are content to die at home (and since
-we must die somewhere, better die there) we should at last return. The
-landscapes of Europe make European men, and it is not for nothing that
-the climate and the shapes of the hills and the nature of the building
-stuff change just where man changes.
-
-There is enchantment upon every high place of England, but the
-enchantment of the Devonshire Moors and of the Tors to the North and
-upwards from them is different from the enchantment of the Downs. There
-is a great delight in the proper fireplaces of the English people, but
-who, thoroughly alive, could mistake a fireplace in the West Riding for
-a fireplace on the Western Rother or either of these for a fireplace
-a little before Sherborne in the tumbles and the hollows where Dorset
-and Somerset meet? There is a richness of the speech and a contentment
-of the tongue which any man from the new countries might think common
-to all English agricultural men: yet there was a man from Sussex who,
-hearing the Sussex tongue in the Choughs at Yeovil, felt himself indeed
-come home. Our provinces differ very much.
-
-I have sometimes wondered whether in the process of time these little
-intimate differences of ours will survive. I wish they would! I wish
-they would, by the Lord! The Greeks were a little people, yet their
-provinces have survived, and the contempt that Aspasia felt for the
-Peloponnesus is (or should be) yet recorded. The hill tribes behind
-the Phoenician coast were a little people, but the fame of their
-religion, of their civil wars, has survived that of the merchants of
-Tyre. Rome, Veii, and the others were little places like Arundel and
-Pulborough, quite close together; but they were talked of, and men know
-much of them to-day.
-
-I could wish the differences of this island were so known and that
-people coming from a long way off would be humble and learn those
-differences. Surely a nation grows great in this way, by many provinces
-reacting one upon the other, recognised by the general will, sometimes
-in conflict with it. At any rate the West Country is a province of
-Europe; no one can get into it without touching his youth again and
-putting his fingers to earth, and getting sustenance from it, as a man
-does when he turns at the turning point of a race and touches earth
-with his fingers and is strong again to spring forward.
-
-
-
-
-The Weald
-
-
-Among the changes that have come upon England with the practice and
-facility for rapid travel many would put first the conquest (some would
-call it the spoiling) of little-known and isolated stretches of English
-landscape; and men still point out with a sort of jealous pride those
-districts, such as the upper Cotswolds, which modern travel has not
-disturbed. It seems to me that there is another feature attaching to
-the facility for travel, and that is this, that men can now tell other
-men what their countrysides are like; men can now compare one part of
-England with another in a way that once they could not do, and this
-facility in communication which so many deplore has so much good about
-it at least, in that it permits right judgments. There have been men in
-the past who have travelled widely for the mere pleasure of seeing many
-parts of their own country--Cobbett was one--but they were rare. As the
-towns grew, commercial travelling led men only to the towns, but now
-the thing is settling down. Men travel everywhere, all kinds of men,
-and no part of England remains of which a man can say that he loves it
-without knowing why he loves it, or that its character is indefinable.
-So it is with the Weald.
-
-All that roll of land which lies held between and above the chalk of
-South-Eastern England, the clay and the sand, and the uncontinuous
-short trees, the muddy little rivers, the scattered homesteads, the
-absence of levels, and almost the absence of true hills, the distant
-prospects northwards and southwards of quite another land, the blue
-lines and naked heights a day’s journey away against the sky--all that
-is the Weald. And it runs from the place where the two lines of chalk
-meet in Hampshire beyond Selborne, and beyond Petersfield, right away
-to the sea which it sweeps upon in a grand curve, between Pevensey
-(which was once the chief port of the Weald) and the heights round
-Hastings: for though these heights are in a manner part of the Weald,
-yet between them and the chalk again by Folkestone no true Wealden
-country lies.
-
-Unless a man understands the Weald he cannot easily write about the
-beginnings of England, and yet historians have not understood it.
-Only the men mixed into it and married with it or born upon it have
-understood it, and these, I say, until lately were not permitted by
-constant travel that judgment by analogy and by contrast which teaches
-us the true meaning of things that we had hitherto only instinctively
-known. Now a Wealden man can say certain things about his countryside
-which are of real value to history and perhaps to politics as well; at
-any rate, to politics in that larger sense of patriotism intelligently
-appreciating the future of one’s own land. Thus the Wealden man, now
-that he knows so much else in England, can tell the historian that the
-Weald was never the impenetrable forest which historians would make of
-it. It lay in a barrier between the ports of the Channel and the Thames
-Valley. But the barrier was not uninhabited; it was not impassable.
-Its scattered brushwood was patchy, its soil never permanently marshy
-nor ever for long distances difficult for a mounted man or a man on
-foot. The Weald from the very beginning had homesteads in it, but it
-had not agglomerations of houses, nor had it parishes save in very few
-places. If you look at the map now you can see how the old parishes
-stretch northward and southward in long strips from the chalk and
-loam country up towards the forest ridge which is the centre of the
-Weald. Those long strips were the hunting rights of the village folk
-and their lords. Of some parishes carved out of the central Weald we
-can accurately tell the origin. We know that they were colonised as it
-were, cleared, and had their church built for them in the great spurt
-of civilisation which marked the twelfth and thirteenth centuries. Men
-would understand the early history of the Weald better, and with it the
-early military history of South-Eastern England, if they would take
-one of the old forest paths--as that from Rusper, for instance, which
-works its way down, now as a metalled road, now as a green lane, now as
-a mere footpath with right of way, past the two old “broad” fords on
-the upper Arun and the marshy land east of Pulborough until it gets to
-Roundabout, and so to Storrington. All the history of communications in
-the Weald is exemplified in such a journey--and it is a journey which,
-though it is little more than twenty miles in length, takes quite a
-day. You have the modern high road, the green lane of the immediate
-past, and in places a mere track of remote antiquity. You see just
-how difficult it is to traverse the clay, how the occasional knobs of
-sand relieve your going; you can notice the character of the woodland
-where it is still untouched, and if you are wise you will notice one
-thing above all, and that is the character of the water. Now it is
-this which explains the Weald. Many bad bits of clay in Europe have
-formed highways for armies--for instance, all that rotten land in the
-great bend of the Loire which the Romans called the _Solitarium_, and
-which the French called the _Sologne_. But the Weald differs from most
-others in this, that good and plentiful water is hard to find. It is
-not the muddiness of the streams that is the chief defence of the place
-against human travel and habitation; it is the way in which, when rain
-has fallen and when water is plentiful, going is difficult, and the
-way in which, when a few days of dry weather come, the going becomes
-easy, but the water in the little streams disappears. There is evidence
-that the Romans, when they built their great military road--perhaps
-their only purely military road in Britain--across the Weald skipped
-one intervening station which should, upon the analogy of others, have
-been present upon it in the heart of the Weald, and pressed the march
-in this place to nearly double its usual length. The French armies
-do precisely the same thing in the bad lands of the Plain of Chalons
-to-day. Wherever there is ancient habitation in the Weald, or rather
-upon the fringes of the Weald, there is good, plentiful, and perennial
-water; elsewhere the Weald is still what it has been throughout
-history--a great rolling place, not deserted, not lonely, and yet not
-humanised. It is exactly the place for a seclusion from men, for you
-can see some men, but not too many of them; and I have always thought
-that King wise, who, when his enemies desired to kill him, wandered
-in the Andredsweald. The historians say that he took refuge in the
-impassable thickets of the forest. This is bosh. No man can sleep
-out in this climate for a season round, nor can any man live without
-cooked meat, nor do I see an Anglo-Saxon king living without wine and
-a good deal of pomp into the bargain. As to the wine, men might argue,
-but as to the pomp, they cannot. I will tell you what this King did
-without any doubt. He went from steading to steading and was royally
-entertained, and if you ask why it was a refuge for him the answer is
-that it was a refuge against the pursuit of many men.
-
-The Weald is a refuge against the pursuit of many men. It was so then:
-it is so now.
-
-And this leads me to my conclusion. The Weald will never be conquered.
-It will always be the Weald. To be conquered is to suffer the will
-of another: the Weald will suffer no will but its own. The men of
-the Weald drive out men odious to them in manner sometimes subtle,
-sometimes brutal, always in the long run successful. Economics break
-against the Weald as water breaks against stone. It is not a long walk
-from London. Your Londoner in summer comes and builds in it. So foreign
-birds their nests. But unlike the foreign birds, he does not return
-with each returning spring. For the Weald will welcome the bird for the
-pleasure the bird gives it, and drive it out when the pleasure is done.
-Now it welcomes the Londoner for his money, and this feature in the
-Londoner is not recurrent with the seasons.
-
-Here is some Latin which I am assured is grammatical and correctly
-spelled as well:
-
- Stat et stabit: manet et manebit, spectator orbis.
-
-She stands and still shall stand; she remains and shall remain: a
-watcher of the generations.
-
-
-
-
-On London and the Houses in it
-
-
-The aspect of London, as the man who knows it grows older, begins to
-take on characters of permanence and characters of change, both of
-which are comparable to those of a human life. It is perceived that
-certain qualities in the great soul of the place are permanent, and
-that the memories of many common details merge after the passage of
-years into a general picture which is steadfast and gives unity to the
-whole.
-
-This is especially true of the London skies, and more true, I think, of
-the London skies in autumn than at any other season of the year. Men go
-home from the City or from the Courts westward at an hour which is that
-of sunset, when the river catches more light than at any other time:
-the mixture of mist and smoke and of those shapes in our clouds, beyond
-the reek of the town, which are determined by the south-west wind
-blowing up the line of the valley, make together an impression which
-is the most lasting of the landscapes in which we live. These it was
-which inspired Turner when he drew them from the deserted room in the
-tower of Battersea Church, or from that corner house over the River,
-whence he could watch evening after evening the heavy but transparent
-colours which enter into the things he painted. Many foreigners, caught
-by the glamour of that artist, have missed the source whence his mellow
-and declining sunlight was inspired; its source was in these evening
-and autumn skies of London. There is a permanence also in the type of
-home which London built for more than two centuries, and which was
-laid down after the Great Fire, and there is a permanence in the older
-stonework. It is difficult or impossible to define what there is in
-common between the brown stock brick of London, which is the stuff of
-all its background whether of large houses or mean, and the black and
-white weathering of Portland stone. Perhaps the unity which seems to
-bind them is wholly in the mind, and depends merely upon association,
-but it is very strong upon anyone who has grown up from childhood into
-middle age surrounded by the vision of this town; and it would seem as
-though London was only London because of those rough surfaces of soft
-stonework, streaked with white wedges, scaling off the grime of St.
-Martin’s, or St. Clement Dane’s, or the fine front of the Admiralty,
-and standing out clear against the general brown mass of the streets.
-The quite new things have no character at all. One wonders what
-cosmopolitan need can have produced them. London never produced them,
-with their stone that so often is plaster, and their alien suggestion
-of whatever is least national in Paris or New York. London never
-produced them.
-
-The noise of the streets in spite of every change remains the same,
-it is the same comforting and distant roar, like the roar of large
-waters among hills, which every visitor has noticed, with its sharp
-contrast to the rattle and cries of other great capitals. Why it should
-be so no one, I think, has discovered, though many have described it,
-but it remains an unmistakable thing, and if a London man, who had
-travelled and was far away, should be set down by a spirit in London,
-not knowing where he was, when he heard through a window high above the
-street this distant and continuous roar, he would know that he had come
-home. It should surely in theory have disappeared, this chief physical
-characteristic of the great place, yet neither the new electricity and
-the hissing of the wires, nor the new paving, nor even the new petrol
-seem to change it. It is still a confused and powerful and subdued
-voice, like a multitude undecided. The silence also does not change.
-The way in which in countless spots you pass through an unobserved
-low passage, or through an inconspicuous narrow turning, and find
-yourself in a deserted place, from which the whole life of London seems
-blanketed out, has been to every traveller and to every native part of
-the charm and surprise of London. Dickens knew it very well, and makes
-of it again and again a dramatic something in his work which stamps it
-everywhere with the soul of London. In every decade men growing older
-deplore the disappearance of this or that sanctuary of isolation and
-silence, but in the aggregate they never disappear; something in the
-very character of the people reproduces them continually, and if any
-man will borrow the leisure--even a man who knows his London well--to
-peer about and to explore for one Saturday afternoon in one square mile
-of older London, how many such unknown corners will he not find! The
-populace also upon whom all this is founded remain the same.
-
-What changes in London are the things that also change in the life of
-a man, and nothing more than the relationship of particular spots and
-particular houses to our own lives. There is perhaps no city in the
-world where, under the permanence of the general type, there is so
-perpetual a flow and disturbance of association. It has even become
-normal to the life of the citizens, and the conception of a fixed home
-has left them. Here and there--but more and more rarely with every
-year--you may point out a great house which some wealthy family has
-chosen to inhabit for some few generations; but fixity of tenure,
-tradition, family tradition at least, and sacred hereditary things,
-either these were never proper to London or they have gone; it is this
-which overspreads a continued knowledge of London with an increasing
-loneliness and with memories that find no satisfaction or expression,
-but re-enter the heart of a man and do a hurt to him there.
-
-There are so many strange doors that should be familiar doors. Turning
-sometimes into some street where one has turned for years to find at a
-very well-known number windows of a certain aspect and little details
-in the drab exterior of the house, every one of which was as familiar
-as a smile, one is (by the mere association of years and of a gesture
-repeated a thousand times) in the act of coming to the steps and of
-seeking an entry. The whole place is as much one’s friend and as much
-indicative of one’s friend as would be his clothes or his voice or any
-other external thing. He is not there, and the house is worse than
-empty. London grows full of such houses as a man grows older. Most of
-us have other losses sharper still, which men of other cities know less
-well, for most of us pass and repass the house where we were born, or
-where as children we gathered all the strongest impressions of life. It
-is impossible to believe that other souls are inheriting the effect of
-those familiar rooms. It is worse than a death; it is a kind of treason.
-
-I know a house in Wimpole Street of which every part is as familiar
-quite as the torn leaves of the old books of childhood, but I have
-passed it and repassed it for how many years, forbidden an entrance,
-and finding that ancient and fixed friend in league, so to speak,
-with strangers. Or, in another manner, which of us does not know a
-house like any other house, amid the thousand unmarked houses in the
-better streets of the town, but to us quite individual because there
-met within it once so many who were for us the history of our time?
-It was in that room (where are the three windows) that she received
-her guests, retaining on into the last generations of a worse and
-degraded time the traditions of a better society. Here came men who
-could discuss and reveal things that are now distorted legends, and
-whose revelations were real because they came as witnesses: soldiers of
-the Crimea, of India, of Italy, and of Algiers, or men who remembered
-great actions within the State: actions that were significant through
-conviction, before we became what we are. Here was breeding; here were
-the just limits of tone and emphasis and change, and here was that
-type of intercourse which was surely as great and as good a thing as
-Europe or England has known. Who sees that room to-day? What taste has
-replaced her taste? What choice of stuff or colour mars the decoration
-on the walls? What trash or alien thing takes the place of that careful
-elaborate womanly work in which her travels throughout the world were
-recorded, and in which the excellent modesty of an art sufficient for
-her purpose reproduced in line and in colour the ironic nobility of her
-mind and the wide expanse of her learning? We do not know and we cannot
-know. The house is neither ours nor hers. To whomever it has passed it
-has turned traitor to us who knew.
-
-It is better, I think, for those who have such memories when the
-material things that enshrine them wholly disappear, for then there is
-no jar, no agony of contrast between that society which once was and
-this which now is, with its quality of wealth and of the uses to which
-wealth is put to-day. If we must suffer the intolerable and clumsy
-presence of accidental power--power got suddenly, got anyhow, got by
-chance, untrained and unworthy--at least may we suffer such things in
-their own surroundings, in huge conservatories, with loud music, with
-an impression of partial drunkenness all around, and a certainty all
-around of intellectual incompetence and of sprawling bodies and souls.
-It is better to suffer these new things in such surroundings as may
-easily let one believe that one is not in London at all, but on the
-Riviera; and let the heat be excessive, and let there be a complete
-ignorance of all wine except champagne, and let it be a place where
-champagne is supposed to be one wine. Then the frame will suit the
-picture, and there will at least be no desecration of material things
-by human beings unworthy of the bricks and mortar. I say it is much
-better when the old houses disappear, at least the old houses in which
-we knew and loved the better people of a better time:--and yet the
-youth or childhood in which so many of us saw the last of it is not
-thirty years, is barely twenty years dead!
-
-
-
-
-On Old Towns
-
-
-Every man who has a civilised backing behind him, every man, that is,
-born to a citizenship which has history to nourish it, knows, loves,
-desires to inhabit, and returns to, the Old Towns; but the more one
-thinks of it the more difficult one finds it to determine in what this
-appetite consists.
-
-The love of a village, of a manor, is one thing. You may stand in some
-place where you were born or brought up, especially if it be some
-place in which you passed those years in which the soul is formed to
-the body, between, say, seven years of age and seventeen, and you may
-look at the landscape of it from its height, but you will not be able
-to determine how much in your strong affection is of man and how much
-of God. True, nearly everything in a good European landscape has been
-moulded, touched, coloured, and in a sense made by Christian men. It is
-like a sort of tapestry which man has worked upon the stuff that God
-gave him; but, still, any such landscape from the height of one of our
-villages has surely more in it of God than of man. For one thing there
-is the sky; and then it must be admitted that the lines of the hills
-were there before man touched them, and though the definite outline
-of the woods, the careful thinning of them which allows great trees
-to grow, the noble choice and contrast of foliage, the sharp edge of
-cultivated against forest land, the careful planting of the tallest
-kinds of things, pine trees and elms, are all man’s work; and though
-the sights of water in between are usually man’s work also, yet in the
-air that clothes the scene and in all its major lines, man did not make
-it at all: he has but used it and improved it under the inspiration of
-That which made the whole.
-
-But with the Old Towns it is not so. They please us in proportion to
-their apparent intensity of effort; the more man has worked the more
-can we embed ourselves within them. The more different is every stone
-from another, and the more that difference is due to the curious spirit
-of man the more are we pleased. We stand in little lanes where every
-single thing about us, except the strip of sky overhead, is man’s
-work, and the strip of sky overhead becomes what all skies are in all
-pictures--something subordinate to man, an ornament.
-
-One could make a list of the Old Towns and go on for ever: the
-sea-light over the red brick of King’s Lynn from the east, and the
-other sea-light from the south over that other King’s town, Lyme
-Regis; the curious bunch of Rye; the hill of Poitiers all massed up
-with history, and in whose uneven alleys all the armies go by, from
-the armies of the Gauls to the army that makes a noise about them
-to-day: the hill of Lincoln, where one looks up from the Roman Gate
-to the towers completing the steep hill; the two hills of Cassel and
-of Montreuil, similarly packed with all that men are, have been,
-and remain; the quadrated towns, some surely Roman, some certainly
-so; Chichester, Winchester, Horsham, Oxford, Chester, and a hundred
-others--England is most fruitful in these; the towns that draw their
-life from rivers and have high steep walls of stone or brick going
-right down into the waters, Albi, Newcastle as it once was; in its own
-small way Arundel as it still is; the towns of the great flats, where
-men for some reason can best give rein to their fancy, Delft, Antwerp
-(that part of it which counts), Bruges, Louvain; Ypres also where the
-cooking is so vile.
-
-One might continue for ever this futile list of towns--this is in
-common to them all, that wherever men come across them in travel they
-have a sense of home and the soul reposes.
-
-Nowhere have I found this more than in the curious and to some the
-disappointing town of Arles. Arles has about it, more than any other
-town I know, the sentiment of protracted human experience. They dig
-and find stone tools and weapons. They dig again and find marks of log
-huts, bronze pins, and the arms of the Gauls. And then, apparent to
-the eye and still living as it were, and still breathing, as it were,
-the upper air which is also ours, not buried away like dead things,
-but surviving, is Greece, is Rome, is the Dark Ages, is the Middle
-Ages, is the Renaissance, is the religious quarrel, is the Eighteenth
-Century, is the Revolution, is to-day. I have sometimes thought that
-if a man should go to Arles with the desire deliberately to subject
-himself at once to the illusion and to the reality of the past, here he
-could do so. He could look curiously for a day at the map and see how
-the Rhone had swept the place for thousands upon thousands of years,
-making it a sort of corner at the head of its great estuary, and later
-of its delta; then he might spend the day wondering at the flints and
-the way they were chipped, and getting into the minds of the men that
-made them. Then he should spend a day with bronze, and then a day with
-the Gaulish iron. After that, for as many weeks as he chose, let him
-study the stones which Greece and which Rome have still left in the
-public places of the city; the half of the frontal of the great temple
-built into his hotel; the amphitheatre upon which he suddenly comes as
-he wanders up a narrow modern street; the Arenæ. The Dark Ages, which
-have left so little in Europe, have here left massive towers in which
-the echoes of the fighting linger, and huge rough stones which the Dark
-Ages did not quarry but which they moved from the palaces of the Romans
-to their own fortresses, and which by their very presence so removed
-bring back to one the long generations in which Europe slept healthily
-and survived.
-
-St. Trophime is all the Middle Ages. You may walk quietly round its
-cloister and see those ten generations of men, from the hugeness of
-the Crusades to the last delicacies of the fifteenth century. The
-capitals of the columns go in order, the very earliest touch on that
-archaic grotesque which underlies every civilisation, the latest in
-their exact realism and their refinement, prove the decline of a whole
-period of the soul. Lest Arles should take up too much of this short
-space, I would remind the reader only of this ironical and striking
-thing: that on its gates as you go out of the city northward, you may
-see sculptured in marble what the Revolution but--a century ago--took to
-be a primal truth common to all mankind. It concerns the sanctity of
-property. Consider that doctrine to-day!
-
-But not Arles, though it is so particular an example, not Delft, not
-the old English seaports which so perfectly enshrine our past, not
-Coutances which everyone should know, alone explain what the Old Towns
-are, but rather a knowledge of them all together explains it.
-
-The Old Towns are ourselves; they are mankind. In their contortion, in
-their ruined regularity, in their familiar oddities, and in their awful
-corners of darkness, in their piled experience of the soul which has
-soaked right into their stone and their brick and their lime, they are
-the caskets of man. Note how the trees that grow by licence from the
-crevices of their battlements are a sort of sacramental saving things,
-exceptional to the fixed lines about them, and note how the grass
-which grows between the setts of their paving stones comes up ashamedly
-and yet universally, as good memories do in the oldness of the human
-mind, and as purity does through the complexity of living.
-
-Which reminds me: Once there was a band of men, foolish men, Bohemian
-men, indebted men, who went down to paint in a silly manner, and chose
-a town of this sort which looked to them very old and wonderful; and
-there they squatted for a late summer month and talked the detestable
-jargon of their trade. They talked of tones and of values and of the
-Square Touch, and Heaven knows what nonsense, the meanwhile daubing
-daub upon daub on to the canvas; praising Velasquez (which after all
-was right) and ridiculing the Royal Academy. They ridiculed the Royal
-Academy.
-
-Well, now, these men were pleased to see in autumn grass growing
-between the setts of the street, especially in one steep street where
-they lived. It rejoiced their hearts; they said within themselves,
-“This is indeed an Old Town!” But the Town Council of that town
-had said among themselves, “What if it become publicly known that
-grass grows in our streets? We shall be thought backward; the rich
-will not come to visit us. We shall not make so much money, and our
-brothers-in-law and others indebted to us will also grow impoverished.
-Come! Let us pull up this grass.”
-
-So they paid a poor man, who would otherwise have starved, the amount
-of his food on the condition that he should painfully pull up all the
-grass, which he did.
-
-Then the artists, seeing him at work, paid him more not to pull it
-up. Then the Town Council, finding out this, dismissed him from their
-employ, and put upon the job a distant man from some outlandish county,
-and had him watched, and he pulled up all the grass, every blade of it,
-by night, but thoroughly. The next morning the artists saw what had
-been done, and they went out by train to another town, and bought grass
-seed and also a little garden soil, and the next night they scattered
-the soil carefully between the stones and sowed the grass seed; and the
-comedy is not yet ended.
-
-There is a moral to this, but I will not write it down, for in the
-first place it may not be a good moral, and in the second place I have
-forgotten what it was.
-
-
-
-
-A Crossing of the Hills
-
-
-When it was nearly noon my companion said to me:
-
-“By what sign or track do you propose to cross the mountains?” For
-the mountains here seem higher than any of highest clouds: the valley
-beneath them is broad and full of fields: beyond, a long day off,
-stands in a huge white wall the Sierra del Cadi. Yet we must cross
-these hills if ever we were to see the secluded and little-known
-Andorrans. For the Andorrans live in a sort of cup fenced in on every
-side by the Pyrenees; it was on this account that my companion asked me
-how I would cross over to their land and by what sign I should find my
-way.
-
-When I had thought a little I answered:
-
-“By none. I propose to go right up at them, and over unless I find some
-accident by which I am debarred.”
-
-“Why, then,” said he, “let us strike up at once, walking steeply until
-we come into a new country.”
-
-This advice was good, and so, though we had no longer any path, and
-though a mist fell upon us, we began walking upwards, and it was like
-going up a moor in the West Riding, except that it went on and on and
-on, hour after hour, and was so steep that now and then one had to use
-one’s hands.
-
-The mist was all round us; it made a complete silence, and it drifted
-in the oddest way, making wisps of vapour quite close to our faces. Nor
-had we any guide except the steepness of the hill. For it is a rule
-when you are caught in a storm or mist upon the hills, if you are going
-up, to go the steepest way, and though in such a fog this often took us
-over a knoll which we had to descend again, yet on the whole it proved
-a very good rule. It was perhaps the middle of the afternoon, we had
-been climbing some five hours, we had ascended some six thousand or
-seven thousand feet, when to our vast astonishment we stumbled upon a
-sort of road.
-
-It must here be explained why we were astonished. The way we had come
-led nowhere; there were no houses and no men. The Andorrans whom we
-were about to visit have no communication northward with the outer
-world except a thin wire leading over the hills, by which those who
-wish to telephone to them can do so; and of all places in Europe,
-Andorra is the place out of which men least desire to get and to
-which men least desire to go. It is like that place beyond Death of
-which people say that it gives complete satisfaction and from which
-certainly no one makes any effort to escape, and yet to which no one is
-very anxious to go. When, therefore, we came to this road, beginning
-suddenly half way up a bare mountain and appearing unexplained through
-the mist, we were astonished.
-
-It was embanked and entrenched and levelled as would be any great
-French military road near the frontier fortresses. There was a little
-runnel running underneath the road, conveying a mountain stream; it was
-arched with great care, and the arch was made of good hewn stone well
-smoothed. But when we came right on to this road we found something
-more astonishing still: we found that it was but the simulacrum or
-ghost of a road. It was not metalled; it was but the plan or trace or
-idea of a road. No horses had ever trod its soft earth, no wheels had
-ever made a rut in it. It had not been used at all. Grass covered it.
-The explanation of this astonishing sight we did not receive until
-we had spoken in their own tongue the next day to the imperturbable
-Andorrans.
-
-It was as though a school of engineers had been turned on here for
-fun, to practise the designing of a road in a place where land was
-valueless, upon the very summit of the world.
-
-We two men, however, reasoned thus (and reasoned rightly as it turned
-out):
-
-“The tall and silent Andorrans in a fit of energy must have begun this
-road, though later in another fit they abandoned it. Therefore it will
-lead towards their country.”
-
-And as we were very tired of walking up a steep which had now lasted
-for so many hours, we determined to follow the large zigzags of this
-unknown and magic half-road, and so we did.
-
-It was the oddest sensation in the world walking in the mist a mile
-and more above the habitations of men, upon unmetalled, common earth
-which yet had the exact shape of pavements, cuttings, and embankments
-upon either side, with no sort of clue as to where it led or as to why
-men began to make it, and still less of an argument as to why they had
-ceased.
-
-It went up and up in great long turns and z’s upon the face of the
-mountain, until at last it grew less steep; the mist grew colder, and
-after a long flat I thought the land began to fall a little, and I said
-to my companion:
-
-“We are over the watershed, and beneath us, miles beneath us, are the
-Andorrans.”
-
-When by the continuance of the fall of the land we were certain of
-this we took off our hats, in spite of the fog which still hung round
-us very wet and very cold and quite silent, and expected any moment a
-revelation.
-
-We were not disappointed. Indeed, this attitude of the mind is never
-disappointed. Without a moment’s warning the air all round us turned
-quite bright and warm, a strong gust blew through the whirling vapour,
-and we saw through the veil of it the image of the sun. In a moment
-his full disc and warmth was on us. The clouds were torn up above us;
-the air was immediately quite clear, and we saw before us, stamped
-suddenly upon the sight, a hundred miles of the Pyrenees.
-
-They say that everything is in the mind. If that be true, then he and I
-saw in that moment a country which was never yet on earth, for it was
-a country which our minds had not yet conceived to be possible, and it
-was as new as though we had seen it after the disembodiment of the soul.
-
-The evening sun from over Spain shone warm and low, and every
-conceivable colour of the purples and the browns filled up the mountain
-tangle, so that the marvel appeared as though it had been painted
-carefully in a minute way by a man’s hand; but the colours were filled
-with light, and so to fill colour with light is what art can never do.
-The main range ran out upon either side, and the foothills in long
-series of peaks and ridges fell beneath it, until, beyond, in what
-might have been sky or might have been earth, was the haze of the
-plains of Ebro.
-
-“It is no wonder,” said I to my companion, “that the Andorrans
-jealously preserve their land and have refused to complete this road.”
-
-When I had said that we went down the mountain side. The lower our
-steps fell the more we found the wealth and the happiness of men. At
-last walls and ploughed land appeared. The fields grew deep, the trees
-more sturdy, and under the shelter of peaks with which we had just been
-acquainted, but which after an hour or so of descent seemed hopelessly
-above us, ran rivers which were already tamed and put to a use. One
-could see mills standing upon them. So we went down and down.
-
-There is no rejuvenescence like this entry into Andorra, and there is
-no other experience of the same sort, not even the finding of spring
-land after a month of winter sea: that vision of brilliant fields
-coming down to meet one after the endless grey waste of the sea.
-
-It was, I tell you again, a country completely new, and it might have
-been of another world, much better than our own.
-
-So we came at last to the level of the valley, and the first thing we
-saw was a pig, and the second was a child, and the third was a woman.
-The pig ran at us: for he was lean. The child at first smiled at us
-because we were human beings, and then divining that we were fiends who
-had violated his sacred home began to cry. The woman drove the pig from
-us and took in the child, and in great loneliness and very sad to be so
-received we went until we should find men and citizens, and these we
-found of our own size, upstanding and very dignified, and recognised
-them at once to be of the wealthy and reserved Andorrans. It was clear
-by their faces that the _lingua franca_ was well known to them, so I
-said to the first in this universal tongue:
-
-“Sir, what is the name of this village?”
-
-And he replied: “It is Saldeu.” But this he said in his own language,
-which is somewhat more difficult to understand than the _lingua franca_.
-
-“I take it, therefore,” said I, “that I am in the famous country of
-Andorra.”
-
-To which he replied: “You are not many miles from the very town itself:
-you approach Andorra ‘the Old.’”
-
-The meaning of this I did not at first exactly understand, but as we
-went on, the sun having now set, I said to my companion: “Were not
-those epithets right which we attached to the Andorrans in our fancy
-before we attempted these enormous hills? Were we not right to call
-them the smiling and the tall Andorrans?”
-
-“You are right,” he answered to me, thinking carefully over every word
-that he said. “To call them the secluded and the honourable Andorrans
-is to describe them in a few words.”
-
-We then continued our way down the darkening valley, whistling little
-English songs.
-
-
-
-
-The Barber
-
-
-Humanity, my dear little human race, is at once more difficult to get
-at and more generally present than you seem to know. You are yourselves
-human beings, dear people. Yet how many have so fully understood their
-fellows (that is, themselves) that they could exactly say how any man
-will behave or why any man behaves as he does? But with that I am not
-to-day concerned. I am concerned with another matter, which is the
-impossibility of getting away from these brothers of ours, even if we
-desire to do so.
-
-Note you here, humans, that in reality you do not, even the richest of
-you, try to get away from your brothers. You do not like solitudes; you
-like sham, theatrical solitudes. You like the Highlands on condition
-that you have driven away the people rooted there, but also on
-condition that you may have there the wine called champagne. Now if you
-had seen that wine made, the gathering of the apples in the orchards
-of the Rhine and the Moselle, the adding of the sugar, the watching of
-the fermentation, and the corking with a curious machine, you would
-appreciate that if you insist upon champagne in the Highlands, then
-you are certainly taking humanity with you. If you could follow the
-thing farther and see them all passing the stuff on, each a little
-afraid of being found out, then you would know that as you drank your
-champagne in the most solitary valley you had done far from getting
-rid of humanity. All the grotesque of man and all his jollity, all his
-stupidity and all his sin, went with you into your hermitage and it
-would have gone with you anyhow without the champagne. You cannot make
-a desert except by staying away from it yourself. All of which leads me
-to the Barber.
-
-First, then, to give you the true framework of that astonishing man.
-For exactly thirty-six hours there had been nothing at all in the way
-of men; and if thirty-six hours seems but a short time to you as you
-read it, it certainly was a mighty long time for me who am writing
-this. Of those thirty-six hours the first few had been enlivened (that
-is, from five in the morning till about noon) with the sight of a
-properly made road, of worked stone, of mown grass, and of all that
-my fellow beings are busily at throughout the world. For though I had
-not seen a man, yet the marks of men were all around, and at last as I
-went into the Uplands I bade farewell to my kind in the shape of an old
-rusty pair of rails still united by little iron sleepers, one link of a
-Decauville railway which a generation before had led to a now abandoned
-mine.
-
-My way over the mountains lay up a gulley which turned as unexpectedly
-as might the street of a mediæval town; and which was quite as narrow
-and as enwalled as the street of any city; but instead of houses there
-were ugly rocks, and instead of people very probably viewless devils.
-Still, though I hated to be away from men I went on because I desired
-to cross the high ridge which separated me from a dear pastoral people,
-of whom I had heard from poets and of whom I had read in old books.
-They were a democracy simple and austere, though a little given to
-thieving, and every man was a master of his house and a citizen within
-the State. This curious little place I determined to see, though the
-approach to it was difficult. There are many such in Europe, but this
-one lies peculiarly alone, and is respected, and I might say in a sense
-worshipped, by the powerful Government to which it is nominally subject.
-
-Well, then, I went on up over the ridge and, by that common trick of
-mountains, the great height and the very long way somehow missed me; it
-grew dark before I was aware, and when I could have sworn I was about
-four thousand feet up I was close upon eight thousand. I had hoped to
-manage the Farther Valleys before nightfall, but when I found it was
-impossible what I did was this: I scrambled down the first four or five
-hundred feet of the far side before it was quite dark, until I came
-to the beginnings of a stream that leapt from ledge to ledge. It was
-not large enough to supply a cottage well, but it would do to camp
-by, for all one needs is water, and there was a little brushwood to
-burn. Next morning with the first of the light I went on my scramble
-downwards--and it was the old story (which everyone who has wandered
-in the great mountains of Europe knows so well), I was in the Wrong
-Valley. I was used to that sort of thing, and I recognised the signs of
-it at once. I made up my mind for a good day’s effort, which, when one
-is by oneself, is an exasperating thing; I tried to guess from my map
-what sort of error I had made (and failed). I knew that if I followed
-running water I should come at last to men. At about three o’clock in
-the afternoon I made a good meal of stale bread, wine, and my companion
-the torrent, which had now grown to be a sort of river and made as much
-noise as though it were a politician. Then I thought I would sleep
-a little, and did so (you must excuse so many details, they are all
-necessary). It was five when I rose and took up my journey again. I
-shouldered the pack and stolidly determined that another night out in
-these warmer lowlands would not hurt me, when I saw something which is
-quite unmistakable upon the grass of those particular hills, a worn
-patch, and another worn patch a yard or two ahead. That meant a road,
-and a road means men--sooner or later.
-
-Sure enough, within half a mile, the worn patches having become now
-almost continuous, I rounded a big rock and there was a group of huts.
-
-There were perhaps two dozen of them, perhaps more. Three-quarters were
-built of great logs with large, very flat roofs over them held down by
-stones; one quarter were built of the same rough stones, and there was
-a tiny church of dirt colour, with two windows; and neither window had
-glass in it. I had found men. And I had found something more.
-
-For as I went down the main street of this Polity (they had “Main
-Street” stuck up in their language at the corner of the only possible
-mud alley of their town) I saw that blessed sight which sings to the
-heart and is one of the thirteen signs of civilisation, a barber’s
-pole. It was not very good; it was not planed or polished; the bark was
-still upon the chestnut wood of it; but there was a spiral of red round
-it in the orthodox fashion, at the end of it a tuft of red wool, and
-underneath it in very faded rough letters upon a board the words, “Here
-it is barbered.” More was to follow. I confess that I desired to draw,
-for beyond the little huts the mountains, once dreadful, now, being
-so far above me, compelled my attention. But just as I had sat down
-upon a great stone to draw their outline, there appeared through the
-disgusting little door under the barber’s pole one of those humans whom
-I have mentioned so often in these lines.
-
-He was about thirty, but he had never known care; his complexion
-was pink and white, his eyes were lively, his brown hair was short,
-curled, trimmed and oily, and some fifteen degrees from the middle of
-his head to the eastward went a very clear white line which was the
-parting of his hair. His two little moustaches curled upwards like
-rams’ horns; his chin was square and firm, but very full and healthy.
-He was looking out for customers. Oh, Humanity, my brothers, Divine
-Object of the Positivists, Plaything of the Theologians, Food of the
-God of War, Great of Destiny, Victim of Experience, Doubtful of Doom,
-Foreknowing of Death, Humanity enslaved, exultant, always on the march,
-never arriving, the only thing yet made that can laugh and can cry,
-Humanity, in fine, which was generously designed as matter for poets,
-hear! He was looking out for customers! Even to the railways of his own
-land it was nearly a hundred miles; no one read print; beyond Latin no
-foreign language perhaps was known. No vehicle on wheels had ever been
-into that place, even the maps were wrong, no one therein had seen a
-metalled road, a ship of any kind, nor perhaps one polished stone. But
-he was looking out for customers.
-
-He spotted me. He used no subterfuge; he smiled and beckoned with his
-finger, and I went at once, as men do when the Figure appears at the
-Doorway of the Feast and beckons some one of the revellers into the
-darkness. I obeyed. He put a towel round my neck; he lathered my chin;
-I gazed at the ceiling, and he began to shave.
-
-On the ceiling was an advertisement in the English tongue. I am inured
-by this time to the inconceivable stupidity of modern commerce, but (as
-the Pwca said to the Acorn) “the like of this I never saw.” There most
-certainly was not a man in the whole place who had ever heard of the
-English language, nor, I will bet a boot, had anyone been there before
-me who did, at any rate not since the pilgrimages stopped. Yet there
-was this advertisement staring me in the face, and what it told me to
-do was to buy a certain kind of bicycle. It gave no evidence in favour
-of the thing. It asserted. It said that this bicycle was the best.
-There was a picture of a young man riding on the bicycle, and under it
-in very small letters in the language of the country an address where
-such bicycles might be bought. The address was in a town as far away as
-Bristol is from Hull, and between it was range upon range of mountains,
-and never a road.
-
-I watched this advertisement, and the Barber all the while talked to me
-of the things of this world.
-
-He would have it that I was a stranger. He mentioned the place--it
-was about eighty miles away--from which I came. He said he knew it at
-once by my accent and my hesitation over their tongue. He asked me
-questions upon the politics of the place, and when I could not reply
-he assured me that he meant no harm; he knew that politics were not
-to be discussed among gentlemen. He recommended to me what barbers
-always recommend, and I saw that his bottles were from the ends of the
-earth--some French, some German, some American--at least their labels
-were. Then when he had shaved me he very politely began to whistle a
-tune.
-
-It was a music-hall tune. I had heard it first eighteen months before
-in Glasgow, but it had come there from New York. It was already
-beginning to be stale in London--it did not seem very new to the
-Barber, for he whistled it with thorough knowledge, and he added trills
-and voluntary passages of merit and originality. I asked him how much
-there was to pay. He named so considerable a sum that I looked at him
-doubtfully, but he still smiled, and I paid him.
-
-I asked him next how far it might be to the next village down the
-valley. He said three hours. I went on, and found that he had spoken
-the truth.
-
-In that next village I slept, and I went forward all the next day and
-half the next before I came to what you would call a town. But all the
-while the Barber remained in my mind. There are people like this all
-over the world, even on the edges of eternity. How can one ever be
-lonely?
-
-
-
-
-On High Places
-
-
-All over the world every kind of man has had for the high places of
-his country, or for the high places that he has seen in travel (though
-these last have made upon him a lesser impression), a sentiment closely
-allied to religion and difficult to fit in with common words. It is
-upon such sites that sacrifice upon special occasion has been offered.
-It is here that you will find rare, unvisited, but very holy shrines
-to-day, and even in its last and most degraded form the men of our
-modern societies, who are atrophied in such things, spur themselves to
-a special emotion by distant voyages in which they can satisfy this
-adoration of a summit over a plain. It is not capable of analysis; but
-how marvellously it fills the mind. It is not difficult to understand
-that monk of the Dark Ages--to be accurate, of the early eleventh
-century--who, having doubtless seen Paris a hundred times from the
-height of Montmartre, could not believe that the martyrdom of St. Denis
-had taken place on the plain. Something primal in him demanded the
-high and lonely place as the scene of the foundation of the Church of
-Lutetia, and he would have it that St. Denis was martyred there. All
-the popular stories were with him, and the legend arose. Up and down
-Europe, wherever there are hills, you will find upon conspicuous crags
-or little peaks, upon the loneliest ridges, a chapel. There is one such
-on a hill near Remiremont; there is another at Roncesvalles; there is
-another on the high platform at Portofino; there is another on the
-very height called Holy Cross above Urgel. In its way, St. Martha’s
-in Surrey is of that kind. There are hundreds everywhere throughout
-Christendom, and they witness to this need of man for which, I say,
-there is no name.
-
-I have heard of a mountain in Ireland, in the west of that country, to
-the summit of which upon a certain day of the year the people and the
-priests will go together, and Mass will be said in the open air upon
-that height. And so it is in several places of the Vosges and of the
-Pyrenees, and in one or two, I believe, of the foothills of the Alps.
-Everywhere men associate the exaltation of the high places with worship.
-
-It is to be noticed that where men cannot satisfy this emotion by
-the spectacle of distant hills, or by the presence of nearer ones
-which they can climb upon occasion, they remedy the defect either in
-their architecture or with their trees. The people of Northern France
-lacked height in their landscape, and in their forests the trees were
-neither of the sort nor stature which commonly satisfy the need of
-which I speak. Their architecture supplies it. It has reached its most
-tremendous expression in Beauvais, its most stately in Flanders. No
-man well understands what height can be in architecture unless he
-has watched one of the great Flemish steeples from a vantage point
-upon another. They are sufficiently amazing when you see them, as they
-were meant to be seen, from the flat pastures outside the city walls.
-But where most you can appreciate the way in which they make up the
-impression of the Netherlands is from a platform such as that of Delft,
-halfway up the tower just below the bells. You look out to an horizon
-which is that of a misty sea, land absolutely level, and here and there
-the line between earth and sky is cut by these shafts of human effort
-whose purpose it is--and they achieve it--to give high places to a
-plain. So also Strasburg stands up in that great river plain of which
-it is the centre, and so Salisbury towers above the central upland of
-South England. And so Chichester over the deep loam of the sea plain
-of Sussex. You will further note that as you approach the mountains
-this attempt grows less in human effort, and is replaced by something
-else. At Bordeaux on the great flat sweep of the river, with the level
-vineyards all round about, you have a mighty spire, sprung probably
-from English effort and looking down the river as a landmark and a
-feature in the sky. But close against the Pyrenees, nay when, two days’
-walking south of the city, you first begin to see those mountains,
-height fails you in architecture. You have not got it at Dax, nor in
-the splendid and deserted aisles of Auch, nor in the complicated detail
-of St. Bertrand; nor is there any example of it in Perpignan; but at
-Narbonne again, where what you have to look at are the flat approaches
-of the sea, height comes in in a peculiar way; it is the height not
-of towers, but of walls. It has been remarked by many that effect of
-this kind is lacking in Italy; but in Italy, wherever you may be, you
-have the mountains. South of the Sierra Guadarama there in no attempt
-to diversify the line of the horizon in this fashion. There is nothing
-in Madrid to which a man looks up in order to satisfy this need for
-the high places, nor in the churches of the villages round about.
-The millions spent upon the Escorial were spent with no such object;
-but then, south of those mountains, the range stands up in a steep
-escarpment and everywhere is master of the plain. To the North, where
-they sink away more gradually and form no crest upon which the eye can
-repose, at once man supplies for himself the uplifting of the face
-which his soul must have, and the glorious vision of Segovia is proof
-of it. The castle and the cathedral of that famous city are like a tall
-ship riding out to sea; or they are like a man preaching from a rock
-with uplifted hands; or they are like the miraculous appearance of some
-divine messenger standing facing one above the steeps of the hill.
-
-It is so in all the places I can remember; it is so in the Valley of
-the Ebro, where Saragossa raises a tall nave and the tall columns of
-the Pilar, whereas, if you go northward and begin to see the hills
-this feature fails. It is not apparent in Huesca; Jaca, right under the
-High Pyrenees, has none of it. I can remember exceptions; one place,
-among the most famous in Europe, which was built for a mountain kingdom
-and under the influence of mountaineers, though it stands in a plain.
-And that is Brou, which seems to be made for mountains rather than
-for the plain. And there are many modern errors in the matter due to
-the copying of some style pedantically and to the absence of native
-inspiration. The chief of these is Lourdes, whose hideous basilica
-ought never to have attempted height in the midst of those solemn
-hills. But the history of man when he is dealing with his shrines is a
-history of perpetual betterment, and some day Lourdes will be replaced
-by a much worthier thing. The crypt is already excellent, and many
-good changes in European building have begun with the crypt. There
-are errors, I say, of this sort due to the modern divorce between
-personality and production, and there are accidents, though rare, like
-that of Brou, where a mountain building is set in a plain, though
-hardly ever a building of the plains in the mountains. But for the
-most part, and taking Europe as a whole, the rule holds good. Consider
-the church called L’Epine. It is not high, but every line of it is
-designed to give the effect of height, and the farther you are from it
-the more it seems to soar, and the greyer it gets the more finely is it
-drawn upwards. It stands in the roll of those vast Catalaunian plains
-where twice the fate of Europe has been decided; where first Attila
-was rolled backwards, and where more than a thousand years after the
-armies destined to destroy the Revolution failed. It is the mark and
-the centre of that plain. But as you get towards the Mountain of Rheims
-on the north, the Argonne upon the east, the note of height in stone is
-withdrawn. The Argonne is low, the Mountain of Rheims, though high and
-noble, is hardly a true mountain, but each uplifts the face.
-
-Among the many misfortunes of men confined to this island, in the great
-cities of it, it may be counted a good fortune that they have, more
-than most men bound by modern industry, the opportunity of the high
-places. Lancashire especially has them at its doors, and anyone who
-will talk much to Lancashire folk will find how greatly the presence of
-the moors still enters into their lives. Notably is this true of the
-Peak just to the east of the great industrial plain, and the sense of
-height and the satisfaction of it is perhaps nowhere more splendidly
-met than by the spectacle of that plain beneath a winter sunset as one
-sees it from the height of the road above Glossop, if it be a Sunday
-evening when the smoke is not dense, because for twenty-four hours the
-factories have been silent. The smoke then hangs in wreaths like light
-clouds against the sunset and one perceives in a very marvellous and
-sudden fashion beneath one the life of industrial England. It is an
-aspect of the country not easily forgotten. And everywhere Englishmen
-have presented to them this effect of height within a smaller compass
-than the men of other European nations. For in the other nations men
-are either of the mountains or of the plains. But here the isolated and
-numerous masses of old rocks in Wales, in Cumberland, and just north
-of the Midlands, and the sharp escarpments of the five ranges of the
-chalk that radiate from Salisbury Plain, and the isolated ridge of the
-Malverns, and the wall of the Cotswolds over the Vale of Severn, make
-it so that nearly all those who live on this island, and especially
-those who live in the busiest part of it, have their line of hills
-before them. East Anglia and the Fens are an exception, and much of the
-Valley of the Thames as well. And here comes in the lack of London.
-London has no high places. It is the chief misfortune in the aspect
-of the city. It was not always so. Popular instinct was very powerful
-here. Since the Surrey hills had not their escarpment turned towards
-the Thames, and since looking nowhere round could the Londoner get
-height, he made it for himself, and the Gothic London of the Middle
-Ages was a mass of spires, chief and glorious above which was the
-highest spire in all Europe, higher than Strasburg and higher than
-Cologne, old St. Paul’s. It stood up on its hill above the river, and
-gave unity to all that scheme of spires below. Neglect began the ruin,
-the Great Fire did the rest, and height in London has disappeared. The
-tall houses and narrow gorges of streets that are the characteristic
-of Paris and of Edinburgh are unknown to London. Here and there the
-sense of which I speak is satisfied. Coming up Ludgate Hill, for
-instance, and seeing the mass of St. Paul’s above it, or in one place
-where, as you come out of a narrow Westminster street, the upshooting
-of the repetitive lines of Victoria Tower suddenly strike you. But as
-a whole height is lacking here. Nor in so vast a place, now fixed in
-certain traditions, can it be supplied. It is a pity.
-
-
-
-
-On Some Little Horses
-
-
-All the upland was full of little horses, little ponies of the upland.
-They looked with curious and interested eyes at man, but none of them
-had known his command. When men passed them riding they saw that there
-was some alliance between men and their brothers, and they asked news
-of it. Then they bent their heads down again soberly, to graze on the
-new pasture, and the wind blew through their manes and their tails;
-they were happy beasts, thinking of nothing, and knowing nothing but
-themselves, yet in their movements and the look of their eyes one could
-see what the skies were round them, and what the world--they were so
-much a part of it all.
-
-In the hollows of the forest there were not many birds, not nearly as
-many as one had heard in the Weald, but one great hawk circled up in
-spirals against the wind. The wind was blowing splendidly through an
-air quite blue and clear for many miles, and growing clearer as the
-afternoon advanced in gladness. It was a sea wind that had been a gale
-the day before, but during the night everything had changed in South
-England, and the principal date of the year was passed, the date which
-is the true beginning of the year. The mist of the morning had scudded
-before thick Atlantic weather; by noon it was lifted into clouds, by
-mid-afternoon those clouds were large, heralding clouds of Spring
-against an unbounded capacity of sky. There was no longer any struggle
-between them and the gale; they went together in procession over the
-country and towards the east.
-
-The ridges of the land, like great waves, rolled in also from the
-westward; they were clearer and they were sharper with every hour,
-until at last the points of white chalk pits upon hills a day’s ride
-away showed clearly under the sunlight, and a man could see the trees
-even upon the horizon line.
-
-The water that one passed in the long ride seemed to grow clearer,
-and the woods to have more echoes. Then, whatever in the mind turned
-to memory, as the mind of all men does in Spring when they have done
-with their own springtime, turned to memory transformed and was full
-of visions; and whatever of the mind turned to the future, as most of
-the mind must do in men of any age when the vigour of the Almighty is
-abroad, looked at it through a veil which was magical.
-
-It seemed as though under the growing sunlight the change that had
-come, the touch, the spell, was a thing appreciable in moments of time
-and growing as one watched. You would have said that all the forest
-was wakening. The flowers you would have said, and especially the
-daffodils, had just broken from the bud, and evergreens that had been
-in leaf all winter you would have said had somehow put on a new green.
-The movement of the wind in the branches of the beeches did not seem to
-move them but to find a movement responding to its own, and the colour
-of those branches against the blue sky and touched by the sun as it
-grew low was full of vivid promise. If it be not too much to ascribe a
-mood to all inanimate and animate things, there was a mood about one
-which was a complete forgetfulness of decay, a sort of trampling upon
-it, a rising out of it, and a using of it into life: a using of it up
-into life.
-
-Over three ridges of land to the southward lay the sea. When the sea is
-in movement before a clear wind that is not a storm, and under a clear,
-sharp sky, its movement may be perceived for miles and miles. No one
-can see the waves, but the distant belt is shot with a pattern which
-one feels so far as the eye commands it, and that belt is alive, and it
-is a moving thing. Moreover, the high sea downs, the great chalk lifts
-of that shore of the world, are different on such days from what they
-are upon any others, and receive life from the sea that made them. All
-that world upon that morning you would have said was not only receiving
-gifts from the sea, but was itself apparently born from the sea, lived
-by the air of it, and had been engendered in the depths of it before
-ever men were on earth.
-
-And of the sea also were the little horses.
-
-When the Spring took them they would suddenly gallop forward without
-any purpose beyond their wanton pleasure, and arch their necks towards
-the ground, and bound as a wave bounds; or they would go together,
-first one starting, then a comrade, then half a dozen of the herd, with
-a short but easy gait which exactly recalled the movement of salt water
-under the call of the wind: the movement of salt water where the deeps
-are, following and following and following, before it rises to break
-upon the shallows, or to turn back on its course along the eddies of
-hidden streams.
-
-Anyone seeing the little horses was ready to believe that they had come
-from the Channel and not from the land at all, but that divine mares
-had bred them which moved over the tops of the waves, and that their
-sires flew invisibly along with the south-west wind. The heather bent
-a little beneath their rapid raids, and when they swerved, halted, and
-lifted up their heads to let the breeze blow out their manes, then they
-became, even more thoroughly than before, things of the Channel and of
-the bowling air. They were full of gladness.
-
-The little horses did not know that they were owned by men; and if now
-and then men gave them food in the cold weather, or now and then saw to
-the housing of them, or now and then marked them with a mark, a short,
-forgotten pain, all these things they took like any other brief and
-passing accidents of fate. It was not man that had made their home,
-nor man that ordered the things they saw and used. They had not in
-anything about them that look which animals have when they have learned
-that man is of all things upon earth the fullest of sorrow, nor that
-which beasts have, when they have seen in man, without understanding
-it, what a principal poet has called “the hideous secret of his
-mirth”--though “hideous” is an unfair word, for the secret sorrow of
-man is closely allied with something Divine in his destiny. Such beasts
-as are continually the companions of our souls and of whom another
-poet has said that they are “subject and dear to man,” take from him
-invariably something of his foreknowledge of death. And you may see in
-the patient oxen of the mountains and even in the herded sheep of the
-Downs something of man’s burden as they take their lives along. But
-most you will see what price is paid by those who accompany us when
-you watch dogs and find that, apart from the body, they can suffer, as
-we can suffer, and sometimes suffer to the death. So dogs that have
-known men know loneliness also, and make, as men make, for distant
-lights at night, and are not happy without living homes. Two things
-only they have not, which are speech and laughter. And those animals
-which men deal with continually come also into an easy or an uneasy
-subservience to him, and you may note their hesitation where there is
-an unaccustomed duty, and you may note their beginnings of panic when
-men are not there to decide some difficult thing for them.
-
-These little horses of which I write had as yet known none of these
-things, and anyone who looked at them closely could see what it was
-that the saints meant by “innocence in Nature.” There was no evil in
-them at all, and the good that was in them was a simple good, of the
-earth and of the place in which they lived. There, away northward, it
-was the Downs; eastward and westward, the Forest; southward, under
-the sunlight, the Sea. That was all the little horses knew; and the
-man who in such a place and at that moment in the springtime could
-remember nothing more was very much more blessed than any other of his
-kind. But later he must remember Acheron; and what he will bear beyond
-Acheron--the consequence of things done.
-
-Not so the Little Horses.
-
-
-
-
-On Streams and Rivers
-
-
-There is a pass called the Bon Agua, and also Bon Aigo, which leads
-from the heights of the Catalans to those other heights of Aragon,
-or as some would say of Bearn, for the pass is from the south of the
-mountains to the north; on the northern side one knows why it is called
-Bon Agua, because one sees many thousands of feet below one the little
-bracelet, the little chain, of the young Garonne.
-
-Do not mistake me, there are two sources of the Garonne. That which is
-most famous does the most famous thing; for it rises on the far side
-of the mountains and it plunges into a pond, quite a little pond. Then
-it cascades underground, through dark passages of which no one knows
-anything, and comes out beyond the main chain of the hills to join its
-other quieter sister from the Bon Agua. This startling source, I say,
-is the most famous, because it does the most startling things, though
-not more wonderful than what a Yorkshire river does, for there is a
-Yorkshire river in the West Riding which runs into the pond called
-Mallam Tarn and reappears afterwards beyond a rocky ridge; but this
-Garonne of which I speak goes right under high and silent mountains
-where there are no men, and this is a feat performed, I think, by no
-other river, not even by the Rhone, which also is lost for the time
-underground (though few people know it), nor by the River Mole, which
-plays at being lost and never quite is, and certainly has not the
-courage to attempt the tunnelling of any hill, though it is proud to be
-called the “snouzling Mole,” which, by the way, it was first called in
-the year 1903--but I digress, and I must return to the Bon Agua.
-
-Well, then, there I say under the Bon Agua runs the quieter of the two
-streams which unite in the Val D’Aran to form the Garonne, and there
-it was that a companion of mine seeing that little stream looked at it
-with profound sadness, and said--the things which shall be the text of
-what I have to say here. For he said:
-
-“Poor little Garonne! Innocent and lovely little Garonne! I have never
-seen a stream so small, nor so pure, nor so young, nor so far from men.
-But you are on your way to things you do not know. For first of all
-you will join that boasting sister of yours which has come from under
-the hills, and can talk of nothing else; and then you will go past the
-King’s Bridge being no longer among kind and silent Spaniards, and you
-will have entered the territory of the Republic which is fierce and
-evil, and you will grow greater and wider and not more happy until you
-will come to the perfectly detestable town of Toulouse.... Thence after
-you will have no pleasure, but only a certain grandeur to be passing
-through the Gascon fields, and all your desire will be for the sea in
-which at last you shall merge and be lost. And so strong will be your
-desire for that dissolution that you will be willing to mix your name
-with another name, to marry the Dordogne, and then you will die and you
-will be glad of it.”
-
-This is the way my friend spoke to the Garonne when he saw it first
-rising in the hills. He did not sing it as he might have sung it, the
-song it best likes to hear, which is called, “Had the Garonne but
-wished!” Nor did he try to console it with any flap-doodle about the
-common lot of rivers, knowing well that some rivers were happier and
-some less happy. But he spoke to the Garonne as to something that could
-hear and know. Now this is what men have always done to rivers.
-
-It is in this way that rivers have acquired names, not only among men
-but among gods; and it is in this way that they convey a fate to the
-countrysides of which they are the souls.
-
-There is no country of which this is more true than it is true of
-England. Englishmen of this time--or at least of the time just
-past--perpetually and rightly complained that somehow or other they
-missed themselves. Some took refuge in a dream of a sort of a mystical
-England which was not there. Others reposed in the idea of an older
-England which may once have been; others, more foolish, hoped to find
-England again in something overseas. None of these would have suffered
-their error had they learnt England down English waters, seeing the
-great memories of England reflected in the English rivers, and meeting
-them in the silence and the perfection of the streams. But our roads
-first, and then our railways, our commerce which is from ports, and
-which must go direct towards them, our life, which is now in vast
-cities independent of streams, has made us neglect these things.
-
-Consider such a list as this: Arundel when you see it as you come up
-Arun on the full flood tide. Chichester as you see it on the flood tide
-from Chichester harbour. Durham as you see it coming down under that
-cliff with the Cathedral as massive as the rock. Chester as you see it,
-sailing up the Dee with a light north wind from the sea. Gloucester
-as you see it from the Severn. Or Winchester as you pull, if you can
-pull, or paddle which is easier, against the clear and violent thrust
-of the Itchin. Canterbury as you see it from above or from below, upon
-the easy water of the Stour; and Lincoln as you see it from its little
-ditch--and I wonder how many men now journey up in any fashion from
-Boston! So Norwich from the Yare. So Bramber for that matter from a
-place where the Adur grows narrow; and what a sight Bramber must have
-been when the Castle stood whole upon the hill, physically blocking the
-advance into the Weald.
-
-There is only one stream left, the Thames, which we still know,
-and we very rightly know it; but we love it only for giving us one
-experience which we might, if we chose, repeat up and down England
-everywhere. There is no country in the world like this for rivers. The
-tide pushes up them to the very Midlands, from every sea. There is
-nothing of the history of England but is on a river, and as England is
-an island of birds, so is it more truly an island of rivers. Consider
-the River Eden, which is so difficult to descend; the Wiltshire Avon
-and the Hampshire Avon, and those little branch streams the Thame, the
-Cherwell, and the Evenlode.
-
-Best of all, I think, as a memory or an experience is the Ouse, which
-runs from Bedford to the Wash, and has upon it the astonishing monument
-of Ely. Here is a river which no one can descend without feeling as
-he descends it the change of English provinces from the Midlands to
-the sea. He should start at Bedford; then he will pass through fields
-where tall elms give to the plains something more than could be given
-them by distant hills. The river runs between banks of deep grass
-in summer. It is contented everywhere; and as you go you are in the
-middle of a thousand years. You pass villages that have not changed;
-you carry your boat over weirs where there are mills, always shaded by
-large trees. Once in a day, at the most, you find an unchanging town:
-Huntingdon is such an one, or St. Ives, where I do believe the people
-are kinder than in any other town. Then, as you still go on, the land
-takes on another character. You begin to know that England is not only
-rich and full of fields but also was made by the sea. For you come to
-great flats--and that rather suddenly--where, as at sea, the sky is
-your contemplation. You notice the light, the colour, and the shapes
-of clouds. The birds that wheel and scream over these spaces seem to
-be sea birds. You expect at any moment to hear beyond the dead line of
-the horizon the sound of surf and to see the glint of live water. Above
-such a waste rises, on what is called “an island,” and is in truth “an
-island,” the superb strength of Ely.
-
-No one has seen Ely who has not seen it from the Ouse. It is a hill
-upon a hill, and now permanently present in the midst of loneliness. It
-is something made with a framework all around of accidental marsh and
-emptiness. Thenceafter the Ouse goes on. You get through and down the
-deep step of a lock, and beyond it is the salt water and busy energy
-that comes and goes from the sea. Very deep banks, alive with the salt
-and the swirl of the tide, shut in the boat for miles, and there are
-very high bridges uniting village to village above one, till at last
-the whole thing broadens, and one sees under the sunlight the roofs and
-the spars of King’s Lynn; and, if one has no misadventure, one ends the
-journey at some narrow quay at a narrow lane of that delightful port
-and town.
-
-There is one English river out of at least thirty others. I wish that
-all were known! That journey down the Ouse is three days’ journey--but
-it is such a slice of time and character and history as teaches you
-most you need know upon this Island. Only I warn anyone attempting it,
-let the boat be light and let it be shallow, and be ready to sleep in
-it; it is only thus that you can know an English river, and if you can
-draw, why it will be a greater pleasure. It is very cheap.
-
-
-
-
-On Two Manuals
-
-
-Flaubert, I believe, designed once to publish a Dictionary of Errors,
-and would actually have set about it had he not found the subject
-growing much too vast for any human pen. He also designed a reference
-book, or rather anthology, of follies, stupidities, rash judgments, and
-absurdities, but never lived to complete this great task. Now, reading
-this, I have wondered whether two little books might not be written
-which should prove useful severally to the undergraduate and to the
-politician. I do not say to the schoolboy, for no book yet written
-ever was or ever will be useful to him. But for the undergraduate a
-useful book might be written which I shall presently describe, and
-which would make a sort of foundation for all his studies. So also for
-the politician a second book might be written which should be of the
-greatest service. Let me now describe these two books. Perhaps among
-those who read this there will be so many men of leisure and learning
-as can in combination give the world the volumes I imagine.
-
-The first book should be called “Modern Thought,” and in this, without
-praise or blame and without any wandering into metaphysics or religion,
-the young fellow should be plainly taught to distinguish the certain
-from the uncertain. I know of nothing in which academic training just
-now is more at fault. That training seems to consist in two branches.
-First, the setting down of a very great number of things each equally
-certain with the last and all forming together one huge amorphic body
-or lump of assertion; second, a whole sheaf of theories, the whole fun
-of which consists in the fact that no one of them can positively be
-proved but that all are guesswork. These theories change from year to
-year, and while they are defended with a passion astonishing to those
-who live in a larger world, there is no pretence that they are true.
-The whole business of them is quite obviously a game. Consider, for
-instance, history. A lad is taught that William the Conqueror won at
-Hastings in 1066; that the opinion of the English people was behind
-the little wealthy clique that put an end to the Stuarts; that London
-heartily sympathised with the seven Bishops; that all Parliamentary
-institutions grew up on the soil of this island in the thirteenth
-century from Saxon origins; and that four people called Hengist, and
-Horsa, and Aella, and Cerdic led a great number of Germans to various
-points of this Island, killed the people living there and put the
-Germans in their stead. Now of these assertions, all of which he is to
-receive with equal certitude, all dogmatically affirmed, all taught to
-him as brute bits of truth--some, as that about Hastings, are rigidly
-true; some, such as the attitude of London towards the seven Bishops,
-are morally certain (though hardly capable of definite proof); some,
-as the weight of public opinion behind the Whigs, debatable though
-probable; some, like the Hengist and Horsa business, almost certainly
-mere legends--and so forth. It is to be noted that, if you are to teach
-at all, you must always have in your teaching some admixture of this
-error. No one can exactly balance the degree of probability attaching
-to each separate statement; there is no time to array all the evidence,
-and if there were, the mind of the student could not carry it. Each
-teacher, moreover, will have a scheme of values somewhat different from
-his neighbour’s; but even if some admixture of the error I speak of be
-necessary, at least let the student be warned that it exists. For if he
-is not so warned one of two things will happen: either he will believe
-all he is told, with the most appalling results to himself, and, should
-he later become powerful, to the whole nation (we are seeing something
-of that in economics to-day), or he will (as the cleverer undergraduate
-usually does) become sceptical of all he hears; he will begin to
-wonder, having once found his teacher out in, let us say, the absurdity
-of pretending that Parliamentary institutions were peculiar to Britain,
-whether the Battle of Hastings were really fought in 1066 or no.
-When he has discovered, as any boy of education, travel, and common
-sense will discover, that the Normans were not Scandinavians, but
-Frenchmen, he will be led to reason that perhaps William the Conqueror
-never existed at all. This mood of universal scepticism is even more
-dangerous than that of bovine assurance, more dangerous to character,
-that is, and more dissolving of national strength.
-
-As with the assertions so with the theories. There was a theory, for
-instance, that a tenure of land existed in ancient England by which
-this land was the common property of all, and was called the land
-of the “folk.” Then this theory burst, and another theory swelled,
-which was that the “folk land” meant the land held by customary
-right as distinguished from land held by charter. Again, there was a
-theory that an original Saxon tendency to breed large landowners had
-gradually prevailed over feudal tenure. This theory burst, and another
-theory swelled, which was that the large units of land grew up by an
-accidental interpretation of Roman law.
-
-In the book I propose all these theories could be very simply dealt
-with. The student should be warned that they are theories, and theories
-only, that their whole point and value is that they are not susceptible
-to positive proof; that what makes them amusing and interesting is the
-certitude that one can go on having a good quarrel about them, and the
-inner faith that when one is tired of them one can drop them without
-regret. Older men know this, but young men often do not, and they will
-take a theory in the Academies and make a friend of it, and at last, as
-it were, another self, and clasp it close to their souls and intertwine
-themselves with it, only to find towards thirty that they have been
-hugging a shade.
-
-So much, then, for this first book. It would not need to be more than
-a little pocket volume of fifty or sixty pages, and a young man should
-have it to refer to at any moment of his studies. One of its maxims
-would be to look up the original evidence upon which anything he was
-told was based. Another rule he would find in it would be to underline
-all such words as “seems,” “probably,” and so forth, and watch in his
-books the way in which they gradually turn, as the argument proceeds,
-into “is” and “certainly.” He would also be warned before reading the
-work of any authority to remember that that authority was a human
-being, to look up his biography, if possible to meet him personally,
-to find out what general knowledge he had and what impression he made
-upon the casual man that met him. How many men have written histories
-of a campaign and yet have been proved at a dinner-table ignorant of
-the range of artillery during their period! How many men have learnedly
-criticised the style of Rousseau upon a knowledge of French very much
-inferior to that of most governesses! I at Oxford knew a don who
-exposed and ridiculed the legend of the Girondins, but throughout his
-remarks pronounced their title with a hard _g_.
-
-As for the politicians, their little guide-book through life should
-be of another sort. In this the first and most valuable part would
-deal with political judgment and prophecy. The utmost care would be
-taken by the author to show how valueless is any determination of the
-future, and how crass the mind which predicts with confidence. Since so
-very few men happen to have made lucky shots, it would be the peculiar
-care of the author in a loving manner to collect all the follies and
-misjudgments which these same men had made upon other grave matters.
-And, in general, the reader would be left very certain that every
-pompous prophecy he heard was a piece of folly. Next in the book would
-come examples of all that political men have said and done which they
-most particularly desired to have forgotten. This would serve a twofold
-purpose, for first it would amuse and instruct the politician as he
-read it, since the misfortunes of others are delightful to human kind,
-and, secondly, it would show him that he could not himself trust to
-the effect of time, and that his natural desire to turn his coat or to
-pretend to some policy he did not understand would at last be judged as
-it deserved. In the third and final portion of the book the politician
-would be given a list of interesting truths, with regard to the matter
-of his trade. It would be proved to him in a few sentences that his
-decisions depend upon various difficult branches of study, and by a few
-suggested questions he would be convinced of his ignorance therein. The
-shortness of human life would be insisted upon, with examples showing
-how a man having painfully reached power was stricken with paralysis
-or died in torment. The ludicrous miscarriage of great plans would be
-laid before him, and, better still, the proof that the most successful
-adventures had proceeded almost entirely from chance, and surprised no
-one more than their authors.
-
-At the end of the book would be a certain number of coupons permitting
-the reader to travel to many places which politicians commonly ignore,
-and there would be a list of the sights that he should see. As, for
-instance, the troops of such and such a nation upon the march, the
-artillery of such another at firing practice, and the opinion expressed
-by the populace in taverns in such and such a town. Then at the end
-would come a number of common phrases such as _cui bono_, _persona
-grata_, _toujours perdrix_, _double entendre_, _sturm und drang_, etc.,
-with their English equivalents, if any, and their approximate meaning,
-when they possess a meaning. Upon the last page would be a list of
-the duties of a Christian man and a short guide to general conduct in
-conversation with the rich.
-
-Armed with these manuals, the youth and manhood of a nation would at
-once and vastly change. You would find young men recently proceeded
-from the University filled with laudable doubts arising from the
-vastness of God’s scheme, and yet modestly secure in certain essential
-truths such as their own existence and that of an objective universe,
-the voice of conscience, and the difference between right and wrong.
-While among those of more mature years, who were controlling the
-energies of the State, there would appear an exact observance of real
-things, an admitted inability to know what would happen fifty or even
-twenty years hence, and a habit of using plain language which they and
-their audience could easily understand; of using such language tersely,
-and occasionally with conviction.
-
-But this revolution will not take place. The two books of which I speak
-will not be written. And if anyone doubts this, let him sit down and
-try to frame the scheme of one, and he will soon see that it is beyond
-any man’s power.
-
-
-
-
-On Fantastic Books
-
-
-There has fallen upon criticism since perhaps a century ago, and with
-increasing weight, a sort of gravity which is in great danger of
-becoming tomfoolery at last: as all gravity is in danger of becoming.
-
-No one dares to discuss all that lighter thing which is the penumbra
-of letters, and, what is more, no man of letters dares to whisper
-that letters themselves are not often much more than a pastime to the
-reader, and are only very rarely upon a level with good and serious
-speculation: never upon a level with philosophy: still less upon a
-level with religion. It is perhaps even a mark of the eclipse of
-religion when any department of mere intellectual effort can raise
-itself as high as literature has raised itself in its own eyes; and
-since all expression now (or nearly all) is through the pen literature
-thus suffering from pride can impose its pride upon the world.
-
-Two things alone correct this pride: first, that those who practise
-the trade of literature starve if they are austere or run into debt if
-they are not; secondly, that now and then one of the inner circle gives
-the thing away--for instance, Mr. Andrew Lang in his excellent and
-never-to-be-forgotten remarks delivered only last year at the dinner of
-the Royal Literary Fund. This Member of our Union said (with how much
-truth!) that the writers of stories should remember they were writers
-of stories and not teachers and preachers. And the same might be said
-to others of the Craft. If a man has had granted to him by the Higher
-Powers a jolly little lyric, why, that is a jolly little lyric. He
-should bow and scrape to those who gave it to him and hand it on to
-his fellow-men for a dollar. But it does not make him a god, and if it
-gives him so much as a swelled head it makes him intolerably wearisome.
-More tolerable are the victors of campaigns discussing at table their
-successes in the field than poets who forget their Muse: for to their
-Muse alone, or to those who sent her, do they owe what they are, as
-may very clearly be seen in the case of those whose Muse has deserted
-them and flown again up to her native heaven; nor is any case more
-distressing than that of ----.
-
-All of which leads me to the Fantastic Books. One, two, a dozen at the
-most, in all the history of the world have ranked with the greatest.
-Rabelais is upon the summit, and the _Sentimental Journey_ will live
-for some hundreds of years, but how many others are there which men
-remember? There is a sort of conspiracy against them led by the few
-intelligent vicious in league with the numerous and virtuous fools;
-and thus the salt of the Fantastic Books, which is as good as the salt
-of the sea, is lost to the most of mankind.
-
-Men sit in front of the writers of Fantastic Books fair and squarely
-with their hands on their knees, their eyes set, their mouths glum,
-their souls determined, and say:
-
-“Come now, Fantastic Book, are you serious or are you not serious?”
-
-And when the Fantastic Book answers “I am both.”
-
-Then the man gets up with a sigh and concludes that it is neither. Yet
-the Fantastic Book was right, and if people were only wise they would
-salt all their libraries with Fantastic Books.
-
-Note that the Fantastic Books are not of necessity jocose books or
-ribald books, nor even extravagant books. If I had meant to write about
-extravagant books, _quâ_ extravagant, you may be certain I should have
-chosen that word. Rabelais is extravagant and so is Sterne, but not
-on account of their extravagance are they fantastic. The note of the
-Fantastic Book is an easy escape from the world. It is not imagination,
-though imagination is a necessary spring to it: it is that faculty by
-which the mind travels, as it reads, whether through space or through
-time or through _quality_. A book is a Fantastic Book, though time and
-space be commonplace enough, though the time be to-day and the place
-Camberwell, if only the mind perpetually travels, seeing one after
-another unexpected things in the consequence of human action or in the
-juxtaposition of emotions.
-
-There is a category of Fantastic Books most delightful, and never to
-my thinking overdone, which deals with journeys to worlds beyond the
-earth. I confess that I care nothing whether they are well written
-or ill written; so long as they are written in any language that I
-can understand I will read them; and to day as I write I have before
-me a notable collection of such, every one of which I have read over
-and over again. I remember one called the _Anglo-Saxon Conquest of
-the Solar System_ or words to that effect; another of a noble kind,
-called _Thuka of the Moon_. I only mention the two together by way
-of contrast; and I remember one in which somebody or other went to
-Mars and went mad, but I forget the title. Be they as well written
-as the _First Men in the Moon_, which is or will be a classic, or as
-ill written as a book which I may not mention because there is a law
-forbidding any one to tell unpleasant truths, so long as they concern
-voyages to the Planets they are worth reading.
-
-Then, also, there is the future. The _Time Machine_ is, perhaps, the
-chief of them; but writers who travel into the future, good or bad, are
-all delightful.
-
-You may say that they are also always a little boring because they
-always try to teach a lesson or to prophesy. That is true, but when
-you have comforted yourself with the firm conviction that prophecies
-of this kind are invariably and wildly wrong the disturbance which
-they cause in your mind will disappear. I have among my most treasured
-books one of the early nineteenth century, called _Revelations of the
-Dead Alive_, in which the end of our age and its opinions upon _that_
-age are presented, and it is all wrong! But it is very entertaining
-all the same. Most ridiculous but not least entertaining of such books
-are the Socialist books, the books showing humanity in the future all
-Socialist and going on like sticks. There is, indeed, another type of
-mournful Socialist book much more real and much more troubling, in
-which Socialism has failed, and the mass of men go on like slaves; but
-no matter. A prophecy (when it is scientific) is always and invariably
-absolutely and totally wrong:--and a great comfort it is to remember
-_that_!
-
-Yet another sort of Fantastic Book is your Journey to Hell or to
-Heaven. There is one I have read and re-read. It is called _The Outer
-Darkness_. I shall never cease to read it. It is a journey to a sort
-of Hell, and these are as a rule more entertaining than the Heavenly
-journey, though why I cannot tell. Does the same hold true of Dante?
-
-Lastly, and much the most rare and much the most valued of all are the
-books which are fantastic, though they cling to the present and to
-things known. In these I would include imaginary people in the Islands
-and in the Arctic, and even those which introduce half-rational beasts,
-for such books depend for their character not upon the matter of the
-fantasy, but upon the manner. There is a book called _Ninety North_,
-for instance, which is all about a race of people at the North Pole,
-but the power of the book resides not in the distance of the scene, but
-in the vision of the writer and in the little irony that trickles down
-every page.
-
-Who collects them or preserves them--the Fantastic Books? No one, I
-think. They are not catalogued under a separate Heading. They puzzle
-the writers of Indices; they bewilder Librarians. They must be grouted
-out of the mass of rubbish as Pigs in the Perigord grout out truffles.
-There is no other way.
-
-Also, in the Perigord, truffles are hunted with Hounds.
-
-
-
-
-The Unfortunate Man
-
-
-To all those who doubt the power of chance in human affairs; to all
-Stoics, Empiricists, Monists, Determinists, and all men whatsoever that
-terminate in this fashion, Greeting: Read what follows:
-
-There was a man I used to know whose business it was to succeed in
-life, and who had made a profession of this from the age of nineteen.
-His father had left him a fortune of about £600 a year, which he still
-possesses, but, with that exception, he has been made by the gods a
-sort of puffball for their amusement, the sort of thing they throw
-about the room. It was before his father’s death that a determination
-was taken to make him the land agent at the house of a cousin, who
-would give him a good salary, and it was arranged, as is the custom in
-that trade, that he should do nothing in return but dine, smoke, and
-ride about. The next step was easy. He would be put into Parliament,
-and then, by quiet, effective speaking and continual voting, he would
-become a statesman, and so grow more and more famous, and succeed more
-and more, and marry into the fringes of one of the great families, and
-then die.
-
-To this happy prospect was his future turned when he set out, not upon
-the old mare but upon the new Arab which his father had foolishly
-bought as an experiment, to visit his cousin’s home and to make
-the last arrangements. And note in what follows that every step in
-the success-business came off, and yet somehow the sum total was
-disappointing, and at the present moment one can very definitely say
-that he has not succeeded.
-
-He set out, I say, upon the new Arab, going gently along the sunken
-road that leads to the Downs, when a man carrying a faggot at the end
-of a pitchfork seemed to that stupid beast a preternatural apparition,
-and it shied forward and sideways like a knight’s move, so that the
-Unfortunate Man fell off heavily and hurt himself dreadfully. When the
-Arab had done this it stood with its beautiful tail arched out, and
-its beautiful neck arched also, looking most pitifully at its fallen
-rider, and with a sadness in its eye like that of the horse in the
-Heliodorus. The Unfortunate Man got on again, feeling but a slight pain
-in the right shoulder. But what I would particularly have you know is
-this: that the pain has never wholly disappeared, and is perhaps a
-little worse now after twenty years than it has been at any previous
-time. Moreover, he has spent quite £350 in trying to have it cured, and
-he has gone to foreign watering-places, and has learnt all manner of
-names, how that according to one man it is rheumatism, and according
-to another it is suppressed gout, and according to another a lesion.
-But the point to him is the pain, and this endures.
-
-Well, then, he rode over the Down and came out through the Combe to his
-cousin’s house. The gate out of the field into the park was shut, and
-as he leaned over to open it he dropped his crop. I am ashamed to say
-that--it was the only act of the kind in his career, but men who desire
-to succeed ought not to act in this fashion--he did not get down to
-pick it up because he was afraid that if he did he might not be able to
-get on to the horse again. With infinite trouble, leaning right down
-over the horse’s neck, he managed to open the gate with his hands, but
-in doing so he burst his collar, and he had to keep it more or less in
-place by putting down his chin in a ridiculous and affected attitude.
-His hopes of making a fine entry at a pretty ambling trot, that perhaps
-his cousin would be watching from the window, were already sufficiently
-spoilt by the necessity he was under of keeping his collar thus, when
-the accursed animal bolted, and with the speed of lightning passed
-directly in front of a little lawn where his cousin, his cousin’s wife,
-and their little child were seated admiring the summer’s day. It was
-not until the horse had taken him nearly half a mile away that he got
-him right again, and so returned hot, dishevelled, and very miserable.
-
-But they received him kindly, and his cousin’s wife, who was a most
-motherly woman, put him as best she could at his ease. She even got him
-another collar, knowing how terrible is the state of the soul when the
-collar is burst in company. And he sat down with them to make friends
-and discuss the future. He had always heard that among the chief
-avenues to success is to play with and be kind to the children of the
-Great, so he smiled in a winning manner at his cousin’s little boy,
-and stretching out his arms took the child playfully by the hand. A
-piercing scream and a sharp kick upon the shin simultaneously informed
-him that he had fallen into yet another misfortune, and the boy’s
-mother, though she was kindness itself, was startled into speaking
-to him very sharply, and telling him that the poor lad suffered from
-a deeply cut finger which was then but slowly healing. He made his
-apologies in a nervous but sincere manner, and in doing so was awkward
-enough to upset the little table which they had carried out upon the
-lawn, and upon which had been set the cups and saucers for tea. The
-whole thing was exceedingly annoying.
-
-In this way did the Unfortunate Man enter the great arena of modern
-political life.
-
-You must not imagine that he failed to obtain the sinecure which his
-father had sent him to secure. As I have already said, the failure of
-the Unfortunate Man was not a failure in major plans but in details.
-There may have been some to whom his career appeared enviable or
-even glorious, but Fate always watched him in a merry mood, and he
-was destined to suffer an interior misery which never failed to be
-sharpened and enlivened by the innumerable accidents of life.
-
-He obtained for his cousin from the North of Scotland a man of sterling
-capacity, whose methods of agriculture had more than doubled the income
-of a previous employer; but as luck would have it this fellow, whose
-knowledge of farming was quite amazing, was not honest, and after
-some few months he had absconded with a considerable sum of money. A
-well which he had advised to be dug failed to find water for some two
-hundred feet, and then after all that expense fell in. He lamed one of
-his cousin’s best horses by no fault of his own; the animal trod upon
-a hidden spike of wood and had to be shot; and in doing his duty by
-upbraiding a very frousty old man who was plunging about recklessly
-just where a lot of she (or hen) pheasants were sitting on their eggs
-he mortally offended the chief landowner of the neighbourhood, who
-was none other than the frousty old man himself, and who was tramping
-across the brushwood to see his cousin upon most important matters.
-It was therefore in a condition of despair that his cousin finally
-financed him for Parliament. The constituency which he bought after
-some negotiations was a corrupt seaport upon the coast of Rutlandshire
-(here is no libel!). He was at first assured that there would be no
-opposition, and acting upon this assurance took the one brief holiday
-which he had allowed himself for five years. The doctor, who was
-anxious about his nerves, recommended a sea voyage of a week upon a
-ship without wireless apparatus. He landed in Jamaica to receive a
-telegram which informed him that a local gentleman of vast influence,
-eccentric, and the chief landowner in the constituency, had determined
-to run against him, and which implored him to cable a considerable sum
-of money, though no such sum was at his disposal.
-
-In the earthquake the next day he luckily escaped from bodily injury,
-but his nerves were terribly shaken. Thenceforward he suffered from
-little tricks of grimace which were to him infinitely painful, but to
-others always a source of secret, sometimes of open, merriment. He
-returned and fought the election. He was elected by a majority of 231,
-but not until he had been twice blackmailed, and had upon at least
-three occasions given money to men who afterwards turned out to have no
-vote. I may say, to put the matter briefly, that he retained the seat
-uninterruptedly until the last election, but always by tiny majorities
-at the expense of infinite energy, sweating blood, as it were, with
-anxiety at every poll, and this although he was opposed by the most
-various people. It was Fate!
-
-He spoke frequently in the House of Commons, and always unsuccessfully,
-until one day a quite unexpected accident of war in a foreign country
-gave him his opportunity. It so happened that the Unfortunate Man knew
-all about this country; he had read every book published upon it; it
-was the one thing upon which he was an authority. And ridiculous as
-had been his numerous efforts to engage the attention of the august
-assembly, upon this matter at least his judgment was eagerly expected.
-The greatest courtesy was shown him, the Government arranged that he
-should speak at the most telling time of the debate, and when he rose
-it was before a full House, strained to an eager attention.
-
-He struck an attitude at once impressive and refined, stretched forth
-his hand in a manner that gave promise of much to come, and was
-suddenly seized with an immoderate fit of coughing. An aged gentleman,
-a wool merchant by profession, who sat immediately behind him, thought
-to do a kindly thing by slapping him upon the back, being ignorant of
-that Shoulder Trouble with which the jolly reader is acquainted. And
-the Unfortunate Man, in the midst of his paroxysm of coughing, could
-not restrain a loud cry of anguish. Confused interruptions, rising
-to a roar of protest, prevented him from going further, and he was
-so imprudent, or rather so wretchedly unlucky, as to be stung into a
-violent expression of opinion directed towards another member sitting
-upon his immediate left, a moneylender by trade and very sensitive.
-This fellow alone had heard the highly objectionable word which the
-Unfortunate Man had let drop. It is a word very commonly used by
-gentlemen in privacy, but rare, indeed, or rather wholly unused on
-the public occasions of our dignified political life. In vain did
-those about the moneylender pull at his skirts and implore him not to
-rise. He was white with passion. He rose and appealed to the Chair. He
-reiterated the offensive expression in the clearest and most articulate
-fashion, apologising to the horrified assembly for having to sully
-the air it breathed by the necessary repetition of so abominable an
-epithet, and he demanded the correction of the monster in human form
-who had descended to use it. The reprimand which the Unfortunate Man
-received from the Chair was lengthy and severe, and from that day
-forward he determined that the many omens of ill-fortune which had
-marked his life had reached their turn. He was too proud to resign,
-but his caucus, in spite of further considerable gifts of money,
-indignantly repudiated their Member, and when the election came he had
-not the courage to face it.
-
-He is now living, broken and prematurely aged, in a brick house
-which he has built for himself in a charming part of the County of
-Surrey. He has recently discovered that the title to his freehold
-is insecure: an action is pending. Meanwhile, a spring of water has
-broken out under the foundations of the building, and some quarter of
-a mile before its windows, obscuring the view of the Weald in which he
-particularly delighted, a very large factory with four tall chimneys
-is in process of erection. These things have depressed him almost to
-the verge of despair, and he can only forget his miseries in motoring.
-He is continually fined for excessive speed, though by nature the most
-cautious of men, and terrified by high speeds, and I learn only to-day
-that as he was getting ready to go into Guildford to dispute a further
-fine before the Bench a backfire has put his wrist out of joint, and he
-suffers intolerable pain. _Militia est Vita Hominis!_
-
-
-
-
-The Contented Man
-
-
-Lucifer, for some time a bishop in Southern Italy (you did not know
-that, but it is true nevertheless, and you will find his name in the
-writings of Duchesne, and he took part in councils; nay, there was a
-time when I knew the very See of which he was bishop, but the passage
-of years effaces all these things)--Lucifer, I say, laid it down in
-his System of Morals that contentment was a virtue, and said that it
-could be aimed at and acquired positively, just as any other virtue
-can. Then there are others who have said that it was but a frame of
-mind and the result of several virtues; but these are the thinkers. The
-great mass of people are willing to say that contentment is strictly
-in proportion to the amount of money one may have, and they are wrong.
-I remember now there was a Sultan, or some such dignitary, in Spain,
-who counted the days of his life which had been filled with content,
-and found that they were seventeen. He was lucky; there are not many
-of us who can say the same. Then once a man told me this story about
-contentment, which seemed to me full of a profound meaning. It seems
-there was once an old gentleman who was possessed of something over
-half a million pounds, a banker, and this old gentleman every night of
-his life would go through certain little private books of his, compare
-them with the current list of prices, and estimate to a penny what he
-was worth before he slept. It was always a great pleasure to him to
-note the figures growing larger, and a great pain to him to note the
-rare occasions when they had shrunk a little in twenty-four hours. It
-so happened that this old gentleman lost a considerable sum of money
-which he had imprudently lent to a distant and foreign country too much
-praised in the newspapers, and he worried so much over the loss that
-he became ill and could not go to his office. His sons kept on the
-business for him, and every succeeding week they lost more and more
-of the money. But such was their filial piety that every night they
-gave the old gentleman false information, and that in some detail, so
-that he could put down his little rows of figures and see them growing
-larger night after night. You see, it was not the wealth that he
-desired, it was the increase in the little rows of figures; the wealth
-he consumed was the same; he wore the same clothes, he ate the same
-food, he lived in the same house as before, and he had for a companion
-eternally one or another of the two nurses provided by the doctor. The
-figures increasing regularly as they did filled him with a greater and
-a greater joy. After two years of this business he came to die, but
-his passing was a very happy one: he blessed his sons fervently and
-told them that nothing had more comforted his old age than their sober
-business sense; they had nearly doubled the family fortune during their
-short administration of it; he congratulated them and was now ready to
-go to his God in peace. Which he did, and two weeks after the petition
-in bankruptcy was presented by the young people themselves, always the
-more decent way of doing it: but the old man had died content.
-
-Which parable leads up to the point at which I should have begun all
-this, which is, that once in my life, in the year 1901, during a
-heavy fog in the early morning of the month of November, in London,
-I met a perfectly contented man. He was the conductor of an omnibus.
-These vehicles depended in those days entirely on the traction of
-horses. They were therefore slow, and as the night, or rather the
-early morning, was foggy (it was a little after one) people going
-Westward--journalists for instance, who are compelled to be up at
-such hours--did not choose to travel in this way. There was no one in
-the ’bus but myself. I sat next the door as it rumbled along; there
-was one of those little faint oil lamps above it which are unique in
-Christendom for the small amount of light they give. It was impossible
-to read, but by the slight glimmer of it I saw suddenly revealed like
-a vision the face of that really happy man. It was a round face,
-framed in a somewhat slovenly hat and coat collar, but not slovenly in
-feature, though not severe. And as its owner clung to the rail and
-swung with the movements of the ’bus he whistled softly to himself a
-genial little air. It was not I but he that began the conversation.
-He told me that few things were a greater blessing in life than gas
-fires, especially if one could regulate the amount of gas by a penny in
-the slot. He pointed out to me that in this way there were never any
-disputes as to the amount of gas used, and he also said that it kept a
-man from the curse of credit, which was the ruin of so many. I told him
-that in my house there was no gas, but that his description almost made
-me wish there was. And so it did, for he went on to tell me how you
-could cook any mortal thing with any degree of heat and at any speed by
-the simple regulation of a tap.
-
-It may be imagined how anxious I was on meeting so rare a being to go
-more deeply into the matter and to find out on what such happiness
-reposed; but I did not know where to begin, because there are always
-some questions which men do not like asked, and unless one knows all
-about a man’s life one does not know what those questions are. Luckily
-for me, he volunteered. He told me that he was married and had eight
-children. He told me his wages, which were astonishingly low, his hours
-of labour, which were incredibly long, and he further told me that on
-reaching the yard that night he would have to walk a mile to his home.
-He said he liked this, because it made him sleep, and he added that
-in his profession the great difficulty was to get enough exercise. He
-told me how often a day off was allowed him and how greatly he enjoyed
-it. He told me the rent which he paid for his two rooms, which appeared
-to be one-third of his income, and congratulated himself upon the
-cheapness and commodity of the place; and so he went on talking as we
-rumbled down the King’s Road, going farther and farther and farther
-West. My day would end in a few hundred yards; his not for a mile or
-two more. Yet his content was far the greater, and it affected me, I am
-sorry to say, with wonder rather than with a similar emotion of repose
-and pleasure.
-
-The next part of his conversation discovered what you will often
-find in the conversation of contented men (or, rather, of partially
-contented men, for no other absolutely contented man have I ever met
-except this one), that is, a certain good-humoured contempt for those
-who grumble. He told me that the drivers of ’buses were never happy;
-they had all that life can give: high wages, fresh open-air work, the
-dignity of controlling horses, and, what is perhaps more important,
-ceaseless companionship, for not only had they the companionship of
-chance people who would come and sit on the front seats of the ’bus
-outside, but they could and did make appointments with friends who
-would come and ride some part of the way and talk to them. Then,
-again, as their work was more skilled, their tenure of it was more
-secure, nor were they constrained to shout “Liverpool Street” at the
-top of their voices for hours on end, nor to say “Benk, Benk, Benk” in
-imitation of the pom-pom. Nevertheless they grumbled. He was careful to
-tell me that they were not really unhappy. What he condemned in them
-was rather the habit and, as it were, the fashion of grumbling. It
-seemed as though no weather pleased them; it was always either too hot
-or too cold; they took no pleasure in the healthy English rain beating
-upon their faces, and warm spring days seemed to put them in a worse
-humour than ever. He condemned all this in drivers.
-
-When we had come to the corner of my street in Chelsea as I got out I
-offered him a cigar which I had upon me. He told me he did not smoke.
-He was going on to tell me that he did not drink, and would, I had no
-doubt, if he had had further leisure, have told me his religion, his
-politics, and much more about himself; but though the ’buses in those
-days would wait very long at street corners they would not wait for
-ever, and that particular ’bus rumbled and bumped away. I looked after
-it a little wistfully, for fear that I might never see a happy man
-again. And I walked down my street towards my home more slowly than
-usual, thinking upon the thing that I had just experienced.
-
-I confess I found it a very difficult matter. That experience not
-only challenged all that I had heard of happiness, but also re-awoke
-the insistent and imperative question which men put to their gods and
-which never receives an answer. Ecstasy is independent of all material
-conditions whatsoever. That great sense of rectitude which so often
-embitters men but permits them to support pain is independent of
-material conditions also. But these are not contented moods: oblivion
-is ready to every man’s hand, and even the most unfortunate secure a
-little sleep, and even the most tortured slaves know that at last, for
-all the rules and fines and regulations of the workshop, they cannot
-be forbidden to die; but such a prospect is not equivalent to content.
-Further, there is a philosophy, rarely achieved but conspicuous in
-every rank of fortune, which so steadily regards all external accident
-as to remain indifferent to the strain of living and even to be,
-to some extent, master of physical pain. But that philosophy, that
-mournful philosophy which I have heard called “the permanent religion
-of mankind,” is not content: on the contrary, it is very close indeed
-to despair. It is the philosophy of which the Roman Empire perished. It
-is the philosophy which, just because it utterly failed to satisfy the
-heart of man, powerfully accelerated the triumph of the Church, as the
-weight and pressure of water powerfully accelerate the rise of a man’s
-body through it, to the sunlight and the air above, which are native
-and necessary to him. No, it was not the philosophy of the Stoics
-which had laid a foundation for the ’bus-conductor’s soul.
-
-I could not explain that content of his in any way save upon the
-hypothesis that he was mad.
-
-
-
-
-The Missioner
-
-
-In one of those great halls which the winter darkens and which are
-proper to the North, there sat a group of men, kindly and full of the
-winter night and of their food and drink, upon which for many hours
-they had regaled together, and not only full of song, but satiated
-with it, so long and so loudly had they sung. They all claimed descent
-from the Gods, but in varying degrees, and their Chief was descended
-from the father of the Gods, by no doubtful lineage, for it was his
-granfer’s mother to whom a witch in the woods had told the story of her
-birth.
-
-In the midst of them as they so sat, a large fire smouldered, but
-having been long lit, sent up so strong a shaft of rising air as drew
-all smoke with it, towering to a sort of open cage upon the high roof
-tree of that hall whence it could escape to heaven.
-
-I say they were tired of song and filled with many good things, but
-chiefly with companionship. They had landed but recently from the sea;
-the noise of the sea was in their ears as they so sat round the fire,
-still talking low, and a Priest who was among them refused to interpret
-the sound; but he said in a manner that some mocked doubtfully, others
-heard with awe, that the sea never sounded save upon nights when the
-Gods were abroad. He was the Priest of a lesser God, but he was known
-throughout the fleet of those pirate fishermen for his great skill in
-the interpretation of dreams, and he could tell by the surface of the
-water in the nightless midsummer where the shoals were to be found.
-
-He said that on that night the Gods were abroad, and, indeed, the
-quality of the wind as it came down the gulf of the fjord provoked such
-a fancy, for it rose and fell as though by a volition, and sometimes
-one would have said that it was a quiet night, and, again, a moment
-after, one heard a noise like a voice round the corners of the great
-beams, and the wind pitied or appealed or called. Then a man who was a
-serf, but very skilled in woodwork, lying among the serfs in the outer
-ring beyond the fire in the straw, called up and said: “Lords, he is
-right; the Gods have come down from the Dovrefield; they are abroad.
-Let us bless our doors.”
-
-It was when he had so spoken that upon the main gate of that Hall (a
-large double engine of foot-thick pine swung upon hinges wrought many
-generations ago by the sons of the Gods) came a little knocking. It was
-a little tapping like the tapping of a bird. It rang musically of metal
-and of hollow metal; it moved them curiously, and a very young man who
-was of the blood said to his father: “Perhaps a God would warn us.”
-
-The keeper of the door was a huge and kindly man, foolish but good
-for lifting, with whom by daylight children played, and who upon such
-evenings lay silent and contented enough to hear his wittier fellows.
-This serf rose from the straw and went to unbar. But the Chief put his
-hand forward, and bade him stay that they might still hear that little
-tapping. Then he lowered his hand and the gate was swung open.
-
-Cold came with it for a moment, and the night air; light, and as though
-blown before that draught, drifted into the hall a tall man, very
-young, who bowed to them with a gesture they did not know, and first
-asked in a tongue they could not tell, whether any man might interpret
-for him.
-
-Then one old man who was their pilot and who had often run down into
-the vineyard lands, sometimes for barter, sometimes for war, always
-for a wage, said two words or three in that new tongue, hesitatingly.
-His face was wrinkled and hard; he had very bright but very pale grey
-eyes that were full of humility. He said three words of greeting which
-he had painfully learned twenty years before, from a priest, upon the
-rocks of Brittany, who had also given him smooth stones wherewith to
-pray; and with these smooth stones the old Pilot continually prayed
-sometimes to the greater and sometimes to the lesser Gods. His wife
-had died during the first war between Hrolf and the Twin Brothers; he
-had come home to find her dead and sanctified, and, being Northern, he
-had since been also a silent man. This Pilot, I say, quoted the words
-of greeting in the strange tongue. Then the tall young stranger man
-advanced into the circle of the firelight and made a sign upon his head
-and his breast and his shoulders, which was like the sign of the Hammer
-of Thor, and yet which was not the sign of the Hammer of Thor. When he
-had done this, the Pilot attempted that same sign, but he failed at
-it, for it was many years since he had been taught it upon the Breton
-coast. He knew it to be magical and beneficent, and he was ashamed to
-fail.
-
-The Chief of those who were descended from the Gods and were seated
-round the fire, turned to the Priest and said: “Is this a guest, a
-stranger sent, or is he a man come as an enemy who should be led out
-again into the night? Have you any divination?”
-
-“I have no divination,” said the Priest. “I cannot tell one thing or
-the other, nor each from the other in the case of this young man. But
-perhaps he is one of the Gods seeking shelter among men, or perhaps he
-is a fancy thing, warlock, but not doing evil. Or perhaps he is from
-the demons; or perhaps he is a man like ourselves, and seeking shelter
-during some long wandering.”
-
-When the Chief heard this he asked the Pilot, not as a man possessing
-divine knowledge, but as one who had travelled and knew the sea,
-whether he knew this Stranger and whence he came. To which the Pilot
-answered:
-
-“Captain, I do not know this young man nor whence he comes, nor any
-of his tribe, nor have I seen any like him save once three slaves who
-stood in a market-place of the Romans in a town that was subject to
-a great lord who was a Frank and not a Breton, and who was hated by
-the people of his town so that later they slew him. Then these three
-slaves were loosened, and they came to the house of the Priest of the
-Gods of that country, and they told me the name of the people whence
-they sprang. But I have forgotten it. Only I know that it is among the
-vineyard lands. There the day and the night are equally divided all the
-year long, and if the snow falls it falls gently and for a very little
-while, and there are all manner of birds, and those people are very
-rich, and they have great houses of stone. Now I believe this Stranger
-to be a man like ourselves, born of a woman, and coming northward upon
-some purpose which we do not know. It may be for merchandise, or it may
-be for the love of singing and of telling stories to men.”
-
-When he had said this they all looked at the Stranger and they saw that
-he had with him a little instrument that was not known to them, for it
-was a flute of metal. It was of silver, as they could see, long drawn
-and very delicately made, and with this had he summoned at the gate.
-
-The Chief then brought out with his own hands a carven chair, on which
-he seated the Stranger, and he put into his right hand a gold cup taken
-from the Romans in a city of the Franks, upon which was faintly carved
-a cross, and round the rim of which were four precious stones, an
-emerald, a ruby, an amethyst, and a diamond; and going to a skin which
-he had taken in a Gascon raid, he poured out wine into that chalice and
-went down upon one knee as is proper to strangers when they are to be
-entertained, and put a cloth over his arms and bade him drink. But when
-the young man saw the cross faintly carved upon the cup and the four
-precious stones at the corners of it, he shuddered a little and put it
-aside as though it were a sacred thing, at which they all marvelled.
-Yet he longed for the wine. And they, understanding that in some way
-this ornament was sacred to his Gods, gently took it from him and
-through courtesy put it aside upon a separate place which was reserved
-for honourable vessels, and poured him other wine into a wooden stoop;
-and this he drank, holding it out now to one and now to another, but
-last and chiefly to their Captain; and as he drank it he drank it with
-signs of amity.
-
-Then by way of payment for so much kindness he took his silver flute
-and blew upon it shrill notes, all very sweet, and the sweeter for
-their choice and distance one from another, until they listened,
-listening every man with those beside him like one man, for they had
-never heard such a sound; and as he played one man saw one thing in his
-mind and one another thing; for one man saw the long and easy summer
-seas that roll after a prosperous boat filled with spoil, whether of
-fishes or of booty, when the square sail is taken aft by a warm wind
-in the summer season, and the high mountains of home first show beyond
-the line of the sea. And another man saw a little valley, narrow, with
-deep pasture, wherein he had been bred and had learned to plow the
-land with horses before ever he had come to the handling of a tiller
-or the bursting of water upon the bows. And another saw no distinct
-and certain thing, but vague and pleasurable hopes fulfilled, and the
-advent of great peace. And another saw those heights of the hills to
-which he ever desired to return.
-
-But the old Pilot, straining with wonder in his eyes as the music rose,
-thought confusedly of all that he had seen and known; of the twirling
-tides upon the Breton coast and of the great stone towns, of the
-bright vestments of the ordered armies in the market-places and of the
-vineyard land.
-
-When the Stranger had ceased so to play upon his instrument they
-applauded, as their custom was, by cries, some striking the armour upon
-the ground so that it rang, and by gesture and voice they begged him
-play again.
-
-The second time he played all those men heard one thing: which was a
-dance of young men and women together in some country where there was
-little fear. The tune went softly, and was softly repeated, full of the
-lilt of feet, and when it was ended they knew that the dance was done.
-
-This time they were so pleased that they waited a little before they
-would applaud, but the old Pilot, remembering more strongly than ever
-the vineyard land, moved his right hand back and forward with delight
-as in some way he would play music with it, and thus by a communication
-of heart to heart stirred in that Stranger a new song; and taking up
-his flute for the third time he blew upon it a different strain, at
-which some were confused, others hungry in their hearts, though they
-could not have told you why, but the old Pilot saw great and gracious
-figures moving over a land subject to blessedness; he saw that in
-the faces of these figures (which were those of the Immortals) stood
-present at once a complete satisfaction and a joyous energy and a
-solution of every ill. “These,” he said to himself in the last passion
-of the music, “these are true Gods.” But suddenly the music ceased, and
-with it the vision also.
-
-For the great pleasure which the Flute Player had given them they
-desired to keep him in their company, and so they did for three full
-years. That is, the winter long, the seed time, and the time of
-harvest; and the next harvest also, and another harvest more, during
-which time he played them many tunes, and learnt their tongue.
-
-Now, his Gods were his own, but he pined for the lack of their worship
-and for Priests of his own sort, and when he would explain these in
-his own manner some believed him, but some did not believe him. And to
-those who believed him he brought a man from the South, from beyond
-the Dovrefield, who baptised them with water: as for those who would
-not have this they looked on, and kept to their own decree: but there
-was as yet no division among them. A little while after the third
-harvest, hearing that the fleet, which was of twelve boats, would make
-for Roman land, he begged to go with it, for he was sick for his own,
-but first he made them take an oath that they would molest none, nor
-even barter with any, until they had landed him in his own land. The
-Chief took this oath for them, and though his oath was worth the oath
-of twelve men, twelve other men swore with him. In this way the oath
-was done. So they took the Flute Player for three days over the sea
-before the wind called Eager, which is the north-east wind, and blows
-at the beginning of the open season; they took him at the beginning of
-the fourth year since his coming among them, and they landed him in a
-little boat in a seaport of the Franks, on Roman land....
-
-The Faith went over the world as very light seed goes upon the wind,
-and no one knows the drift on which it blew; it came to one place and
-to another, and to each in a different way. It came, not to many men,
-but always to one heart, till all men had hold of it.
-
-
-
-
-The Dream
-
-
-The experience I am about to set down was perhaps the result, and at
-any rate it was the sequel, of a conversation engaged between three men
-in London in the year 1903.
-
-Of these three men one was returned but recently from South Africa,
-where he had seen all too much of the war; another was a kindly,
-wealthy, sober sort of man, young, virtuous, and full of inquiry; the
-third was a hack.
-
-It was about the season of Easter and of spring, when actually and
-physically one can feel and handle the force of life about one, all
-ready to break bounds; but these young men (for no one of them was
-yet of middle age) preferred to talk of things more shadowy and less
-certain than the air and the life and the English spring all around.
-Things more shadowy and less certain, but to the mind of youth, being
-a vigorous mind things fixed and absorbing; destiny, for instance, and
-the nature of man.
-
-Not one of these three, however, affirmed in this conversation (which
-I so well remember!) any definite scheme. They spoke in terms of
-violent opinion, of argument, and of analogy, but none of the three
-came forward with a faith or even with a philosophy from which one
-felt he could not be shaken. The more remarkable was it, therefore,
-that one of them on his return in the early morning to his rooms,
-after this young and long conversation of a mixed sort, such as men
-entering upon life will often indulge, should have suffered and should
-have remembered an exact and even terrible vision. It would indeed be
-inexplicable that he should have suffered such a thing as a consequence
-of his waking thoughts, though, if there be influences upon minds other
-than the influences they themselves can bring--if there be influences
-from without, and other wills determining our dreams--then what next
-followed is less difficult to comprehend. For, when he had fallen
-asleep, it seemed to him at once that he was in the midst of a very
-gay and pleasant company in a sort of palace whereof the vast room in
-which he stood was one out of very many that opened one into the other
-in sequence. The crowd, and he with it, went forward slowly towards
-a banquet which he heard was prepared. He did not see among those he
-spoke to, and who spoke to him, any face with which he was familiar or
-to which he could attach a name; and yet he seemed to know them all,
-in that curious inconsequence of dreams, and one in especial, at some
-distance from him, which seemed to have been lost once, and now to be
-seen again through the crowd, was a face the sight of which moved in
-him a very passionate memory: yet it was no early memory.
-
-So they went forward, and soon they were all seated at a table of
-enormous length, so long that its length seemed to have some purpose
-about it; and at the farther end of this table was a door leading out
-of that hall. It was a door not very large for so magnificent a space;
-such a door as a man or woman could easily open with a common gesture,
-and pass through and shut behind them quickly.
-
-Now, for the first time, when they were eating and drinking, it seemed
-to him that the conversation took on meaning, and a more consecutive
-meaning than is usual in dreams; when, just as that new phase of his
-dream had begun, one of the guests, a little to the left of the place
-opposite to him, a woman of middle age who had been somewhat silent,
-rose without apology, and without warning left her place he hardly knew
-how, and passed out of the room through the door that he had noticed.
-It shut behind her. No one mentioned or noticed her going, but in a
-little while another and another had risen and had gone. And still as
-each guest departed, some in the midst of a sentence, some during a
-silence in the talk, there increased upon him an appalling sense of
-unusual things; it was appalling to him that no one said good-bye, that
-none of the fellows of those who so departed turned to them or noticed
-their going, and that none of those who so departed returned or made
-any promise to return. Next he noticed with an increasing ill-ease, by
-some inconsequence of his dream, that when he watched the departure of
-a guest (as the others did not) he saw the empty chair and the gap left
-in the ranks; but when he looked again after speaking to some other to
-the right or left the gap was somehow less defined, and when he looked
-yet again it was no longer to be noticed or perceived; though it could
-not be said that the chair was filled or was removed, but in some way
-the absence of the man or woman who had been there ceased to be marked,
-and it was as though they had never been present at all. It was not
-often that he cared to look for more than a moment at one or another
-of these risings from the feast; yet in the moment’s observation he
-could see very different things. Some rose as though in terror; some as
-though in weariness; some startled, as at a sudden command which they
-alone could hear; some in a natural manner as though at an appointed
-moment. But there was no order or method in their going: only all went
-through that door.
-
-His mind was now oppressed by the change which comes in dreams, and
-turns them sometimes from phantasy to horror. There sat opposite
-him a man somewhat older than himself, with a face vigorous and yet
-despairing, not without energy, and trained in self-command. And this
-man answered his thoughts at once, as thoughts are answered in dreams.
-He said that it was of no use wondering why any guest left that feast,
-nor what there was, if there was anything, beyond the door through
-which this inconsequential passage was made. Even as he was saying
-this he himself, suddenly looking towards it with an expression of
-extreme sadness and abandonment, rose abruptly, bowed to no one, and
-went out. At his departure the dreamer heard a little sigh, and he
-who had sighed said that doors of their nature led from one place to
-another, and then he tittered a little as though he had said a clever
-thing. Then another, a large happy man, laughed somewhat too loudly,
-and said that only fools discussed what none could know. A third, still
-upon that same theme, said in fixed, contented manner, that, in the
-nature of things, nothing was beyond the door. At which, the first
-who had spoken tittered again, and said doors of their nature led
-somewhere. Even as he said it his eyes filled with tears, and he also
-rose and went out.
-
-For the first time during this increasing pressure of mystery and
-disaster (for so the dreamer felt it) he watched the figure of that
-guest; none of his companions about him dared or chose to do so; but
-the dreamer fixedly watched, and he saw the figure going down the long
-perspective of the hall very rapidly and very directly. It did not
-hesitate nor look back for one moment, it passed through--it was gone.
-
-The dreamer suddenly felt the wine of that feast, the words spoken
-round him, more full of meaning and of novelty; the noise of speech,
-though more confused, was more pleasing and louder; the candles were
-far more bright. He had forgotten, or was just forgetting, all that
-other mood of his dream, when it seemed to him that in a sense all
-that converse was struck dumb. He heard no sound; he was cut off.
-Their hands still moved, their eyes and lips framed words and repeated
-glances, but around him, and for him, there was silence. The candles
-burned bright through the length of the room, and brightest, as in a
-guiding manner, towards the end of it where was the Door. He felt a
-thrill pass from his face. He rose and walked directly--no one speaking
-to him or noticing him at all--down the long, narrow space behind their
-chairs. It took him but a moment, innumerable as were those whom he
-must pass. His hand was upon the latch; with his head bent forward
-somewhat, and downwards, in the attitude of a man hurrying, he passed
-through. And, not knowing what he did, but doing it as though by habit,
-he shut the door between him and the feast, and immediately he was in a
-complete and utterly silent darkness. But he still was.
-
-
-
-
-The Silence of the Battlefields
-
-
-Whoever has had occasion, whether for study or for curiosity, to
-visit many of the battlefields of Europe, must have been especially
-struck by their silence. There are many things combining to produce
-this impression, but when all have been accounted for, something over
-remains. Thus it is true that in any countryside the contrast between
-the noise of the great fight that fills one’s mind and the natural
-calm of woods and of fields must penetrate the mind; and, again, it
-is evident that any piece of land which one closely examines, noting
-all its details for the purposes of history, must seem more lonely and
-deserted than those general views in which the eye comprehends so much
-of the work of man; because all this special watching of particular
-corners, noting of ranges and the rest, make one’s progress slow, keep
-one’s eyes close fixed to things more or less near, and thus allow one
-to appreciate how far between men are save in the towns. But there
-is more than this. It can be proved that there is more. For the same
-sense of complete loneliness does not take a man in other similar
-work. He does not feel it when he is surveying for a map nor when he
-is searching for an historic site other than that of battle. But the
-battlefields are lonely.
-
-Some few, especially in this crowded island, are not lonely. Life has
-overtaken them, spreading outwards from the towns. By what a curious
-irony, for instance, the racecourse at Lewes, with a shouting throng
-of men as the horses go by, corresponds precisely to the place where
-must have been the thickest of the advance on Montfort’s right as he
-led them to attack the King. Evesham is not lonely. Battle is full of
-houses and of villas, and the chief centre of the fight is in a garden.
-
-But for the most part the great battlefields are lonely; and their
-loneliness is unnatural and oppressive. In some way they repel men.
-Trasimene is the lonely shore of a marsh. One would imagine that a
-place so famous would be in some way visited. One of the great sewers
-of cosmopolitan travel runs close by; one would imagine that the
-historic interest of the place would bring men from that railway to
-the shore upon which so very nearly the Orientals destroyed us. There
-is no such publicity. Sitting at evening near those reeds, where the
-great fight was fought, one has a feeling, rare in Italy, commoner in
-the north, of complete isolation. There is nothing but water and the
-evening sky, and it is so mournful that one might imagine it a place to
-which things doomed would come to die.
-
-Roncesvalles, which means so little in the military history of Europe
-and so much in her literature, is a profound gorge, cleft right into
-the earth 3000 feet, and clothed with such mighty beech woods that
-for these alone, apart from its history, one might imagine it to be
-perpetually visited. It is not visited. No house is near it, save the
-huddled huts round the gloomy place of pilgrimage upon the farther
-side of the pass. A silence more profound, a sense of recession more
-complete, is not to be discovered upon any of the great roads of
-Europe--for one of the great roads goes by the place where Roland died,
-but very few travel along it.
-
-Toulouse is popular and noisy; surrounded by so many small market
-gardens and so busy and humming a Southern life (detestable to quiet
-men!) that you might think no site near it was touched with loneliness.
-But there is such a site. It is the crest beyond the city where
-Wellington’s victory was won. More curious still, Waterloo, at the very
-gates of Brussels, within a stone’s throw, one may say, of building
-sites for suburbs, is the only lonely place in its neighbourhood. That
-valley, or rather that little dip which is so great in military history
-and yet which did so little to change the general movement of the
-world, is the one deserted set of fields that you can find for a long
-way round. And the soil of Belgium, a gridiron of railways, stuffed
-with industry, a place where one short walk takes you from a town to
-a town anywhere throughout the little State, is still remarkable for
-the way in which its battlefields seem to fend off the presence of
-man. The plateau of Fleurus, the marshy banks of Jemappes, the roll of
-Neerwinden, all illustrate what I mean.
-
-If one considers in what two places since Christendom was Christendom
-most was done to save Christendom from destruction, one will fix upon
-the Catalaunian Fields and upon that low tableland in the fork of the
-two rivers between Poitiers and Tours. In the first Attila was broken,
-Asia from the East; in the second the Mohammedan, Asia from the South.
-The Catalaunian Fields have a bleakness amazing to the traveller.
-Nothing perhaps so near so much wealth is so utterly alone. Great folds
-of empty land that will grow little, that only lately were planted
-with stunted pine trees that they might at least grow something,
-weary the eye. One dead straight road, Roman in origin, Gallic in its
-continuance, drives right across the waste. It is there that the Huns
-were broken. It is from that point that their sullen retreat eastward
-was permitted, as was permitted in 1792 the retreat eastward of the
-Royal Armies from their check in that same plain at Valmy; and Valmy
-also is intensely lonely, a bare ridge despoiled to-day even of its
-mill, and the little chapel raised to the soul of Kellerman hides
-itself away so that you do not see it until you are close upon the
-place.
-
-Poitiers has the same loneliness. The Mohammedan had ridden up from the
-Pyrenees, ricochetted from the walls of Toulouse, but poured on like
-a flood into the centre of Gaul. Charles the Hammer broke him in the
-fields beyond Vouneuil. The district is populous and the Valley of the
-Clain is full of pastures and among the tenderest of European valleys,
-but as you drift down stream and approach this place the plateau upon
-the right above you grows bare, and it was there, so far as modern
-scholarship can be certain, that the last effort of the Arabs was
-forced back.
-
-That other battle of Poitiers among the vineyards, the Black Prince’s
-battle, one would imagine, could not seem lonely, for it was fought in
-the midst of tilled land full of vineyards and right above the great
-high road which leads south-east from the town. But lonely it is, and
-if you will go up the little gully where the head of the French column
-advanced against the English archers upon the high land above, you will
-not find a man to tell you the memories of the place.
-
-Creçy was fought close to a county town; but the same trick of
-landscape or of influence is also played there. The town hides itself
-in a little hollow upon the farther flank of a hill, and though the
-right of Edward’s line reposed upon it, and though it was within a
-bowshot of the houses that the boy his son was pressed so hard, yet
-Creçy hides away from the battlefield. And as you come in by the
-eastern road, which takes you all along the crest of the English
-position, there is nothing before you but a naked and a silent land,
-falling in a dip to where the first of the French charge failed, and
-rising in long empty lengths of fallow and of grass to where you can
-see, a single mark for the eye in so much loneliness, the rude cross
-standing on the place where the blind King of Bohemia fell.
-
-Loneliest of all, with a loneliness which perpetually haunts me
-whenever I write of it, is that battlefield which I know best and have
-most closely studied. It is the battlefield on which, as I believe,
-more was done to affect both military and general history than on any
-other--the battlefield of Wattignies. Here the Revolution certainly
-stood, to go under with the fall of Maubeuge, which was at the last
-gasp for food, or, with the raising of that siege, to go forward. By
-the success at Wattignies the siege was raised. In military history
-also it is of great account, for at Wattignies for the first time the
-great mind of Carnot, the darting, aquiline mind of that man whose
-school of tactics produced Napoleon, first dealt with an army. At
-Wattignies for the first time the concentration at the fullest expense
-of fatigue, of overwhelming force upon one point of the objective,
-came into play and was successful. Such tactics needed the Infantry
-which as a fact were used in their development. Still, they were new.
-Now, Wattignies, where so much was done to change the art of war and
-to transform Europe, is as lonely as anything on earth. Lines of high
-trees, a wood almost uncultivated (a rare thing in France), a swept,
-wintry upland without a house or a barn, a little huddled group of poor
-steadings round a tiny church, and against it all the while rain and
-hard weather driving from the French plains below: that is Wattignies.
-Up through those sunken ways by which Duquesnoy’s division charged
-you will not meet a single human being, and that heath over which the
-emigrant nobles countercharged for the last time under the white flag
-is similarly bereft of men. Nowhere do you more feel the unnatural
-loneliness of those haunted places of honour than in this which I
-believe to be the chief one of all the European fields.
-
-
-
-
-Novissima Hora
-
-
-Time, which is to the mind a function of the mind, stretches and
-contracts, as all men know, when the mind impelled by forces not its
-own demands the expansion or the lessening of time. Thus in a moment,
-as the foolish physicists can prove, long experiences of dreams are
-held; and thus hours upon hours of other men’s lives are lost to us
-for ever when we lie in profound sleep; and I knew a man who, sleeping
-through a morning upon the grassy side of a hill many years ago, slept
-through news that seemed to have ruined him and his, and slept on to a
-later moment when the news proved false and the threat of disaster was
-lifted; during those hours of agony there had been for him no time.
-
-They say that with men approaching dissolution some trick of time is
-played, or at least that when death is very near indeed the whole scale
-and structure of thought changes, just as some have imagined (and it is
-a reasonable suspicion) that the common laws governing matter do not
-apply to it in some last stage of tenuity, so the ordered sequence of
-the mind takes on something fantastic and moves during such moments in
-a void.
-
-So must it have been with that which I will now describe.
-
-A man lay upon a bed of a common sort in a room which was bare of
-ornament. But he had forgotten the room. He was a man of middle age,
-corpulent, and one whose flesh and the skin of whose flesh had sagged
-under disease. His eyes were closed, his mouth, which was very fine,
-delicate, and firm, alone of his features preserved its rigour. Those
-features had been square and massive, their squareness and their
-strength the more emphasised by the high forehead with its one wisp of
-hair. But though the strength of character remained behind the face,
-the muscular strength had left it, for that body had suffered agony.
-
-The man so lying was conscious of little; the external world was
-already beyond his reach. He knew that somehow he was not suffering
-pain, and the mortal fatigue that oppressed him had, in that unexpected
-absence of pain, some opportunity for repose. Neither his room nor what
-was left of companionship round him, nor the voices that he knew and
-loved, nor those others that he knew too well and despised, reached his
-senses. For many years the air in which he had lived and in which he
-was now perishing had been to him in his captivity a mournful delight.
-It was a tropical air, but enlivened by the freshness of the sea and
-continually impelled in great sea winds above him. Now he felt that
-air no longer, and might have been so many thousand miles away in
-the place where he had been born, or many thousand miles more, in the
-snows of a great campaign, or under the violent desert sun of certain
-remembered battles; it was all one to him, for he only held to life by
-one thread within, and outer things had already left him.
-
-Within, however, his mind in that last weakness still busily turned;
-no longer considering as it had considered during the activity of a
-marvellous life what answers the great questions propounded to the soul
-of man should receive, still less noting practical and immediate needs
-or considering set problems. His mind for once, almost for the first
-time, was this last time seeing things go by.
-
-First he saw dull pageantries which had been the common stuff of his
-life, and he was confused by half-remembered, half-restored, faint
-cheers of distant crowds, colours, and gold, and the twin flashes
-of gems and of steel. And through it now and then strains of solemn
-music, and now and then the tearing cry of bronze: the bugles. All
-these sensations, confused and blurred, re-arose, and as they re-arose,
-welling up into him like a mist, there re-arose those permanent
-concomitants of such things. He felt again the nervous dread of folly
-and mishap, wondered upon the correctness of his conduct, whether he
-had not given offence somewhere to someone ... whether he had not been
-the subject of criticism by some tongue he feared. And as all that part
-of his great life returned to him, his face even in that extremity
-showed some faint traces of concern such as it had borne when in truth
-and in the body he had moved in the midst of a Court.
-
-Next, like shadows disappearing, all that ghostly hubbub passed, but
-before he could be alone another picture succeeded, and he thought to
-feel beneath him the rolling of the sea. He was a young man looking
-for land, with others standing behind upon the deck, watching him
-in envy because of the miracles he was to do with armed men when he
-should touch the shore. And yet he was not a young man. He was a man
-already weighted with disappointment and with loss of love, and with
-some confused conception of breaking under an immense strain; and those
-who were on the deck behind him watching him, watched him with awe and
-with pity, and with a sort of dread that did not relieve his spirit.
-So young and old in the same moment, he felt in the brain the swinging
-of a ship’s deck. So he strained for land, a land where he should
-conquer, and at the same time it was a land where he should be utterly
-alone, and utterly forget, and be filled with nothing but defeat. The
-contradiction held him altogether.
-
-Then this movement also steadied and changed, and he had the sensation
-of a man walking up some steep hill, some hill too steep. He was
-leading a horse and the horse stumbled. It was bitterly cold, but he
-did not feel the cold: the roaring and the driving round him in the
-snow. Next he was in the saddle; there was a little eminence from
-which he saw a plain. Slight as the beast was his seat galled him. He
-sat his mount badly, and he dreaded lest it should start with him as it
-had started the day before. But even as he so worried himself on his
-bad horsemanship, all his mind changed at quite another sight.
-
-For in the plain below that little height the great battalions went
-forward, rank upon rank upon rank; it was a review and it was a
-battle and it was a campaign. Mad imagery! the uniforms were the
-uniforms of gala, the drum-majors went before the companies of the
-Guard, gigantic, twirling their gigantic staves; the lifted trumpets
-of the Cuirassiers sounded as though upon some great stage, for the
-mere glory of the sound. And mass upon mass, regular, instinct with
-purpose, innumerable, the army passed below. There was no end to it.
-He knew, he was certain, as he strained his eyes, that it would never
-end. It was afoot, and it would march for ever. Far off, beyond the
-line, upon the flank of it, distant and terrible went the packed mass
-of the guns, and you could hear faintly amid the other noises of the
-advance the clatter-clank-clank of the limber. And from so far off he
-saw the leading sabres of commanders saluting him from his old arm.
-Here again was a mixture for him of things that do not mix in the true
-world: Glory and Despair. This endless army was his, and yet would go
-on beyond him. It was his and not his. There was room upon the colours
-for a million names of victories, but every victory in some way carried
-the stamp of defeat. And yet seeing all that pageant as the precursor
-of failure, he saw it also as something constructive. He thought of
-wood that burns and is consumed, but is the fuel of a flame of fire and
-all that fire can do.
-
-As he so thought, like a wind and a spirit blowing through the whole
-came some vast conception of a God. And once again the mixed, the
-dual feeling seized him, more greatly than before. It was a God that
-drove them all, and him. And that God was in his childhood, and he
-remembered his childhood very clearly. It was something of which he had
-been convinced in childhood, a security of good.... Look how the army
-moved!...
-
-And now it had halted.
-
-Here his mind failed, and he had died. It was Napoleon.
-
-
-
-
-On Rest
-
-
-There was a priest once who preached a sermon to the text of “Abba,
-Father.” On that text one might preach anything, but the matter that he
-chose was “Rest.” He was not yet in middle age, and those who heard him
-were not yet even young. They could not understand at all the moment
-of his ardent speech, and even the older men, seeing him to be but in
-the central part of life, wondered that he should speak so. His eyes
-were illuminated by the vision of something distant; his heart was not
-ill at ease, but, as it were, fixedly expectant, and he preached from
-his little pulpit in that little chapel of the Downs, with rising and
-deeper powers of the voice, so that he shook the air; yet all this
-energy was but the praise or the demand for the surcease of energy, and
-all this sound was but the demand for silence.
-
-It is a thing, I say, incomprehensible to the young, but gradually
-comprehended as the years go droning by, that in all things (and in
-proportion to the intensity of the life of each) there comes this
-appetite for dissolution and for repose: I do not mean that repose
-beyond which further effort is demanded, but something final and
-supreme.
-
-This priest, a year or so after he had appealed with his sermon before
-that little country audience in the emptiness of the Downs, died. He
-had that which he desired, Rest. But what is it? What is the nature of
-this thing?
-
-Note you how great soldiers, when their long campaigns are done, are
-indifferent to further wars, and look largely upon the nature of
-fighting men, their objects, their failures, their victories, their
-rallying, their momentary cheers. Not that they grow indifferent to
-that great trade which is the chief business of a State, the defence or
-the extension of the common weal; but that after so much expense of all
-the senses our God gave them, a sort of charity and justice fills their
-minds. I have often remarked how men who had most lost and won, even in
-arms, would turn the leisured part of their lives to the study of the
-details of struggle, and seemed equally content to be describing the
-noble fortunes of an army, whether it were upon the crest of advancing
-victory, or in the agony of a surrender. This was because the writers
-had found Rest. And throughout the history of Letters--of Civilisation,
-and of contemporary friends, one may say that in proportion to the
-largeness of their action is this largeness and security of vision at
-the end.
-
-Now, note another thing: that, when we speak of an end, by that very
-word we mean two things. For first we mean the cessation of Form, and
-perhaps of Idea; but also we mean a goal, or object, to which the
-Form and the Idea perpetually tended, without which they would have
-had neither meaning nor existence, and in which they were at last
-fulfilled. Aristotle could give no summing up but this to all his
-philosophy, that there was a nature, not only of all, but of each,
-and that the end determined what that nature might be; which is also
-what we Christians mean when we say that God made the world; and
-great Rabelais, when his great books were ending, could but conclude
-that all things tended to their end. Tennyson also, before he died,
-having written for so many years a poetry which one must be excused in
-believing considerable, felt, as how many have felt it, the thrumming
-of the ebb tide when the sea calls back the feudal allegiance of the
-rivers. I know it upon Arun bar. The Flood, when the sea heaves up
-and pours itself into the inland channels, bears itself creatively,
-and is like the manhood of a man--first tentative, then gathering
-itself for action, then sweeping suddenly at the charge. It carries
-with it the wind from the open horizon, it determines suddenly, it
-spurs, and sweeps, and is victorious; the current races; the harbour is
-immediately full.
-
-But the ebb tide is of another kind. With a long, slow power, whose
-motive is at once downward steadily towards its authority and its
-obedience and desire, it pushes as with shoulders, home; and for many
-hours the stream goes darkly, swiftly, and steadily. It is intent,
-direct, and level. It is a thing for evenings, and it is under an
-evening when there is little wind, that you may best observe the symbol
-thus presented by material things. For everything in nature has in
-it something sacramental, teaching the soul of man; and nothing more
-possesses that high quality than the motion of a river when it meets
-the sea. The water at last hangs dully, the work is done; and those
-who have permitted the lesson to instruct their minds are aware of
-consummation.
-
-Men living in cities have often wondered how it was that the men in the
-open who knew horses and the earth or ships and the salt water risk so
-much--and for what reward? It is an error in the very question they
-ask, rather than in the logical puzzle they approach, which falsifies
-their wonder. There is no reward. To die in battle, to break one’s
-neck at a hedge, to sink or to be swamped are not rewards. But action
-demands an end; there is a fruit to things; and everything we do (here
-at least, and within the bonds of time) may not exceed the little
-limits of a nature which it neither made nor acquired for itself, but
-was granted.
-
-Some say that old men fear death. It is the theme of the debased and
-the vulgar. It is not true. Those who have imperfectly served are ready
-enough; those who have served more perfectly are glad--as though there
-stood before them a natural transition and a condition of their being.
-
-So it says in a book “all good endings are but shining transitions.”
-And, again, there is a sonnet which says:
-
- We will not whisper: we have found the place
- Of silence and the ancient halls of sleep,
- And that which breathes alone throughout the deep
- The end and the beginning; and the face
- Between the level brows of whose blind eyes
- Lie plenary contentment, full surcease
- Of violence, and the ultimate great peace
- Wherein we lose our human lullabies.
-
- Look up and tell the immeasurable height
- Between the vault of the world and your dear head;
- That’s Death, my little sister, and the Night
- That was our Mother beckons us to bed:
- Where large oblivion in her house is laid
- For us tired children now our games are played.
-
-Indeed, one might quote the poets (who are the teachers of mankind)
-indefinitely in this regard. They are all agreed. What did Sleep and
-Death to the body of Sarpedon? They took it home. And every one who
-dies in all the Epics is better for the dying. Some complain of it
-afterwards I will admit; but they are hard to please. Roland took it as
-the end of battle; and there was a Scandinavian fellow caught on the
-north-east coast, I think, who in dying thanked God for all the joy he
-had had in his life--as you may have heard before. And St. Anthony of
-Assisi (not of Padua) said, “Welcome, little sister Death!” as was his
-way. And one who stands right up above most men who write or speak said
-it was the only port after the tide-streams and bar-handling of this
-journey.
-
-So it is; let us be off to the hills. The silence and the immensity
-that inhabit them are the simulacra of such things.
-
-
-
-
- WILLIAM BRENDON AND SON, LTD.
- PRINTERS, PLYMOUTH
-
-
-
-
-FOOTNOTE:
-
-
-[1] Mr. H. Abrahims, of Eastcheap and The Firs, Guildford, Surrey.
-
-
-
-
-TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES:
-
-
-Italicized text is surrounded by underscores: _italics_.
-
-Obvious typographical errors have been corrected.
-
-Inconsistencies in hyphenation have been standardized.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of On Everything, by Hilaire Belloc
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ON EVERYTHING ***
-
-***** This file should be named 61076-0.txt or 61076-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/1/0/7/61076/
-
-Produced by Tim Lindell, David E. Brown, and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive/Canadian Libraries)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/61076-0.zip b/old/61076-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 0fe0281..0000000
--- a/old/61076-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61076-h.zip b/old/61076-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 5b7ac5f..0000000
--- a/old/61076-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61076-h/61076-h.htm b/old/61076-h/61076-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 9f06a9f..0000000
--- a/old/61076-h/61076-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10022 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=iso-8859-1" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of On Everything, by Hilaire Belloc.
- </title>
-<link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1, h2, h3 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
-}
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
-h2.nobreakright {page-break-before: avoid; text-align: left;}
-
-div.titlepage {text-align: center; page-break-before: always; page-break-after: always;}
-div.titlepage p {text-align: center; font-weight: bold; line-height: 1.5; margin-top: 2em;}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-hr.tb {width: 45%; margin-left: 27.5%; margin-right: 27.5%;}
-
-p.drop-cap {
- text-indent: -0.2em;
-}
-p.drop-cap2 {
- text-indent: -0.5em;
-}
-p.drop-cap:first-letter, p.drop-cap2:first-letter
-{
- float: left;
- margin: 0.15em 0.1em 0em 0em;
- font-size: 250%;
- line-height:0.55em;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-@media handheld
-{
- p.drop-cap, p.drop-cap2 {
- text-indent: 0em; /* restore default */
- }
- p.drop-cap:first-letter, p.drop-cap2:first-letter
- {
- float: none;
- margin: 0;
- font-size: 100%;
- }
-}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-
- .tdr {text-align: right;}
-
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.blockquot {
- margin-left: 25%;
- margin-right: 25%;
-}
-
-
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.right {text-align: right;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-
-
-.xlarge {font-size: 150%;}
-.large {font-size: 125%;}
-
-.gap {padding-left: 5em;}
-.gap2 {padding-left: 11em;}
-.gapright {padding-right: 5em;}
-
-
-
-.ph1 {text-align: center; font-size: x-large; font-weight: bold;}
-.ph2 {text-align: center; font-size: large; font-weight: bold;}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-
-.footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 0.9em;}
-
-.footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: super;
- font-size: .8em;
- text-decoration:
- none;
-}
-
-.poetry-container {text-align: center;}
-.poetry {display: inline-block; text-align: left;}
-.poetry .verse {text-indent: -2.5em; padding-left: 3em;}
-.poetry .stanza {margin: 1em auto;}
-.poetry .indent {text-indent: 1.5em;}
-.poetry .indent5 {text-indent: 4.5em;}
-
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- padding:0.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of On Everything, by Hilaire Belloc
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: On Everything
-
-Author: Hilaire Belloc
-
-Release Date: January 2, 2020 [EBook #61076]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ON EVERYTHING ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Tim Lindell, David E. Brown, and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive/Canadian Libraries)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/cover.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<h1>ON EVERYTHING</h1>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">BY THE SAME AUTHOR</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse"><span class="smcap">Paris</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="smcap">Hills and the Sea</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="smcap">Emmanuel Burden, Merchant</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="smcap">A Change in the Cabinet</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="smcap">On Nothing and Kindred Subjects</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="smcap">The Pyrenees</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="smcap">Marie Antoinette</span></div>
-</div></div></div>
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_title.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="titlepage">
-
-<p><span class="xlarge">ON EVERYTHING<br />
-
-BY<br />
-
-H. BELLOC</span></p>
-
-<p>SECOND EDITION</p>
-
-<p><span class="large">METHUEN &amp; CO.<br />
-36 ESSEX STREET W.C.<br />
-LONDON</span></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>First Published</i> <span class="gap"> <i>November 4th 1909</i></span><br />
-<i>Second Edition</i> <span class="gap2"> <i>1910</i></span></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-<p class="center">
-<span class="xlarge"><i>To<br />
-Madame Antoine Pescatore</i></span></p>
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_ix" id="Page_ix">[ix]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreak">CONTENTS</h2></div>
-
-<table border="0" cellpadding="2" cellspacing="2" summary="table">
-
-<tr><td>&nbsp;</td><td class="tdr"><small>PAGE</small></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On Song</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_1"> 1</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On an Empty House</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_7"> 7</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Landfall</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_16"> 16</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Little Old Man</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_22"> 22</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Long March</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_29"> 29</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On Saturnalia</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_38"> 38</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">A Little Conversation in Herefordshire</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_45"> 45</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On the Rights of Property</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_53"> 53</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Economist</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_60"> 60</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">A Little Conversation in Carthage</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_68"> 68</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Strange Companion</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_74"> 74</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Visitor</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_81"> 81</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">A Reconstruction of the Past</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_90"> 90</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Reasonable Press</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_97"> 97</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">Asmodeus</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_104"> 104</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Death of the Comic Author</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_113"> 113</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On Certain Manners and Customs</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_121"> 121</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Statesman</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_130"> 130</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Duel</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_138"> 138</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On a Battle, or &#8220;Journalism,&#8221; or &#8220;Points of View&#8221;</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_148"> 148</a><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_x" id="Page_x">[x]</a></span></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">A Descendant of William Shakespeare</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_159"> 159</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On the Approach to Western England</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_167"> 167</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Weald</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_174"> 174</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On London and the Houses in It</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_180"> 180</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On Old Towns</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_187"> 187</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">A Crossing of the Hills</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_194"> 194</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Barber</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_201"> 201</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On High Places</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_209"> 209</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On Some Little Horses</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_217"> 217</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On Streams and Rivers</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_223"> 223</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On Two Manuals</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_230"> 230</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On Fantastic Books</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_238"> 238</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Unfortunate Man</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_244"> 244</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Contented Man</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_253"> 253</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Missioner</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_261"> 261</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Dream</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_270"> 270</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Silence of the Battlefields</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_276"> 276</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">Novissima Hora</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_283"> 283</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><span class="smcap">On Rest</span> </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_289"> 289</a></td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xi" id="Page_xi">[xi]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p class="drop-cap">THESE essays appeared for the most part in
-<i>The Morning Post</i>, and are here reprinted by
-the courtesy of the Editor.</p></div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1" id="Page_1">[1]</a></span>
-
-
-<p class="ph1">ON EVERYTHING</p>
-
-
-
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On Song<img src="images/i_graphic5.jpg" alt="" width="400" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">SOME say that when that box was opened wherein
-lay ready the evils of the world (and a woman
-opened it) Hope flew out at last.</p>
-
-<p>That is a Pagan thing to say and a hopeless one,
-for the true comfort that remained for men, and that
-embodied and gave reality to their conquering struggle
-against every despair, was surely Song.</p>
-
-<p>If you would ask what society is imperilled of
-death, go to one in which song is extinguished.
-If you would ask in what society a permanent sickness
-oppresses all, and the wealthy alone are permitted
-to make the laws, go to one in which song
-is a fine art and treated with criticism and used
-charily, and ceases to be a human thing. But if
-you would discover where men are men, take for
-your test whether songs are always and loudly sung.</p>
-
-<p>Sailors sing. They have a song for work and
-songs for every part of their work, and they have
-songs of reminiscence and of tragedy, and many
-farcical songs; some brutal songs, songs of repose,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_2" id="Page_2">[2]</a></span>
-and songs in which is packed the desire for a distant
-home.</p>
-
-<p>Soldiers also sing, at least in those Armies where
-soldiers are still soldiers. And the Line, which is
-the core and body of any army, is the most singing
-of them all. The Cavalry hardly sing, at least until
-they get indoors, for it would be a bumping sort
-of singing, and gunners cannot sing for noise, while
-the drivers are busy riding and leading as well.
-But the Line sings; and if you will consider quickly,
-all the great armies of the world, and consider them
-justly, not as the pedants do, but as men do who
-really feel the past, you would hear mounting from
-them always continual song. Those men who
-marched behind Csar in his triumph sang a song,
-and the words of it still remain (so I am told); the
-armies of Louis XIV and of Napoleon, of the Republic,
-and even of Algiers, made songs of their
-own which have passed into the great treasury of
-European letters. And though it is difficult to believe
-it, it is true, the little troops of the Parliament
-marching down the river made a song about Mother
-Bunch, coupled with the name of the Dorchester
-Hills; but I may be wrong. I was told it by a
-friend; he may have been a false friend.</p>
-
-<p>They sang in the Barons&#8217; wars; they sang on the
-way to Lewes. They sang in that march which led
-men to the assault at Hastings, for it was written
-by those who saw the column of knights advancing
-to the foot of the hill that Taillefer was chosen for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3" id="Page_3">[3]</a></span>
-his great voice and rode before the host, tossing his
-sword into the air and catching it again by the hilt
-(a difficult thing to do), and singing of Charlemagne
-and of the vassals who had died under Roncesvalles.</p>
-
-<p>Song also illuminates and strengthens and vivifies
-all common life, and on this account what is left of
-our peasantry have harvest songs, and there are
-songs for mowing and songs for the midwinter rest,
-and there is even a song in the south of England
-for the gathering of honey, which song, if you have
-not heard it, though it is commonly known, runs
-thus:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse"><i>Bees of bees of Paradise,</i></div>
-<div class="verse"><i>Do the work of Jesus Christ,</i></div>
-<div class="verse"><i>Do the work which no man can.</i></div>
-<div class="verse"><i>God made man, and man made money,</i></div>
-<div class="verse"><i>God made bees and bees made honey.</i></div>
-<div class="verse"><i>God made big men to plough, to reap, and to sow,</i></div>
-<div class="verse"><i>God made little boys to keep off the rook and the crow.</i></div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>This song is sung for pleasure, and, by the way of
-singing it, it is made to scan.</p>
-
-<p>Indeed, all men sing at their labour, or would so
-sing did not dead convention forbid them. You will
-say there are exceptions, as lawyers, usurers, and
-others; but there are no exceptions to this rule
-where all the man is working and is working well,
-and is producing and is not ashamed.</p>
-
-<p>Rowers sing, and their song is called a Barcarolle;
-and even men holding the tiller who have nothing
-to do but hold it tend to sing a song. And I will<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4" id="Page_4">[4]</a></span>
-swear to this that I have heard stokers when they
-were hard pressed starting a sort of crooning chorus
-together, which shows that there is hope for us all.</p>
-
-<p>The great Poets who are chiefly this, men capable
-of perfect expression (though of no more feeling
-than any other of their kind), are dignified by Song,
-much more than by any others of their forms of
-power. Consider that song of Du Bellay&#8217;s which
-he translated out of the Italian, and in which he has
-the winnower singing as he turns the winnowing
-fan. That is great expression, because no man can
-read it without feeling that if ever he had to do the
-hard work of winnowing this is the song he would
-like to sing.</p>
-
-<p>Song also is the mistress of memory, and though
-a scent is more powerful, a song is more general,
-as an instrument for the resurrection of lost things.
-Thus exiles who of all men on earth suffer most
-deeply, most permanently, and most fruitfully, are
-great makers of songs. The chief character in songs&mdash;that
-almost any man can write them, that any
-man at all can sing them, and that the greatest are
-anonymous&mdash;is never better proved than in this
-quality of the songs of exiles. There is a Highland
-song of which I have been told, written in the Celtic
-dialect and translated again into English by I know
-not whom, which, for all its unknown authorship
-(and I believe its authorship to be unknown) enshrines
-that radiantly beautiful line:</p>
-
-<p class="center">And we in dreams behold the Hebrides.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_5" id="Page_5">[5]</a></span>The last anonymous piece of silver that was struck
-in the mint of the Roman language has that same
-poignant quality.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Exul quid vis canere?</p>
-
-<p>All the songs that men make (and they are powerful
-ones) regretting youth are songs of exile, and in a
-sense (it is a high and true sense) the mighty hymns
-are songs of exile also.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Qui vitam sine termino</div>
-<div class="verse">Nobis donet in patria,</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>that is the pure note of exile, and so is the</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Coheredes et sodales</div>
-<div class="verse">In terra viventium,</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>and in this last glorious thing comes in the note of
-marching and of soldiers as well as the note of
-separation and of longing. But after all the mention
-of religion is in itself a proof of song, for what spell
-could there ever be without incantation, or what
-ritual could lack its chaunt?</p>
-
-<p>If any man wonders why these two, Religion and
-Song, are connected, or thinks it impious that they
-should so be, let him do this: if he is an old man let
-him cover his face with his hand and remember at
-evening what occasions stand out of the long past,
-full of a complete life, and of an acute observation
-and intelligence of all that was around: how many
-were occasions for song! There are pictures a man
-will remember all his life only because he watched<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_6" id="Page_6">[6]</a></span>
-them for a pastime, because he heard a woman singing
-as he watched them, and there are landscapes
-which remain in the mind long after other things have
-faded, but so remain because one went at morning with
-other men along the road singing a walking song.
-And if it is a young man who wishes to make trial of
-this truth, he also has his test. For he will note as
-the years continue how, while all other pleasures
-lose their value and gradation, Song remains, until
-at last the notes of singing become like a sort of
-sacrament outside time, not subject to decay, but
-always nourishing men, for Song gives a permanent
-sense of futurity and a permanent sense of the presence
-of Divine things. Nor is there any pleasure
-which you will take away from middle age and leave
-it more lonely, than this pleasure of hearing Song.</p>
-
-<p>It is that immortal quality in the business which
-makes it of a different kind from the other efforts of
-men. Write a good song and the tune leaps up to
-meet it out of nothingness. It clothes itself with
-tune, and once so clothed it continues on through
-generations, eternally young, always smiling, and
-always ready with strong hands for mankind. On
-this account every man who has written a song can
-be certain that he has done good; any man who has
-continually sung them can be certain that he has
-lived and has communicated life to others.</p>
-
-<p>It is the best of all trades, to make songs, and the
-second best to sing them.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_7" id="Page_7">[7]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On an Empty House<img src="images/i_graphic4.jpg" alt="" width="300" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">A MAN a little over forty years of age had desired
-to take a house in London. He had lived
-hitherto between a cottage in the country, where
-he had stables and where he made it his pleasure to
-ride, and rooms in town off St. James&#8217;s Street. He
-had also two clubs, one of which he continually
-visited. From his thirtieth year onward he had come
-more often to town; he was heavier in build; he
-rode with less pleasure. He had taken to writing and
-had published more than one little study, chiefly upon
-the creative work of other men. He was under no
-compulsion to write or to do any other thing, for he
-had a private fortune of about 3000 a year. This
-he managed with some ability so that it neither increased
-nor diminished, and like many other Englishmen,
-he had wisely invested abroad, from the year
-1897 onwards. Now, I say, that middle age was
-upon him, London controlled him more and more.
-He was in sympathy with the maturity of the great
-town, which responded to his own maturity. He
-could find a leisure in it which he had never found
-in youth. The multitude of the books and the easy
-access to them, the sensible and varied conversation
-of men of his own rank and age, and that sort of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_8" id="Page_8">[8]</a></span>
-peopled quiet which supports the nights of men
-living in London&mdash;all these had become a sort of food
-to him; they greatly pleased him. So also did the
-physical food of London. He took an increasing
-pleasure in changing the choice of his wine, which
-(an invariable effect of age) he now distinguished.
-His rooms in London had thus become for now some
-years past more and more his home; but he had
-begun to feel that rooms could not be a home; and
-he would set up for himself; he would be a master.
-He would feel again and in a greater way that comfortable
-consciousness of self and of surroundings
-fitting one which a man has in early youth every
-time he enters his father&#8217;s house.</p>
-
-<p>With this purpose the man of whom I speak
-looked at several houses, going first to agents, but
-finding himself disappointed in all. He soon learned
-a wiser way, which was to ask friends of what houses
-they had heard, and then to see for himself whether
-he liked them, and to do this before even he knew
-what rent was asked. Also he would wander up and
-down the streets, his heavy, well-dressed figure ponderous
-and moving at a measured pace, and as he so
-wandered he would cast his eyes over houses.</p>
-
-<p>London, like all great things, has about it a quality
-for which I do not know the word, but when I was
-at school there was a Greek word for it. &#8220;Manifold&#8221;
-is too vague; &#8220;multitudinous&#8221; would not explain
-the idea at all. What I mean is a quality by
-which one thing contains several (not many) parts,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">[9]</a></span>
-each individual, each with a separate life and colour
-of its own, and yet each living by a common spirit
-which builds up the whole. Thus London, a great
-town, is also a number (not a large number) of towns
-within. And to this man, who had cultivation and
-so often wrote upon the creative work of other men,
-the spirit and the delight of each quarter was well
-known. The words &#8220;Chelsea,&#8221; &#8220;Soho,&#8221; &#8220;Mayfair,&#8221;
-&#8220;Westminster,&#8221; &#8220;Bloomsbury&#8221;&mdash;all meant to him
-things as actual as colours or as chords of music, and
-each represented to him not measurable advantages
-or drawbacks, but separate kinds of pleasure. He
-loved them all, but he gravitated, as it is right and
-natural that a man of his wealth and sort should do,
-to the houses north of Oxford Street and south of the
-Marylebone Road. He had no territorial blood, nor
-had his ancestry engaged in commerce; he was
-European in every ramification of his descent. He
-came of doctors, of soldiers, of lawyers, and in a
-word, of that middle class which has now disappeared
-as a body and remains among us only in a few
-examples whose tradition, though we respect it, is
-no longer a corporate tradition. For three hundred
-years his people had had Greek, Latin, and French,
-and had in alternate generations experienced ease
-or constraint according to the circumstances of
-English life. He was the first to enjoy so complete
-a leisure.</p>
-
-<p>To this part of London, therefore, he naturally
-turned at last, and following the sound rule that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">[10]</a></span>
-a man&#8217;s rent should be one-tenth of his income&mdash;if
-that income is moderate&mdash;he looked about for
-a large and comfortable house. The very streets had
-separate atmospheres for him. He fixed at last upon
-what seemed a very nice house indeed in Queen
-Anne Street. First he looked at it well from without,
-admired the ironwork and the old places for
-lanterns, and the extinguishers; he looked at the
-solid brick, and at that expression which all houses
-have from the position of their windows. It was a
-house such as his own people might have built or
-lived in under George III, and in the earlier part
-of the reign of that unfortunate, though virtuous,
-monarch. In a little while he had gone so far as to
-get his ticket from the agent, and he would view the
-house. He came one day and another; he was very
-much taken with the arrangement of it and with the
-quiet rooms at the back, and he was pleased to see
-that the second staircase was so arranged that there
-would be little noise of service. He remembered
-with a sort of sentimental but pleasing feeling his
-childhood passed in such a house, for his father had
-been a surgeon, somewhat famous, and they lived in
-such rooms and in such a neighbourhood. He was
-pleased with the old-fashioned arrangements for
-heating the water; he did not propose to change
-them. But he was glad that electric light had taken
-the place of gas, and he did propose to change the
-disposition of this light made by the last tenants.</p>
-
-<p>With every day that he visited the place it pleased<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">[11]</a></span>
-him more. It became a daily occupation of his, and
-it took up most of his thoughts. The agents were
-gentle and kind; no mention of competitors was
-made, and the reason for this would have been plain
-to any other but himself, for he was offering a larger
-rent than the house was worth. But his offer was
-not yet confirmed. Many years of successful investment,
-in which, as I have said, he had neither increased
-nor diminished his fortune, had given him a
-just measure of prudence in these affairs, and he
-would not sign in a definite way until the whole
-scheme was quite clear in his mind. For a week he
-visited and revisited, until the caretaker, an elderly
-woman of rich humour, began to count upon the
-conversation which she enjoyed at his daily appearances.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>In the wealthier part of London&mdash;next door to
-the modern abomination of some new man or other
-who was destined to no succession, to no honour,
-and whose fate in the future would probably prove
-to be some gamble or other upon the Continent&mdash;next
-door to such a house, just round the corner, so
-that you could only see the Park sideways, lived an
-admirable woman. She was the wife of a Peer and
-the mother of numerous children, of whom the
-eldest now served as a soldier and was an expense
-to them, as was the youngest, from the traditions of
-his school, which was also expensive. It was her<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">[12]</a></span>
-husband&#8217;s business, when that half of the politicians
-to which he belonged was not in office, to speak at
-meetings and to write lithographed letters imploring
-aid of the financial kind for institutions
-designed to relieve the necessities of the poor. He
-also shot both on his own land and on that of
-friends, and he would fish in Scotland, but as he
-had no land there, he had to hire the fishing. The
-same was true of his sport with the birds in that
-Northern Kingdom; so one way and another they
-were not rich for their position, and this admirable
-woman it was who made all things go well. She
-was strong in body, handsome in face, and of a
-clear, vivacious temper, which pleased all the world
-about her, and made it the better for her presence.
-But none of these attributes were so worthy, nor
-gave her so general an admiration, as the splendid
-and evident virtue of her soul. There was in her
-very gesture, and in every tone of her voice when
-she chose to be serious, that fundamental character
-of goodness which is at once the chief gift to
-mortals from Almighty God, and the chief glory
-and merit of those recipients who have used it well.
-She had done so, and the whole of her life was a
-sacrament and a support to all who were blessed
-with her acquaintance.</p>
-
-<p>Among these was the Man who was taking the
-House, for he had known her brother very well at
-college. She was much of the same rank as himself,
-though a little older. During many years of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">[13]</a></span>
-his youth he had so taken for granted her perfections
-and her companionship, that these had, as it
-were, made his world for him; he had judged the
-world by that standard. Now that he knew the
-world, he used that standard no more. It would
-not be just to say that at her early marriage he had
-felt any pain save a necessary loss of some companionship.
-He had never had a sister; he continued
-to receive her advice and to enter her house
-as a relative, for though he was not a relative, the
-very children would have been startled had they
-ever chosen to remember that he was not one, and
-his Christian name came as commonly upon their
-lips, upon hers, and upon her husband&#8217;s as any
-name under their own roof. He would not, of
-course, finally take this house until she had seen it.</p>
-
-<p>He was waiting, therefore, in the hall one morning
-of that winter a little impatiently to show her
-his choice, and to take her verdict upon certain
-details of it before he should write the last letter
-which should bind him to the place. He heard a
-motor-car come up, looked out and saw that it was
-hers, and met her upon the steps and led her in.
-She also was pleased with everything she saw, and
-her pleasure suddenly put light into the house, so
-that if you had seen her there, moving and speaking
-and laughing, you would have had an illusion that
-the sun had come shining in all the windows; a
-true physical illusion. You would have remembered
-the place as sunlit. She noted the panelling, she<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">[14]</a></span>
-approved of one carved fireplace, she disapproved of
-another; she said the house was too large for him;
-she was sure it would suit him. She showed him
-where his many books would go, and warned him
-on a hundred little things which he had never
-guessed at, in the arrangement of a home. She
-was but half an hour in his company, and still
-smiling, still full of words, she went away. He was
-to see her again in a very short time; he was to
-lunch at their house, and he stood for a moment
-after the door had shut in the silence of the big
-place, as though wondering how he should pass his
-time. The hall in which he lingered was surely very
-desolate; the bare boards he was sure he would
-remember, however well they were covered; he
-never could make those cold walls look warm....
-Anyhow, one didn&#8217;t live in one&#8217;s hall. He just
-plodded upstairs slowly to what had been the drawing-room
-of the house, and the big brass curtain
-rods offended him; the rings were still upon them.
-He would move them away, but still they offended
-him. The lines were too regular, and there was
-too little to appeal to him. He hesitated for a
-moment as to whether he would go up farther and
-look again at the upper rooms which they had discussed
-together, but the great well of the staircase
-looked emptier than all the rest; the great mournful
-windows, filled with a grey northern sky, lit it,
-but gave it no light. And he noticed, as he trod
-the bare wood of the last flight, how dismally his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">[15]</a></span>
-footsteps echoed. Then he called up the caretaker
-and gave her the key, surprised her with a considerable
-fee, and said he would communicate that day
-with the agents, and left.</p>
-
-<p>When he got to lunch at his friends&#8217; house he
-told them that he would not take the Empty House
-after all, whereat they all buzzed with excitement,
-and asked him what he had found at the last
-moment. And he said, in a silly sort of way, that
-it was not haunted enough for him. But anyhow
-he did not take it: he went back to live in his
-rooms, and he lives there still.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">[16]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Landfall<img src="images/i_graphic5.jpg" alt="" width="400" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IT was in Oxford Street and upon the top of an
-omnibus during one of those despairing winter
-days, the light just gone, and an air rising which
-was neither vigorous nor cold, but sodden like the
-hearts of all around, that I fell wondering whether
-there were some ultimate goal for men, and whether
-these adventures of ours, which grow tamer and so
-much tamer as the years proceed, are lost at last in
-a blank nothingness, or whether there are revelations
-and discoveries to come. This debate in the
-mind is very old; every man revolves it, none has
-affirmed a solution, though all the wisest of men
-have accepted a received answer from authority external
-to themselves. I was not on that murky
-evening concerned with authority, but with the old
-problem or rather mood of wonder upon the fate of
-the soul.</p>
-
-<p>As I so mused to the jolting of the bus I began
-unconsciously to compare the keenness of early living
-with the satiety or weariness of later years; and so
-from one thing to another, I know not how, I
-thought of horses first, and then of summer rivers,
-and then of a harbour, and then of the open sea,
-and then of the sea at night, till this vague train<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">[17]</a></span>
-took on the form of an exact picture, and my mind
-lived in an unforgotten day.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>In my little boat, with my companion asleep in
-the bows, I steered at the end of darkness eastward
-over a warm and easy sea.</p>
-
-<p>It was August: the roll was lazy, and the stars
-were few and distant all around, because the sky,
-though clear, was softened by the pleasant air of
-summer at its close; moreover, an arch of the sky
-before me was paling and the sea-breeze smelt of
-dawn.</p>
-
-<p>My little boat went easy, as the sea was easy.
-There was just enough of a following wind dead
-west to keep her steady and to keep the boom
-square in its place right out a-lee, nor did she shake
-or swing (as boats so often will before a following
-wind), but went on with a purpose gently, like a
-young woman just grown used to her husband and
-her home. So she sailed, and aft we left a little,
-bubbling wake, which in the darkness had glimmered
-with evanescent and magic fires, but now, as
-the morning broadened, could be seen to be white
-foam. The stars paled for an hour and then soon
-vanished; although the sun had not yet risen, it
-was day.</p>
-
-<p>The line of the horizon before me was fresh and
-sharp, clear tops of swell showed hard against the
-faint blue of the lowest sky, and for some time we<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">[18]</a></span>
-were thus alone together in the united and living
-immensity of the sea: my sleeping companion, my
-boat, and I. Then it was that I perceived a little
-northward and to the left of the rising glow a fixed
-appearance very far away beyond the edge of the
-world; it was grey and watery like a smoke, yet
-fixed in outline and unchanging; it did not waver
-but stood, and so standing confirmed its presence.
-It was land; and this dim but certain vision which
-now fixed my gaze was one of the mighty headlands
-of holy Ireland.</p>
-
-<p>The noble hill lifted its mass upon the extreme
-limits of sight, almost dissolved by distance and yet
-clear; its summit was high and plain, and in the
-moment it was perceived the sea became a new
-thing. It was no longer void or absorbing, but
-became familiar water neighbourly to men; and
-was now that ocean, whose duty and meaning it is
-to stream around and guard the shores on which
-are founded cities and armies, families and enduring
-homes. The little boat sailed on, now in the mood
-for companions and for friends.</p>
-
-<p>My companion stirred and woke; he raised himself
-upon his arm, and, looking forward to the left
-and right, at last said, &#8220;Land!&#8221; I told him the
-name of the headland. But I did not know that
-there lay beyond it a long and narrow bay, nor how,
-at the foot of this land-locked water, a group of
-small white houses stood, and behind it a very
-venerable tower.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">[19]</a></span>It was not long before the sun came up out of a
-sea more clear and into a sky more vivid than you
-will see within the soundings of the Channel. It
-poured upon all the hills an enlivening new light
-quite different from the dawn, and this was especially
-noticeable upon the swell and the little ridges
-of it, which danced and shone so that one thought
-of music.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the land grew longer before us and
-this one headland merged into the general line,
-and inland heights could be seen; a little later
-again it first became possible to distinguish the
-divisions of the fields and the separate colours of
-rocks and of grassland and of trees. A little while
-later again the white thread showed all along that
-coast where the water broke at the meeting of the
-rocks and the sea; the tide was at the flood.</p>
-
-<p>We had, perhaps, three miles between us and the
-land (where every detail now stood out quite sharp
-and clear) when the wind freshened suddenly and,
-after the boat had heeled as suddenly and run for a
-moment with the scuppers under, she recovered and
-bounded forward. It was like obedience to a call, or
-like the look that comes suddenly into men&#8217;s eyes
-when they hear unexpectedly a familiar name. She
-lifted at it and she took the sea, for the sea began to
-rise.</p>
-
-<p>Then there began that dance of vigour which is
-almost a combat, when men sail with skill and under
-some stress of attention and of danger. I would not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">[20]</a></span>
-take in an inch because of the pleasure of it, but she
-was over-canvased all the same, and I put her ever
-so little round for fear of a gybe, but the pleasure of
-it was greater than the fear, and the cordage sang,
-and it gave me delight to glance over my shoulder
-at that following rush which chases a small boat
-always when she presses before a breeze and might
-poop her if her rider did not know his game. That
-which had been a long, long sail through the night
-with an almost silent wake and the bursting of but
-few bubbles, and next a steady approach before the
-strong and easy wind, had now become something
-inspired and exultant, a course which resembled a
-charge; and the more the sea rose the larger everything
-became&mdash;the boat&#8217;s career, the land upon
-which she was determined, and our own minds,
-while all about us as we urged and raced for shore
-were the loud noises of the sea.</p>
-
-<p>We ran straight for a point where could be seen
-the gate to the inland bay; we rounded it, and our
-entry completed all, for when once we had rounded
-the point all fell together; the wind, the heaving
-of the water, the sounds and the straining of the
-sheets. In a moment, and less than a moment, we
-had cut out from us the vision of the sea, a barrier
-of cliff and hill stood between us and the large
-horizon. The very lonely slopes of these western
-mountains rose solemn and enormous all around, and
-the bay on which we floated, with only just that way
-which remained after our sharp turning, was quite<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">[21]</a></span>
-lucid and clear, like the seas by southern beaches
-where one can look down and see a world underneath
-our own. The boom swung inboard, the
-canvas hung in folds, and my companion forward
-cut loose the little anchor from its tie, the chain
-went rattling down, and so silent was that sacred
-place that one could hear an echo from the cliffs
-close by returning the clanking of the links; the
-chain ran out and slowly tautened as she fell back
-and rode to it. Then we let go the halyards, and
-when the slight creaking of the blocks had ceased
-there was no more noise. Everything was still.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>There was the vision that returned to me.</p>
-
-<p>I was in the midst of it, I was almost present, I
-had forgotten the streets of the treacherous and
-evil town, when suddenly, I know not what, a cry,
-or some sharp movement near me, brought me back
-from such a place and day, from such an experience,
-such a parallel and such a security.</p>
-
-<p>With that return to the common business of living
-the thought on which my mind had begun its travel
-also returned, but in spite of the mood I had so recently
-enjoyed my doubts were not resolved.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">[22]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Little Old Man<img src="images/i_graphic4.jpg" alt="" width="300" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IT was in the year 1888 (&#8220;O noctes coenasque
-deum!&#8221;&mdash;a tag) that, upon one of the southern
-hills of England, I came quite unexpectedly across
-a little old man who sat upon a bench that was
-there and looked out to sea.</p>
-
-<p>Now you will ask me why a bench was there, since
-benches are not commonly found upon the high
-slopes of our southern hills, of which the poet has
-well said, the writer has well written, and the singer
-has well sung:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="verse">The Southern Hills and the South Sea</div>
-<div class="verse">They blow such gladness into me</div>
-<div class="verse">That when I get to Burton Sands</div>
-<div class="verse">And smell the smell of the home lands,</div>
-<div class="verse">My heart is all renewed, and fills</div>
-<div class="verse">With the Southern Sea and the South Hills.</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>True, benches are not common there. I know of
-but one, all the way from the meeting place of
-England, which is upon Salisbury Plain, to that
-detestable suburb of Eastbourne by Beachy Head.
-Nay, even that one of which I speak has disappeared.
-For an honest man being weary of labour and yet
-desiring firewood one day took it away, and the
-stumps only now remain at the edge of a wood, a
-little to the south of No Man&#8217;s Land.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">[23]</a></span>Well, at any rate, upon this bench there sat in
-the year 1888 a little old man, and he was looking
-out to sea; for from this place the English Channel
-spreads out in a vast band 600 ft. below one, and the
-shore perhaps five miles away; it looks broader than
-any sea in the world, broader than the Mediterranean
-from the hills of Alba Longa, and broader
-than the Irish Sea from the summit of the Welsh
-Mountains: though why this is so I cannot tell.
-The little old man treated my coming as though
-it was an expected thing, and before I had spoken
-to him long assured me that this view gave him complete
-content.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I could sit here,&#8221; he said, &#8220;and look at the Channel
-and consider the nature of this land for ever and
-for ever.&#8221; Now though words like this meant nothing
-in so early a year as the year 1888, yet I was willing
-to pursue them because there was, in the eyes of
-the little old man, a look of such wisdom, kindness,
-and cunning as seemed to me a marriage between
-those things native to the earth and those things
-which are divine. I mean, that he seemed to me to
-have all that the good animals have, which wander
-about in the brushwood and are happy all their lives,
-and also all that we have, of whom it has been well
-said that of every thing which runs or creeps upon
-earth, man is the fullest of sorrow. For this little
-old man seemed to have (at least such was my fantastic
-thought in that early year) a complete acquiescence
-in the soil and the air that had bred him, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[24]</a></span>
-yet something common to mankind and a full foreknowledge
-of death.</p>
-
-<p>His face was of the sort which you will only see
-in England, being quizzical and vivacious, a little
-pinched together, and the hair on his head was a
-close mass of grey curls. His eyes were as bright
-as are harbour lights when they are first lit towards
-the closing of our winter evenings: they shone
-upon the daylight. His mouth was firm, but even
-in repose it permanently, though very slightly, smiled.</p>
-
-<p>I asked him why he took such pleasure in the
-view. He said it was because everything he saw
-was a part of his own country, and that just as some
-holy men said that to be united with God, our
-Author, was the end and summit of man&#8217;s effort, so
-to him who was not very holy, to mix, and have communion,
-with his own sky and earth was the one
-banquet that he knew: he also told me (which
-cheered me greatly) that alone of all the appetites
-this large affection for one&#8217;s own land does not grow
-less with age, but rather increases and occupies the
-soul. He then made me a discourse as old men will,
-which ran somewhat thus:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Each thing differs from all others, and the more
-you know, the more you desire or worship one thing,
-the more does that stand separate: and this is a
-mystery, for in spite of so much individuality all
-things are one.... How greatly out of all the
-world stands out this object of my adoration and of
-my content! you will not find the like of it in all<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">[25]</a></span>
-the world! It is England, and in the love of it I
-forget all enmities and all despairs.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He then bade me look at a number of little things
-around, and see how particular they were: the way
-in which the homes of Englishmen hid themselves,
-and how, although a great town lay somewhat to
-our right not half a march away, there was all about
-us silence, self-possession, and repose. He bade me
-also note the wind-blown thorns, and the yew-trees,
-bent over from centuries of the south-west wind, and
-the short, sweet grass of the Downs, unfilled and
-unenclosed, and the long waves of woods which rich
-men had stolen and owned, and which yet in a way
-were property for us all.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There is more than one,&#8221; said I in anger, &#8220;who
-so little understands his land that he will fence the
-woods about and prevent the people from coming
-and going: making a show of them, like some dirty
-town-bred fellow who thinks that the Downs and
-the woods are his villa-garden, bought with gold.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The little old man wagged his crooked forefinger
-in front of his face and looked exceedingly knowing
-with his bright eyes, and said: &#8220;Time will tame all
-that! Not they can digest the county, but the
-county them. Their palings shall be burnt upon
-cottage hearths, and their sons shall go back to be
-lackeys as their fathers were. But this landscape
-shall always remain.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Then he bade me note the tides and the many
-harbours; and how there was an inner and an outer<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">[26]</a></span>
-tide, and the great change between neaps and
-springs, and how there were no great rivers, but
-every harbour stood right upon the sea, and how for
-the knowledge of each of these harbours even the
-life of a man was too short. There was no other
-country, he said, which was thus held and embraced
-by the mastery of the Atlantic tide. For the patient
-Dutch have their towns inland upon broad rivers and
-ships sail up to quays between houses or between
-green fields; and the Spaniards and the French (he
-said) are, for half their nature and tradition, taught
-by a tideless sea, but we all around have the tide
-everywhere, and with the tide there comes to character
-salt and variety, adventure, peril, and change.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But this,&#8221; I said, &#8220;is truer of the Irish.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He answered: &#8220;Yes, but I am talking of my own
-soil.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Then when he had been silent for a little while he
-began talking of the roads, which fitted into the folds
-of the hills, and of the low long window panes of
-men&#8217;s homes, of the deep thatch which covered them,
-and of that savour of fullness and inheritance which
-lay fruitfully over all the land. It gave him the
-pleasure to talk of these things which it gives men
-who know particular wines to talk of those wines, or
-men who have enjoyed some great risk together to
-talk together of their dangers overcome.</p>
-
-<p>It gave him the same pleasure to talk of England
-and of his corner of England that it gives some
-venerable people sometimes to talk of those whom<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">[27]</a></span>
-they have loved in youth, or that it gives the true
-poets to mouth the lines of their immortal peers. It
-was a satisfaction to hear him say the things he said,
-because one knew that as he said them his soul was
-filled.</p>
-
-<p>He spoke also of horses and of the birds native to
-our Downs, but not of pheasants, which he hated and
-would not speak to me about at all. He spoke of
-dogs, and told me how the dogs of one countryside
-were the fruits of it, just as its climate and its contours
-were; notably the spaniel, which was designed
-or bred by the mighty power of Amberley Wildbrook,
-which breeds all watery things. He showed me how
-the plover went with the waste flats of Arun and of
-Adur and of Ouse, and he showed me why the sheep
-were white and why they bunched together in a
-herd. &#8220;Because,&#8221; he said, &#8220;the chalk pits and the
-clouds behind the Down are wide patches of white;
-so must the sheep be also.&#8221; For a little he would
-have told me that the very names of places, nay, the
-religion itself, were grown right out of the sacred
-earth which was our Mother.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>These truths and many more I should have learned
-from him, these extravagences and some few others
-I should have whimsically heard, had I not (since I
-was young) attempted argument and said to him:
-&#8220;But all these things change, and what we love so
-much is, after all, only what we have known in our<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">[28]</a></span>
-short time, and it is our souls within that lend divinity
-to any place, for, save within the soul, all is
-subject to time.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He shook his head determinedly and like one who
-knows. He did assure me that in a subtle mastering
-manner the land that bore us made us ourselves,
-and was the major and the dominant power which
-moulded, as with firm hands, the clay of our being
-and which designed and gave us, and continued in us,
-all the form in which we are.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You cannot tell this,&#8221; I said, &#8220;and neither can
-I; it is all guesswork to the brevity of man.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You are wrong,&#8221; he answered quietly. &#8220;I have
-watched these things for quite 3000 years.&#8221; And
-before I had time to gasp at that word he had
-disappeared.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">[29]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Long March<img src="images/i_graphic4.jpg" alt="" width="300" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE French Service, by some superstition of
-theirs which is probably connected with clear
-thinking and with decision, have perpetually in
-mind two things where Infantry is (or are) concerned;
-these two things are, marching power and
-carrying weight.</p>
-
-<p>It is their thesis, or rather it is their general
-opinion, that of all things in which civilised armies
-may differ the power of trained endurance is the
-most variable, and that the elements in which this
-endurance is most usefully manifested are the elements
-of bearing a weight for long and of marching
-for long and far between a sleep and a sleep.</p>
-
-<p>There is no Service in the world but would agree
-that rapidity of movement (other things being equal)
-is to the advantage of an army. Not even the Blue
-Water School (for which school armies are distant
-and vague things) would deny that. It is even true
-that most men (though by no means all) who have
-to do with thinking out military problems would
-admit that, other things again being equal, the
-power of carrying weight was an advantage to an
-army. But the French Service differs from its rivals
-in this, that it regards these two factors in a sort of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">[30]</a></span>
-fundamental way, testing the whole Army by them
-and keeping them perpetually present before the
-whole of that Army, so that the stupidest driver in
-front of the guns is worrying in a muddled way as
-to whether the Line have not too much to do, and
-the cleverest young captain on the staff is wondering
-whether the strain put upon a particular regiment
-has not been too great that day. The exercise
-is continual, and is made as much a part of the men&#8217;s
-mode of thought as cricket is made a part of the
-mode of thought of a boy at school, or as the daily
-paper is made a part of the mode of thought of a
-man who comes in daily from the suburbs to gamble
-in the City of London. And the French Service
-shows its permeation in the matter of these two
-ideas by this very characteristic test, that not only
-are the supporters of either element in the power
-of Infantry numerous and enthusiastic, but also that
-those (and I believe for a moment Negrier) who think
-these theories have been overdone recognise at the
-back of their minds the general importance of them;
-while the great neutral mass that sometimes discuss,
-but hardly ever think originally, take them as it were
-for granted in all their discussions.</p>
-
-<p>It would be possible to continue for some time the
-exposition of this most interesting thing; it would
-be possible to show how this point of view was connected
-with the conservatism of the French mind.
-It would be possible and fascinating perhaps to show
-the relation of such theories with the mentality<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">[31]</a></span>
-which is convinced upon the retention of private
-property and upon the subdivision of it, upon the
-all-importance of agriculture to a State, upon the
-possession at no matter what sacrifice of a vast
-amount of vaulted, tangible, material gold. But my
-business in these lines is not to argue whether the
-French are right or wrong in this military aspect of
-their philosophy, nor to show them wise or unwise
-in regarding even the railways of a modern State as
-being only supplementary to marching power, and
-even the vast and mobile modern methods of road
-carriage as being only supplementary to the knapsack,
-which can go across ploughed fields or climb a
-tree. My business is not to discuss the philosophy
-of the thing, though I am grievously tempted to do
-so, but to speak of one particular thing I saw.</p>
-
-<p>I saw the beginning, the middle, and the end of
-it. Had I myself been in the Line such things
-might have been so familiar to me that they would
-not in the long run have stood out in my imagination,
-and I might not have been as fascinated as I now
-am by the recollections of that strange experience.</p>
-
-<p>The Infantry that was the support of our pieces
-(for we were Divisionary Artillery) was quartered
-near to us in a little village of what is called &#8220;the
-Champagne Pouilleuse,&#8221; that is, &#8220;the lousy,&#8221; or
-&#8220;the dusty&#8221; Champagne, to distinguish it from the
-chalky range of the mountain of Rheims, those hot
-slopes whereon is grown the grape producing the
-most northern and the most exhilarating of wines.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">[32]</a></span>In this little village were we side by side, and
-very far off along the horizon we had seen the night
-before, to the north, guns and linesmen together,
-the goal of our journey, which was that roll in the
-ground upon the summit of which the very tall spire
-of a famous shrine led the eye on toward the larger
-mass of the Cathedral. The Road was straight both
-upon the map and in our weary minds. It crossed
-the fields on which had been decided the fate of
-Christendom in the defeat of Attila and again in the
-cannonade of Valmy. Little we cared for these
-things. What we cared about, or rather what the
-fellows on foot cared about, was a distance of nearly
-thirty miles with fifty pound and more upon one&#8217;s
-back.</p>
-
-<p>I lay in the straw of the stable near my horses,
-whose names were Pacte and Basilique&mdash;Basilique
-was the elder one and was ridden, and Pacte was
-the led horse&mdash;when I heard the sound of a bugle.
-I was already awake, I cannot tell why, I had no
-duties; I strolled out from the stable into the square
-and watched the Line assembling. They were of
-all sorts and sizes in the dark morning, for the
-French are profoundly indifferent to making a squad
-look neat. Some shuffled, others ran, others affected
-to saunter to where the sergeant, with the roll in
-his hand and a lantern held above it, stood ready to
-call out the names. As they gathered to fall in I
-heard their comments, which were familiar enough,
-for they did not differ from the comments we also<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">[33]</a></span>
-made when any effort was required of us. They
-cursed all order and discipline. Some boasted that
-the thing was not tolerable, and that they were the
-men to make the system impossible. Others cunningly
-hinted that they would deceive the doctor
-and fall out, and in general it would have been conceded
-by any man listening to them that this march
-could never be accomplished.</p>
-
-<p>With the usual oaths, dreadful to an intellectual
-ear, but to us a sort of atmosphere, they fell in, and
-all over the village square were other companies
-falling in and other sergeants holding other rolls.
-Then the names were called, with no trappings, in a
-rather low voice, and rapidly.</p>
-
-<p>One man was missing, and the sergeant looked
-round, saw me leaning against my stable door, and
-told me to go for the guard; but when I had got four
-men from the guard the missing man had come up.
-He was a very little man, in a hurry; he was not
-punished, he was warned. Hardly had I returned
-and hardly had the four men of the guard (who that
-day of the march were Cavalry) gone back straggling
-when the various companies shuffled into place,
-formed fours, and began the marching column. No
-drums rolled, no bugle inspirited them. The little
-village was now more clearly seen under a growing
-light, and there were bands of colour above the
-distant ridge of the Argonne. It was not quite four
-in the morning, and there was a mist from the
-meadows beside the road.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">[34]</a></span>They went out silently. There was a sort of step
-kept, but it was very loose. They sang no songs,
-they were a most unfortunate crowd.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>We had been for two hours upon our horses,
-we who had started long after sunrise after our
-horses had been groomed and fed and watered, and
-treated like Christian men&mdash;for it was a saying of
-ours that the Republic was kinder to a horse than
-to a man, because a horse cost money. We had gone,
-I said, two hours also along the road, trotting and
-walking alternately, with the interminable clatter-clank-clank
-of the limber and the pieces behind us,
-and with the occasional oath of the sergeant or the
-corporal when a trace went loose or when a bit of
-bad riding on the part of some leader checked the
-column of guns; we had so pounded along into the
-heat of the day; the sun was beginning to offend
-us&mdash;we were more in a sweat than our horses&mdash;when
-we heard a long way off upon the road before us the
-faint noise of a song, and soon we saw from one of
-those recurring summits of the arrow-like French
-road, the jolly fellows of the Line. They were not
-more than a thousand yards before us; they made
-a little dust as they went, and as they went their
-rifles swinging on the shoulder gave them a false
-appearance of unity&mdash;for unity they were not caring
-at all. Somewhat before we reached them we saw
-their cohesion break, they became a doubled mob<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">[35]</a></span>
-upon either side of the road, and we knew that they
-were making the regulation halt of five minutes,
-which is ordered at the end of every hour; but
-probably their commanding officer had somewhat
-advanced or retarded this in order to make a coincidence
-with the going by of the guns.</p>
-
-<p>We saw them as we approached lying in all attitudes
-upon either side of the road, some few munching
-bread from the haversack, and some few drinking
-from their gourds. As we came up they were compelled
-to rise to salute another arm upon its passage,
-and their faces, all their double hedge of faces, were
-full of insolence and of merriment, for they had
-recently sung and eaten, and the march had done
-them good&mdash;they had covered about eighteen miles.</p>
-
-<p>So we went by, and when we had left them some
-few hundred yards we again heard faintly behind us
-the beginning of a new song, the tune of which was
-known among us as &#8220;The Washerwoman.&#8221; It is a
-good marching song. But shortly after this we heard
-no more, for first the noise of the horse hoofs extinguished
-the singing, and later distance swallowed it
-up altogether.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>We had come into quarters early in the afternoon,
-we had groomed our horses and fed them, and
-watered them at the chalkiest stream, we had
-brought them back to their stables, and the stable
-guard was set; those who were not on duty went off<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">[36]</a></span>
-about the village, and several, of whom I was one,
-gathered in the house of a man whose relative in the
-regiment had led us thither.</p>
-
-<p>He received us well, for he was a farmer in a large
-way; he gave us wine, bread, and eggs, and a little
-bacon. He said he hoped that no more troops would
-come into the little village that day. We told him
-that the Line would come, so far as we knew, but he
-answered that he had heard from his brother, who
-was mayor of the adjoining commune, that the Line
-were to be quartered in that neighbouring parish,
-that they would march through the village in which
-we were, and sleep in the houses about a mile ahead
-of us upon the road to Rheims.</p>
-
-<p>While he was speaking thus we heard again, but
-much louder than before (for it came upon us round
-the corner of the village street), the noise of a marching
-song. They were singing at the top of their
-voices&mdash;they were in a sort of fury of singing.</p>
-
-<p>They passed along making more dust than ever
-before, and anyone who had not known them would
-have said they were out of hand. Several were
-limping as they went, one or two, recognising the
-gunners and the drivers, waved their hands. The
-rest still sang. No one had fallen out. Their arms
-they carried anyhow, and more than one man was
-carrying two rifles (probably for money), and more
-than one man was carrying none, and some had their
-rifles slung across their backs, and some tucked under
-their arms. So they went forward, and again we<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">[37]</a></span>
-heard their singing dwindle, but this time it continued
-much longer than before, and I think we
-heard it up to the halt, when their task was accomplished
-and the march was done.</p>
-
-<p>They are an incredible people!</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">[38]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On Saturnalia<img src="images/i_graphic5.jpg" alt="" width="400" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">ONE of the bothers of writing is that words carry
-about upon their backs nowadays a great pack
-of past meanings and derivations, and that&mdash;particularly
-to-day&mdash;no word is standing still as it were
-and meaning something once and for all which a
-plain man can say without being laughed at for
-ignorance or for affectation. For instance, Saturnalia.
-To one man it means a certain bundle of
-ritual many centuries dead, common to a particular
-district of Italy and practised in midwinter. To
-another man it means a lot of poor people having an
-exaggerated beanfeast and thereby annoying the
-rich people. But it does not mean either of these
-things to the plain man. It means to the plain man
-occasion and specific occasion for turning things
-upside down and getting breathing space for a
-while from the crushing order of this world. That
-is what &#8220;Saturnalia&#8221; means to the ordinary user of
-the word, and note, he has no other word by which
-to express the idea&mdash;so thoroughly has the thing
-died out since modern English was formed. I suppose
-the nearest word for it in English&mdash;when such
-feasts were still known in England&mdash;was the vague<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">[39]</a></span>
-word &#8220;Misrule.&#8221; Anyhow, it is Saturnalia now, and
-Saturnalia it shall be here.</p>
-
-<p>If a man were to come back from the past and
-watch the modern world into which he had tumbled
-he would note any number of things that would, I
-am certain, intoxicate him with wonder and delight.
-Just as one is intoxicated with wonder and delight
-on landing in youth upon the quays of a foreign
-port for the first time&mdash;that is, if the foreign port is
-well governed, for there is no wonder or delight
-either in barbarism or in decay. Such a man would
-be perpetually running to telephones, those curious
-toys, and marvelling at cinematographs and rejoicing
-in express trains and clear print and big guns and
-phonographs; he couldn&#8217;t help it. Motor-cars moving
-by themselves would fill him with magic&mdash;but
-he would bitterly mislike certain absences, and he
-would complain that half a dozen things were very
-wrong with the world. So many men free and yet
-owning nothing&mdash;so much the greater part of men
-free and yet owning nothing&mdash;would seem to him a
-monstrous and perilous thing. The exact and mechanical
-accuracy that clocks and railways have
-made would offend him; he would see it as a
-disease wearing out men&#8217;s nerves. The modern
-arguments all in a circle round and round the
-old insoluble problems would bore him dreadfully,
-and still more perhaps the fresh discoveries
-every week of principles and plain truths as old as
-the Mediterranean&mdash;but nothing surely would astonish<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">[40]</a></span>
-him or grieve him or frighten him more than
-the absence of topsy-turvydom without some recurrent
-breath of which the soul of man perishes.</p>
-
-<p>And why? There is a question you may ask
-some time before it will be answered. One thing
-is sure, though the sureness of it reposes on some
-base we cannot see: in the proportion that men are
-secure of their philosophy and social scheme, in that
-proportion they must in some fixed manner turn it
-upside down from time to time for their delight and
-show it on a stage or enact it in a religious ritual
-with all its rules reversed and the whole thing wrong
-way about. They have always done this in healthy
-States, and if ever our State gets healthy they will
-begin to do it again. It is a human craving, an
-intense craving&mdash;but why, it would be a business to
-say.</p>
-
-<p>It must not be imagined that the craving or the
-expression of it has passed from us to-day. They
-have no more passed from us than the desire for
-property or for the tilling of the land. But their
-corporate character is broken up, they appear
-sporadically in individuals only, and are therefore
-often evil. They appear in the irony which is an
-increasing feature of our letters, in mad freaks and
-outbreaks for which men strained beyond bearing
-are punished, and they appear in fantastic prophecies
-of a changed world.</p>
-
-<p>One sees that craving for a burst of misrule in
-quite unexpected enthusiasms for things remote<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">[41]</a></span>
-from our lives, in great senseless mobs furious about
-minor things&mdash;the minor actions of a campaign or
-the minor details of law-making&mdash;in the public
-clamour about the misfortunes of some foreign
-prisoner or the politics of some alien State. One
-sees it in the men who suddenly start rules of life
-based on some careful negation of what all around
-them do, in the leaders and teachers who first note
-exactly what nearly all their fellow-beings eat or
-drink or wear, and then most loudly proclaim salvation
-to lie in <i>not</i> eating, drinking, or wearing these
-obviously necessary things. The neighbours stare!
-And no wonder&mdash;for private Saturnalia are dangerously
-near to vice in the sane, in the weak to
-insanity.</p>
-
-<p>But true Saturnalia, public Saturnalia, were
-healthy because they were corporate. Custom and
-religion had dug a sort of channel into which all
-that emotion could commonly run, and in midwinter,
-when it had long been very dark, the mischiefs, the
-comic spirits came out of the woods and for some
-days possessed the souls of men, and these, by that
-possession, were purged and freed. So it was for
-hundreds upon hundreds of years&mdash;until quite the
-modern time. Why have we lost it, and how long
-must we wait for it to return?</p>
-
-<p>When the relations of slave and master seemed
-as obvious and necessary as seem to us (let us say)
-the reading of a daily paper or the taking of a
-train, yet the obvious and necessary routine was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">[42]</a></span>
-broken in midwinter, the slave was the master for
-a moment and the master a slave.</p>
-
-<p>When the ritual of the Church was as much a
-commonplace as the ritual of social life is to us to-day,
-there was a season (it was this season between
-Christmas and the Epiphany) when the dead weight
-of order was lifted and a boy was dressed as a bishop
-or a donkey was put to chaunt the office, and the
-people sang:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="verse">Plebs autem respondet:</div>
-<div class="indent5">H sire Ane, ho! Chantez!</div>
-<div class="indent5">Vous aurez du foin assez</div>
-<div class="indent5">Et de l&#8217;avoine manger!</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>When the awful authority of civil and hereditary
-powers was unquestioned they yet set up in English
-halls Lords of Misrule who governed that season.
-The Inns of Court, I believe, delighted in them,
-and certainly till quite late in the seventeenth
-century the peasantry of the villages.</p>
-
-<p>It has gone. It will return. During its absence
-(and may that absence not be much prolonged) perhaps
-one can see its nature the more clearly because
-one sees it from the outside and as a distant though
-a desired thing. Perhaps we, living in a very unreasonable
-age, when realities are forgotten and
-imaginaries preferred, when we solemnly reiterate
-impossibilities, affirm our faith in scientific guesswork
-and our doubts upon the plain rules of arithmetic,
-can understand why our much more reasonable
-fathers thirsted for and obtained these feasts of unreason.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">[43]</a></span>
-It seems to have been a little like the
-natural craving for temporary oblivion (sleep&mdash;a
-chaos) once in every day; a sort of bath in that
-muddle or nothingness out of which the world was
-made. Equality, which lies at the base of society,
-was brought to surface by a paradox and shown at
-large. Intensity of conviction and of organisation
-took refuge in the relief of a momentary&mdash;and not
-meant&mdash;denial of that conviction and organisation,
-and the whole of society collectively expanded its
-soul by one collective foolery at high pressure, as
-does the healthy individual by one good farce or
-peal of laughter when occasion serves.</p>
-
-<p>How the Saturnalia will return (as return they
-will) no one can say. The seeds of reaction from
-the tangle of the modern world lie all around in
-the customs and the demands of the populace: but
-seeds are never known or perceived till they have
-sprouted. Sometimes one catches the echo of the
-return in a chance jest; especially if it be a cabman&#8217;s.
-Sometimes in a solemn hoax largely indulged
-in by many poor men against one richer
-than themselves. Sometimes in the voluntary
-humour and cynical goodness of heart of a powerful
-or wealthy man exposing the illusions of his
-kind.</p>
-
-<p>Anyhow, one way or another, sooner or later, the
-Saturnalia will return; may it be sooner rather than
-later, and at the latest not later than 1938, when so
-many of us will be so very old.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">[44]</a></span>For my part I shall look for the first signs in the
-provinces of rich and riotous blood as on the Border
-(and especially just north of it) or in Flanders, or,
-better still, in Burgundy from Nuits and Beaune
-northward and eastward. I have especially great
-hopes of the town of Dijon.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">[45]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">A Little Conversation in Herefordshire<img src="images/i_graphic1.jpg" alt="" width="100" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THERE is a country house (as the English phrase
-goes) in the County of Hereford, at a little
-distance from the River Wye; the people who live in
-this house are very rich. They are not rich precariously,
-nor with doubts here and there, nor for
-the time, but in a solid manner; that is, they believe
-their riches to be eternal. Their income springs
-from very many places, of which they have not an
-idea; it is spent in a straightforward manner, which
-they fully comprehend. It is spent in relieving the
-incompetence&mdash;the economic incompetence&mdash;of all
-those about them; in causing wine to come into
-England from Ay, Vosne, Barsac, and (though they
-do not know it) from the rougher soil of Algiers. It
-also causes (does the way in which they exercise
-what only pedants call their Potential Demand) tea
-to be grown in Ceylon for their servants and in China
-for themselves, horses to be bred in Ireland, and wheat
-to be sown and most laboriously garnered in Western
-Canada, Ohio, India, South Russia, the Argentine,
-and other places. Also, were you to seek out every
-economic cause and effect, you would find missionaries
-living where no man can live, save by artifice,
-and living upon artificial supply in a strange climate<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">[46]</a></span>
-by the strength of this Potential Demand rooted in
-the meadows of the Welsh March.</p>
-
-<p>Then, also, if you were to follow the places whence
-their wealth is derived, it would interest you very
-much. You would see one man earning so much in
-the docks and handing on a Saturday evening so
-much of his wages into their fund. You would see
-another clipping off cloth in Manchester and offering
-it to them, and another plucking cotton in Egypt
-and exchanging it, at their order, against something
-which they, not he, needed. Altogether you would
-see the whole world paying tithe, and a stream flowing
-into Hereford as into a reservoir, and a stream
-flowing out again by many channels.</p>
-
-<p>These good people were at dinner; upon the 5th
-of October, to be accurate. Parliament had not yet
-met, but football had begun, and there was shooting,
-also a little riding upon horses, though this is not to-day
-a popular amusement, and few will practise it.
-As for the women, one wrote and the other read&mdash;which
-was a fair division of labour; but the woman
-who wrote was not read by the woman who read, for
-the woman who wrote (and she was the daughter)
-preferred to write upon problems. But her mother,
-who did the reading, preferred what is called fiction,
-and Mr. Meredith was a favourite author of hers;
-but, indeed, she would read all fiction so only that it
-was in her native tongue.</p>
-
-<p>Now the men of the family were very different
-from this, and the things they liked were hunting of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">[47]</a></span>
-a particular kind (which I shall not here describe),
-shooting of a similar kind, their country, and politics,
-which last interest it would have been abominable to
-deny them, for the two men, both father and son,
-were actively engaged in the making of laws, each in
-a different place; the laws they made (it is true in
-the company of, and with the advice of, others) are
-to be found in what is called the Statute Book, which
-neither you nor I have ever seen.</p>
-
-<p>All these four, the father, the son, the mother, and
-the daughter, in different ways intelligent, but all
-four very kind and good, were at dinner upon this
-day of which I speak, the 5th of October, but they
-were not alone. They had to meet them several
-people who were staying in the house. The one was
-a satirist who had been born in Lithuania. He was
-poor and proud and had learnt the English tongue,
-and he wrote books upon the pride of race and upon
-battling with the sea. He was an envious sort of
-man, but as he never had nor ever would have any
-home or lineage, England was much the same to him
-as any other place. He hated all our nations with
-an equal hatred.</p>
-
-<p>Another guest was a little man called Copp. He
-was a lord; his title was not Copp. Only his name
-was Copp, and even this name he hid, for old father
-Copp, who had married a Miss Billings in the eighteenth
-century, had had a son John Billings, since the
-Billings were richer than the Copps. And John
-Billings had married Mary Steyning, who was the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">[48]</a></span>
-Squire&#8217;s daughter, and they had had a son John
-Steyning, since John was by this time the hereditary
-name. Now John Steyning was in the Parliament
-that worked for the Regent, and a short one it was,
-and he became plain Lord Steyning, and then he
-and his son and his grandson married in all sorts
-of ways, and the title now was Bramber, but the
-family name was Steyning, and the real name was
-Copp. So much for Copp. He was as lively as a
-grig, he had travelled everywhere, and he knew
-about ten languages. He was peculiarly brave,
-and as a boy he had stoutly refused to go to the
-University.</p>
-
-<p>Then also there was the Doctor, who was absurdly
-nervous and could ill afford to dine out, and there
-was a young man who was in Parliament with the
-son of the family; this young man had been to Oxford
-with him also, not at Cambridge; he was a lawyer,
-and he was making three thousand pounds a year,
-but he said he was making six when he talked to his
-wife and mother, and most serious men believed that
-he was making ten. The women of these were also
-present with them, saving always that Copp, who
-was called Steyning, and whose title was Bramber,
-was not married.</p>
-
-<p>These then, sitting round the table, came to talk
-of something after all not remote from the interest
-of their lives. They talked of Socialists, and it all
-began by Copp (who called himself Steyning, while
-his title was Bramber) saying that his uncle Gwilliam<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">[49]</a></span>
-had just missed being a Socialist because he
-was too stupid.</p>
-
-<p>The Head of the Family, who had most imperfectly
-caught the pronouncement of Copp as to his
-relative, said, &#8220;Yes, Bramber; got to be pretty
-stupid to be that!&#8221; By which the Head of the
-House meant that one had to be pretty stupid to be
-a Socialist, whereas what Copp had said was that
-his uncle had been too stupid to be a Socialist. But
-it was all one.</p>
-
-<p>The Son of the House said that there were lots
-of Socialists going about, and the young lawyer
-friend said there were a lot of people who said
-they were Socialists but who were not Socialists.</p>
-
-<p>The Daughter of the House said that it was very
-interesting the way in which Socialism went up and
-down. She said: &#8220;Look at the Fabians!&#8221; The
-Mother of the House looked all round, smiling
-genially, for she thought that her daughter was
-speaking of the name of a book.</p>
-
-<p>The Doctor said: &#8220;It&#8217;s all a pose, those sort of
-people.&#8221; But which sort he did not say, so the
-Daughter of the House said sharply: &#8220;Which sort
-of people?&#8221; For she loved to cross-examine struggling
-professional men, and the Doctor got quite
-red, and said; &#8220;Oh, all that sort of people!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The young lawyer, who was quick to see a
-difficulty, helped him out by saying, &#8220;He means
-people like Bensington!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The Doctor, who had never heard of Bensington,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">[50]</a></span>
-nodded eagerly, and the Head of the House,
-frowning a healthy frown, said, &#8220;What, not John
-Bensington, old William Bensington&#8217;s son?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes,&#8221; said the young lawyer. &#8220;That&#8217;s the kind
-of man he means,&#8221; and the Doctor nodded again.</p>
-
-<p>His enemy was dropping farther and farther
-behind him with every stride, but she made a
-brilliant rally. &#8220;Do you mean John Bensington?&#8221;
-she said. The Doctor, in some alarm, and with
-his mouth full, nodded vigorously for the third
-time. The Head of the House, still frowning,
-broke into all this with a solid roar: &#8220;I don&#8217;t
-believe a word of it.&#8221; He sat leaning back again,
-not relaxing his frown and trying to connect the
-son of his old friend with a gang of treasonable
-robbers. He remembered Jock&#8217;s marriage&mdash;for it
-was a bad one&mdash;and a silly book of verses he had
-written, and how keen he had been against his
-father&#8217;s selling the bit of land along the coast,
-because it was bound to go up. He could fit Jock
-in with many unpleasant things, but he couldn&#8217;t fit
-him in with the very definite picture that rose in
-his mind whenever he heard the word &#8220;Socialist.&#8221;
-There was something adventurous and violent and
-lean about the word&mdash;something like a wolf. There
-was nothing of all that in Jock. So much thought
-matured at last into living words, and the Head
-of the House said, &#8220;Why, he&#8217;s on the County
-Council.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The Daughter of the House turned to the lawyer<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">[51]</a></span>
-and said, &#8220;How would you define a Socialist, Mr.
-Layton?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Layton defined a Socialist, and his silent
-wife, who was sitting opposite, looked at him happily
-on account of the power of his mind. The
-Lithuanian, who had said nothing all this while,
-but had been glancing with eyes as bright as a
-bird&#8217;s, now at one speaker, now at another, nerved
-himself to intervene. Then there passed over his
-little soul the vivid pictures of things he had seen
-and known: the dens in Riga, the pain, the flight
-upon a Danish ship, the assumption first of German,
-then of English nationality, the easy gullibility of
-the large-hearted wealthy people of this land. He
-remembered his own confidence, his own unwavering
-talent, and his contempt of, and hatred for,
-other men. He could have trusted himself to
-speak, for he was in full command of his little soul,
-and there was not a trace of anything in his accent
-definitely foreign. But the virtue and the folly of
-these happy luxurious people about him pleased him
-too much and pleased him wickedly.</p>
-
-<p>He went on tasting them in silence, until the
-Daughter of the House, who felt awe for him alone
-of all those present&mdash;much more awe than she did
-for her strong and good father&mdash;said to him, almost
-with reverence, that he should take to writing now
-of the meadows of England, since he had so wonderfully
-described her battles at sea. And the
-Lithuanian was ready to turn the talk upon letters,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">[52]</a></span>
-his bright eyes darting all the while. The old man,
-the Head of the House, sighed and muttered:
-&#8220;Jock was no Socialist.&#8221; That was the one thing
-that he retained; ... and meanwhile wealth continued
-to pour in from all corners of the world into
-his house, and to pour out again over the four seas,
-doing his will, and no one in the world, not even
-the chief victims of that wealth, hated it as the
-little Lithuanian did, and no one in the world&mdash;not
-even of them who had seen most of that wealth&mdash;hungered
-bestially for it as did he.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">[53]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On the Rights of Property<img src="images/i_graphic3.jpg" alt="" width="225" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THERE is in the dark heart of Soho, not far from
-a large stable where Zebras, Elephants, and
-trained Ponies await their turn for the footlights and
-the inebriation of public applause, a little tavern,
-divided, as are even the meanest of our taverns,
-into numerous compartments, each corresponding
-to some grade in the hierarchy of our ancient and
-orderly society.</p>
-
-<p>For many years the highest of these had been
-called &#8220;the Private Bar,&#8221; and was distinguished
-from its next fellow by this, that the cushions upon
-its little bench were covered with sodden velvet, not
-with oilcloth. Here, also, the drink provided by
-the politician who owned this and many other
-public-houses was served in glasses of uncertain
-size and not by imperial measure. This, I say, had
-been the chief or summit of the place for many
-years; from the year of the great Exhibition, in
-fact until that great change in London life which
-took place towards the end of the eighties and
-brought us, among other things, a new art and a
-new conception of world-wide power. In those
-years, as the mind of London changed so did this
-little public-house (which was called &#8220;the Lord<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">[54]</a></span>
-Benthorpe&#8221;), and it added yet another step to its
-hierarchy of pens. This new place was called &#8220;the
-Saloon Bar.&#8221; It was larger and better padded, and
-there was a tiny table in it. Then the years went on
-and wars were fought and the modern grip of man
-over natural forces marvellously extended, and the
-wealth of a world&#8217;s Metropolis greatly swelled, and
-&#8220;The Lord Benthorpe&#8221; found room for yet another
-and final reserve wherein it might receive the very
-highest of its clients. This was built upon what
-had been the backyard, it had several tables, and it
-was called &#8220;the Lounge.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>So far so good. Here late one evening when the
-music-halls had just discharged their thousands, and
-when the Elephants, the Zebras, and the Ponies
-near by were retiring to rest, sat two men, both
-authors; the one was an author who had written for
-now many years upon social subjects, and notably
-upon the statistics of our industrial conditions. He
-had come nearer than any other to the determination
-of the Incidence of Economic Rent upon Retail
-Exchange and had been the first to show (in an
-essay, now famous) that the Ricardian Theory of
-Surplus did not apply in the anarchic competition of
-Retail Dealing, at least in our main thoroughfares.</p>
-
-<p>His companion wielded the pen in another
-manner. It was his to analyse into its last threads
-of substance the human mind. Rare books proceeded
-from him at irregular and lengthy intervals
-packed with a close observation of the ultimate<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">[55]</a></span>
-motives of men and an exact portrayal of their
-labyrinth of deed; nor could he achieve his ideal in
-this province of letters save by the use of words so
-unusual and, above all, arranged in an order so peculiar
-to himself, as to bring upon his few readers
-often perplexity and always awe.</p>
-
-<p>Neither of these two men was wealthy. Such
-incomes as they gained had not even that quality
-of regular flow which, more than mere volume, impresses
-the years with security. Each was driven
-to continual expedients, and each had lost such
-careful habits as only a regular supply can perpetuate.
-The consequence of this impediment was
-apparent in the clothing of both men and in the
-grooming of each; for the Economist, who was the
-elder, wore a frock-coat unsuited to the occasion,
-marked in many places with lighter patches against
-its original black, and he had upon his head a top
-hat of no great age and yet too familiar and rough,
-and dusty at the brim. The Psychologist, upon the
-other hand, sprawled in a suit of wool, grey and in
-places green, which was most slipshod and looked
-as though at times he slept in it, which indeed at
-times he did. Unlike his elder companion he wore
-no stiff collar round his throat, a negligence which
-saved him from the reproach of frayed linen worn
-through too many days; his shirt was a grey woollen
-shirt with a grey woollen collar of such a sort as
-scientific men assure us invigorates the natural functions
-and prolongs the life of man.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[56]</a></span>These two fell at once to a discussion upon that
-matter which absorbs the best of modern minds. I
-mean the organisation of Production in the modern
-world. It was their favourite theme. Their drink
-was Port, which, carelessly enough, they continued
-to order in small glasses instead of beginning boldly
-with the bottle. The Port was bad, or rather it was
-not Port, yet had they bought one bottle of it they
-would have saved the earnings of many days.</p>
-
-<p>It was their favourite theme.... Each was
-possessed of an intellectual scorn for the mere
-ritual of an older time; neither descended to an
-affirmation nor even condescended to a denial of
-private property. Both clearly saw that no organised
-scheme of production could exist under modern
-conditions unless its organisation were to be controlled
-by the community. Yet the two friends
-differed in one most material point, which was the
-possibility, men being what they were, of settling
-thus the control of <i>machinery</i>. Upon land they were
-agreed. The land must necessarily be made a
-national thing, and the conception of ownership in
-it, however limited, was, as a man whom they both
-revered had put it, &#8220;unthinkable.&#8221; Indeed, they
-recognised that the first steps towards so obvious a
-reform were now actually taken, and they confidently
-expected the final processes in it to be the
-work of quite the next few years; but whereas the
-Economist, with his profound knowledge of external
-detail, could see no obstacle to the collective control<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">[57]</a></span>
-of capital as well, the Psychologist, ever dwelling
-upon the inner springs of action, saw no hope,
-no, not even for so evident and necessary a scheme,
-save in some ideal despotism of which he despaired.
-In vain did the Economist point out that our great
-railways, our mines, the main part of our shipping,
-and even half our textile industry had now no personal
-element in their direction save that of the
-salaried management; the Psychologist met him at
-every move with the effect produced upon man by
-the mere illusion of a personal element in all these
-things. The Economist, not a little inspired as the
-evening deepened, remembered and even invented
-names, figures, cases that showed the growing unity
-of the industrial world; the Psychologist equally
-inspired, and with an equal increase of fervour, drew
-picture after picture, each more vivid and convincing
-than the last, of man caught in the tangle of imaginary
-motive and unobedient to any industrial
-control, unless that control could by some miracle
-be given the quality of universal tyranny.</p>
-
-<p>Music was added to their debate, and subtly
-changed, as it must always change, the colour of
-thought. In the street without a man with a fine
-baritone voice, which evidently he had failed through
-vice or carelessness to exploit with success, sang
-songs of love and war, and at his side there accompanied
-him a little organ upon wheels which a weary
-woman played. The rich notes of his voice filled
-&#8220;The Lord Benthorpe&#8221; through the opened windows<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[58]</a></span>
-of that hot night, and drowned or modified the differences
-of cabmen and others in the Public Bar; as he
-sang the two disputants rose almost to the lyric in
-their enthusiasm, the one for the new world that was
-so soon to be, the other for that gloomy art of his by
-which he read the hearts of men and saw their doom.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>It has been remarked by many that we mortals are
-surrounded by coincidence, and least observe Fate at
-its nearest approach, so that friends meet or leave us
-unexpectedly, and that the accidents of our lives
-make part of a continual play. So it was with these
-two. For as they warmly debated, and one of them
-had upset and broken his glass while the other lay
-back repeating again and again some favourite
-phrase, a third was on his way to meet them. A
-man much older than either, a man who did nothing
-at all and lived when his sister remembered him, was
-in that neighbourhood, vaguely wandering and feeling
-in every pocket for a coin. His hand trembled
-with age, and also a little with anxiety, but to his
-great joy he felt at last through the lining of his coat
-a large round hardness, and very carefully searching
-through a tear, and aided by the light that shone
-from the windows of &#8220;The Lord Benthorpe,&#8221; he discovered
-and possessed half a crown. With that he
-entered in, for he knew that his friends were there.
-In what respect he held them, their accomplishments,
-and their public fame, I need not say, for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">[59]</a></span>
-that respect is always paid by the simple to the
-learned. He sat by them at the little table, drinking
-also, and for some minutes listened to their stream
-of affirmation and of vision, but soon he shook his
-head in a quavering senile way, as he very vaguely
-caught the drift of their contention. &#8220;You&#8217;ve got
-the wrong end of the stick,&#8221; he said.... &#8220;You&#8217;ve
-got the wrong end of the stick!... Can&#8217;t take
-away what a man&#8217;s got ... &#8217;tis <i>wrawng</i>!... &#8217;Vide
-it up, all the same next week.... Same hands!
-Same hands!&#8221; he went on foolishly wagging his
-head, and still smiling almost like an imbecile. &#8220;All
-in the same hands again in a week!... &#8217;Vide it up
-ever so much.&#8221; They neglected him and continued
-their ardent debate, and as they flung repeated bolts
-of theory he, their new companion, still murmured to
-himself the security of established things and the
-ancient doctrine of ownership and of law.</p>
-
-<p>But now the night and the stars had come to their
-appointed hour, and the ending which is decreed of
-all things had come also to their carousal. A young
-man of energy stood before them in his shirt sleeves,
-crying, &#8220;Time, Time!&#8221; as a voice might cry &#8220;Doom!&#8221;
-and, by force of crying and of orders, &#8220;The Lord Benthorpe&#8221;
-was emptied, and there was silence at last
-behind its shutters and its bolted doors.</p>
-
-<p>These three, not yet in a mood for sleep, sauntered
-together westward through the vast landed estates
-of London, westward, to their distant homes.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">[60]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Economist<img src="images/i_graphic4.jpg" alt="" width="300" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">A GENTLEMAN possessing some three thousand
-acres of land, the most of it contiguous, one
-field with another, or, as he himself, his agent, his
-bailiff, his wife, his moneylender, and others called
-it, &#8220;in a ring fence,&#8221; was in the habit of asking
-down to the country at Christmas time some friend
-or friends, though more usually a friend than
-friends, because the income he received from the
-three thousand acres of land had become extremely
-small.</p>
-
-<p>He was especially proud of those of his friends who
-lived neither by rent from land nor from the proceeds
-of their business, but by mental activity in
-some profession, and of none was he prouder than
-of an Economist whom he had known for more than
-forty years; for they had been at school together
-and later at college. Now this Economist was a
-very hearty, large sort of a man, and he made an
-amply sufficient income by writing about economics
-and by giving economic advice in the abstract to
-politicians, and economic lectures and expert economic
-evidence; in fact, there was no limit to his
-earnings except that imposed by time and the
-necessity for sleep. He was not married and could<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">[61]</a></span>
-spend all his earnings upon himself&mdash;which he did.
-He was tall, lean, and active, with bright vivacious
-eyes and an upstanding manner. He had two sharp
-and healthy grey whiskers upon either side of his
-face; his hair was also grey but curly; and altogether
-he was a vigorous fellow. There was nothing
-in economic science hidden from him.</p>
-
-<p>This Economist, therefore, and his friend the
-Squire (who was a short, fat, and rather doleful man)
-were walking over the wet clay land which one of
-them owned and on which the other talked. There
-was a clinging mist of a very light sort, so that you
-could not see more than about a mile. The trees
-upon that clay were small and round, and from
-their bare branches and twigs the mist clung in
-drops; where the bushes were thick and wherever
-evergreens afforded leaves, these drops fell with a
-patter that sounded almost like rain. There were
-no hills in the landscape and the only thing that
-broke the roll of the clay of the park land was the
-house, which was called a castle; and even this they
-could not see without turning round, for they were
-walking away from it. But even to look at this
-house did not raise the heart, for it was very hideous
-and had been much neglected on account of the
-lessening revenue from the three thousand acres
-of land. Great pieces of plaster had fallen off, nor
-had anything been continually repaired except the
-windows.</p>
-
-<p>The Economist strode and the Squire plodded on<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">[62]</a></span>
-over the wet grass, and it gave the Squire pleasure
-to listen to the things which the Economist said,
-though these were quite incomprehensible to him.
-They came to a place where, after one had pushed
-through a tall bramble hedge and stuck in a very
-muddy hidden ditch, one saw before one on the
-farther side, screened in everywhere and surrounded
-by a belt or frame of low, scraggy trees and stunted
-bushes, a large deserted field. In colour it was very
-pale green and brown; myriads of dead thistles
-stood in it; there were nettles, and, in the damper
-hollows, rushes growing. The Economist took this
-field and turned his voluble talk upon it. He appreciated
-that much he said during their walk,
-being sometimes of an abstract and always of a
-technical nature, had missed the mind of his friend;
-he therefore determined upon a concrete instance
-and waved his vigorous long arm towards the field
-and said:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Now, take this field, for instance.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes,&#8221; said the Squire humbly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Now, this field,&#8221; said the Economist, &#8220;<i>of itself</i>
-has no value at all.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; said the Squire.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;<i>That</i>,&#8221; said the Economist with increasing earnestness,
-tapping one hand with two fingers of the
-other, &#8220;that&#8217;s what the layman must seize first ... every
-error in economics comes from not appreciating
-that things in themselves have no value. For
-instance,&#8221; he went on, &#8220;you would say that a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">[63]</a></span>
-diamond had value, wouldn&#8217;t you ... a large
-diamond?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The Squire, hoping to say the right thing, said:
-&#8220;I suppose not.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>This annoyed the Economist, who answered a
-little testily: &#8220;I don&#8217;t know what you mean. What
-<i>I</i> mean is that the diamond has no value in itself....&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I see,&#8221; broke in the Squire, with an intelligent
-look, but the Economist went on rapidly as though
-he had not spoken:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It only has a value because it has been transposed
-in some way from the position where man
-could not use it to a position where he can. Now,
-you would say that land could not be transposed,
-but it can be made from <i>less</i> useful to man, <i>more</i>
-useful to man.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The Squire admitted this, and breathed a deep
-breath.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Now,&#8221; said the Economist, waving his arm again
-at the field, &#8220;take this field, for instance.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>There it lay, silent and sullen under the mist.
-There was no noise of animals in the brakes, the
-dirty boundary stream lay sluggish and dead, and
-the rank weeds had lost all colour. One could note
-the parallel belts of rounded earth where once&mdash;long,
-long ago&mdash;this field had been ploughed. No
-other evidence was there of any activity at all, and
-it looked as though man had not seen it for a
-hundred years.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">[64]</a></span>&#8220;Now,&#8221; said the Economist, &#8220;what is the value
-of this field?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The Squire had begun his answer, when his friend
-interrupted him testily. &#8220;No, no, no; I don&#8217;t want
-to ask about your private affairs; what I mean is,
-what is it builds up the economic value of this
-field? It is not the earth itself; it is the use to
-which man puts it. It is the crops and the produce
-which he makes it bear and the advantage which it
-has over other neighbouring fields. It is the <i>surplus
-value</i> which makes it give you a rent. What gives
-<i>this</i> field its value is the competition among the
-farmers to get it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But&mdash;&mdash;&#8221; began the Squire.</p>
-
-<p>The Economist with increasing irritation waved
-him down. &#8220;Now, listen,&#8221; he said; &#8220;the worst land
-has only what is called prairie value.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The Squire would eagerly have asked the meaning
-of this, for it suggested coin, but he thought he
-was bound to listen to the remainder of the story.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That is only true,&#8221; said the Economist, &#8220;of the
-worst land. There <i>is</i> land on which no profit could
-be made; it neither <i>makes</i> nor loses. It is on what
-we call the <i>margin of production</i>.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What about rates?&#8221; said the Squire, looking at
-that mournful stretch, all closed in and framed with
-desolation, and suggesting a thousand such others
-stretching on to the boundaries of a deserted world.</p>
-
-<p>How various are the minds of men! That little
-word &#8220;rates&#8221;&mdash;it has but five letters; take away the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">[65]</a></span>
-&#8220;e&#8221; and it would have but four&mdash;and what different
-things does it not mean to different men! To one
-man the pushing on of his shop just past the edge
-of bankruptcy; to another the bother of writing
-a silly little cheque; to another the brand of the
-Accursed Race of our time&mdash;the pariahs, the very
-poor. To this Squire it meant the dreadful business
-of paying a great large sum out of an income that
-never sufficed for the bare needs of his life ... to
-tell the truth, he always borrowed money for the
-rates and paid it back out of the next half year ...
-he had such a lot of land in hand. Years ago, when
-farms were falling in, in the eighties, a friend of
-his, a practical man, who went in for silos and had
-been in the Guards and knew a lot about French
-agriculture, had told him it would pay him to have
-his land in hand, so when the farms fell in he consoled
-himself by what the friend had said; but all
-these years had passed and it had not paid him.</p>
-
-<p>Now to the Economist this little word &#8220;rates&#8221;
-suggested the hardest problem&mdash;the perhaps insoluble
-problem&mdash;of applied economics in our
-present society. He turned his vivacious eyes
-sharply on to the Squire and stepped out back for
-home, for the Castle. For a little time he said
-nothing, and the Squire, honestly desiring to continue
-the conversation, said again as he plodded by
-his friend&#8217;s side, &#8220;What about rates?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, they&#8217;ve nothing to do with it!&#8221; said the
-Economist, a little snappishly. &#8220;The proportionate<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">[66]</a></span>
-amount of surplus produce demanded by the community
-does not affect the basic process of production.
-Of course,&#8221; he added, in a rather more
-conciliatory tone, &#8220;it <i>would</i> if the community demanded
-the total unearned increment and <i>then</i>
-proposed taxes beyond that limit. <i>That</i>, I have
-always said, would affect the whole nature of production.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh!&#8221; said the Squire.</p>
-
-<p>By this time they were nearing the Castle, and
-it was already dusk; they were silent during the
-last hundred yards as the great house showed more
-definitely through the mist, and the Economist
-could note upon the face of it the coat-of-arms
-with which he was familiar. They had been those
-of his host&#8217;s great-grandfather, a solicitor who had
-foreclosed. These arms were of stucco. Age and
-the tempest had made them green, and the head
-of that animal which represented the family had
-fallen off.</p>
-
-<p>They went into the house, they drank tea with
-the rather worried but well-bred hostess of it, and
-all evening the Squire&#8217;s thoughts were of his two
-daughters, who dressed exactly alike in the local
-town, and whose dresses were not yet paid for, and
-of his son, whose schooling was paid for, but whose
-next term was ahead: the Squire was wondering
-about the extras. Then he remembered suddenly,
-and as suddenly put out of his mind by an effort
-of surprising energy in such a man, the date<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">[67]</a></span>
-February 3rd, on which he must get a renewal or
-pay a certain claim.</p>
-
-<p>They sat at table; they drank white fizzy wine
-by way of ritual, but it was bad. The Economist
-could not distinguish between good wine and bad,
-and all the while his mind was full of a very
-bothersome journey to the North, where he was to
-read a paper to an institute upon &#8220;The Reaction of
-Agricultural Prosperity upon Industrial Demand.&#8221;
-He was wondering whether he could get them to
-change the hour so that he could get back by a
-train that would put him into London before midnight.
-And all this cogitation which lay behind
-the general talk during dinner and after it led him
-at last to say: &#8220;Have you a &#8216;Bradshaw&#8217;?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>But the Squire&#8217;s wife had no &#8220;Bradshaw.&#8221; She
-did not think they could afford it. However, the
-eldest daughter remembered an old &#8220;Bradshaw&#8221; of
-last August, and brought it, but it was no use to
-the Economist.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>How various is man! How multiplied his experience,
-his outlook, his conclusions!</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">[68]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">A Little Conversation in Carthage<img src="images/i_graphic1.jpg" alt="" width="100" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">HANNO: Waiter! Get me a copy of <i>The Times</i>.
-[<i>Mutters to himself. The waiter brings the copy
-of</i> The Times. <i>As he gives it to Hanno he collides
-with another member of the Club, and that member,
-already advanced in years, treads upon Hanno&#8217;s foot.</i>]</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Hanno</span>: Ah! Ah! Ah!... Oh! [<i>with a grunt</i>].
-Bethaal, it&#8217;s you, is it?</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span>: Gouty?</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Hanno</span> [<i>after saying nothing for some time</i>]: &#8217;Xtraordinary
-thing.... Nothing in the papers.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span>: Nothing odd about that! [<i>He laughs
-rather loudly, and Hanno, who wishes he had said the
-witty thing, smirks gently without enthusiasm. Then he
-proceeds on another track.</i>] I find plenty in the papers!
-[<i>He puffs like a grampus.</i>]</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Hanno</span>: Plenty about yourself!... That&#8217;s the
-only good of politics, and precious little good either....
-What I can&#8217;t conceive&mdash;as you <i>do</i> happen to be
-the in&#8217;s and not the out&#8217;s&mdash;is why you don&#8217;t send
-more men from somewhere; he has asked for them
-often enough.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span> [<i>wisely</i>]: They&#8217;re all against it; couldn&#8217;t
-get anyone to agree but little Schem [<i>laughs loudly</i>];
-he&#8217;d agree to anything.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">[69]</a></span><span class="smcap">Hanno</span> [<i>wagging his head sagely</i>]: He&#8217;ll be Suffete,
-my boy! He&#8217;ll be a Sephad all right! He&#8217;s my
-sister&#8217;s own boy.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span> [<i>surlily</i>]: Shouldn&#8217;t wonder! All you
-Hannos get the pickings.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Hanno</span>: You talk like a book.... Anyhow,
-what about the reinforcements?&mdash;that <i>does</i> interest
-me.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span> [<i>wearily</i>]: Oh, really. I&#8217;ve heard about
-it until I&#8217;m tired. It isn&#8217;t the reinforcements that
-are wanted really; it&#8217;s money, and plenty of it.
-That&#8217;s what it is. [<i>He looks about the room in search
-for a word.</i>] That&#8217;s what it is. [<i>He continues to look
-about the room.</i>] That&#8217;s what it is ... er ...
-really. [<i>Having found the word Bethaal is content, and
-Hanno remains silent for a few minutes, then</i>:]</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Hanno</span>: He doesn&#8217;t seem to be doing much.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span> [<i>jumping up suddenly with surprising vigour
-for a man of close on seventy, and sticking his hands into
-his pockets, if Carthaginians had pockets</i>]: That&#8217;s it!
-That&#8217;s exactly it! That&#8217;s what I say, What Hannibal
-really wants is money. He&#8217;s got the <i>men</i> right
-enough. The <i>men</i> are splendid, but all those putrid
-little Italian towns are asking to be bribed, and
-I <i>can&#8217;t</i> get the money out of Mohesh.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Hanno</span> [<i>really interested</i>]: Yes, now? Mohesh has
-got the old tradition, and I do believe it&#8217;s the sound
-one. Our money is as important to us as our Fleet,
-I mean our <i>credit&#8217;s</i> as important to us as our Fleet,
-and he&#8217;s perfectly right is Mohesh.... [<i>Firmly</i>]<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">[70]</a></span>
-I wouldn&#8217;t let you have a penny if I were at the
-Treasury.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span> [<i>surlily</i>]: Well, he&#8217;s bound to take Rome
-at last anyway, so I don&#8217;t suppose it matters whether
-he has the money or not; but it makes <i>me</i> look like
-a fool. When everything was going well I didn&#8217;t
-care, but I do care now. [<i>He holds up in succession
-three fat fingers</i>]. First there was Drephia&mdash;&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Hanno</span> [<i>interrupting</i>]: Trebbia.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span>: Oh, well, I don&#8217;t care.... Then there
-was Trasimene; then there was that other place
-which wasn&#8217;t marked on the map, and little Schem
-found for me in the very week in which I got him
-on to the Front Bench. You remember his speech?</p>
-
-<p>[<span class="smcap">Hanno</span> <i>shakes his head</i>.]</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span> [<i>impatiently</i>]: Oh well, anyhow you remember
-Cannae, don&#8217;t you?</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Hanno</span>: Oh yes, I remember Cannae.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span>: Well, he&#8217;s bound to win. He&#8217;s bound
-to take the place, and then [<i>wearily</i>], then, as poor
-old Hashuah said at the Guildhall, &#8220;Annexation will
-be inevitable.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Hanno</span>: Now, look here, may I put it to you
-shortly?</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span> [<i>in great dread</i>]: All right.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Hanno</span> [<i>leaning forward in an earnest way, and emphasising
-what he says</i>]: All you men who get at the
-head of a Department only think of the work of that
-Department. That&#8217;s why you talk about Hannibal&#8217;s
-being bound to win. Of course he&#8217;s bound to win;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">[71]</a></span>
-but Carthage all hangs together, and if he wins at
-too great a price in money <i>you&#8217;re</i> weakened, and
-your <i>son</i> is weakened, and <i>all</i> of us are weakened.
-We shall be paying five per cent where we used to
-pay four. Things don&#8217;t go in big jumps; they go in
-gradations, and I do assure you that if you don&#8217;t send
-more men&mdash;&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span> [<i>interrupting impatiently</i>]: Oh, curse all
-that! One can easily see where <i>you</i> were brought
-up; you smell of Athens like a Don, and you make it
-worse by living out in the country, reading books and
-publishing pamphlets and putting people&#8217;s backs up
-for nothing. If you&#8217;d ever been in politics&mdash;I mean,
-if you hadn&#8217;t got pilled by three thousand at....</p>
-
-<p>[<i>At this moment an obese and exceedingly stupid
-Carthaginian of the name of Matho strolls into the
-smoking-room of the club, sees the two great men, becomes
-radiant with a mixture of reverence, admiration, and pride
-of acquaintance, and makes straight for them.</i>]</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Hanno</span>: Who on earth&#8217;s that? Know him?</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span> [<i>in a whisper astonishingly vivacious and
-angry for so old a man</i>]: Shut your mouth, can&#8217;t you?
-He&#8217;s the head of my association! He&#8217;s the Mayor
-of the town!</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Matho</span>: Room for little un? [<i>He laughs genially
-and sits down, obviously wanting an introduction to
-Hanno.</i>]</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span> [<i>nervously</i>]: I haven&#8217;t seen you for ages,
-my dear fellow! I hope Lady Matho&#8217;s better?
-[<i>Turning to Hanno</i>] Do you know Lady Matho?</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">[72]</a></span><span class="smcap">Hanno</span> [<i>gruffly</i>]: Lady <i>Who</i>?</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span> [<i>really angry, and savage on that half of his
-face which is turned towards Hanno</i>]: This gentleman&#8217;s
-wife!</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Matho</span> [<i>showing great tact and speaking very rapidly
-in order to bridge over an unpleasant situation</i>]: Wonderful
-chap this Hannibal! Dogged does it! No turning
-back! Once that man puts his hand to the
-plough he won&#8217;t take it off till he&#8217;s [<i>tries hard, and
-fails to remember what a plough does&mdash;then suddenly remembering</i>]
-till he&#8217;s finished his furrow. That&#8217;s where
-blood tells! Same thing in Tyre, same thing in
-Sidon, same thing in Tarshish; I don&#8217;t care who it
-is, whether it&#8217;s poor Barca, or that splendid old chap
-Mohesh, whom they call &#8220;Sterling Dick.&#8221; They&#8217;ve
-all got the blood in them, and they don&#8217;t know when
-they&#8217;re beaten. Now [<i>as though he had something important
-to say which had cost him years of thought</i>], shall
-I tell you what I think produces men like Hannibal?
-I don&#8217;t think it&#8217;s the climate, though there&#8217;s a lot to
-be said for <i>that</i>. And I don&#8217;t think it&#8217;s the sea,
-though there&#8217;s a lot to be said for <i>that</i>. I think it&#8217;s
-our old Carthaginian home-life [<i>triumphantly</i>]. That&#8217;s
-what it is! It isn&#8217;t even hunting, though there&#8217;s a
-lot to be said for that. It&#8217;s the old&mdash;&mdash; [<i>Hanno
-suddenly gets up and begins walking away.</i>]</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bethaal</span> [<i>leaning forwards to Matho</i>]: Please don&#8217;t
-mind my cousin. You know he&#8217;s a little odd when
-he meets anyone for the first time; but he&#8217;s a really
-good fellow at heart, and he&#8217;ll help anyone. But, of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">[73]</a></span>
-course [<i>smiling gently</i>], he doesn&#8217;t understand politics
-any more than&mdash;&mdash; [<i>Matho waves his hand to show that
-he understands.</i>] But such a good fellow! Do you
-know Lady Hanno? [<i>They continue talking, chiefly
-upon the merits of Hannibal, but also upon their own.</i>]</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">[74]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Strange Companion<img src="images/i_graphic3.jpg" alt="" width="225" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IT was in Lichfield, now some months ago, that I
-stood by a wall that flanks the main road there
-and overlooks a fine wide pond, in which you may
-see the three spires of the Cathedral mirrored.</p>
-
-<p>As I so gazed into the water and noted the clear
-reflection of the stonework a man came up beside
-me and talked in a very cheery way. He accosted
-me with such freedom that he was very evidently
-not from Europe, and as there was no insolence in
-his freedom he was not a forward Asiatic either;
-besides which, his face was that of our own race,
-for his nose was short and simple and his lips
-reasonably thin. His eyes were full of astonishment
-and vitality. He was seeing the world. He
-was perhaps thirty-five years old.</p>
-
-<p>I would not say that he was a Colonial, because
-that word means so little; but he talked English in
-that accent commonly called American, yet he
-said he was a Brittishur, so what he was remains
-concealed; but surely he was not of this land, for,
-as you shall presently see, England was more of a
-marvel to him than it commonly is to the English.</p>
-
-<p>He asked me, to begin with, the name of the
-building upon our left, and I told him it was the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">[75]</a></span>
-Cathedral, to which his immediate answer was, was
-I sure? How could there be a cathedral in such a
-little town?</p>
-
-<p>I said that it just was so, and I remembered the
-difficulty of the explanation and said no more.
-Then he looked up at the three spires and said:
-&#8220;Wondurful; isn&#8217;t it?&#8221; And I said: &#8220;Yes.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Then I said to him that we would go in, and he
-seemed very willing; so we went towards the Close,
-and as we went he talked to me about the religion
-of those who served the Cathedral, and asked if
-they were Episcopalian, or what. So this also I
-told him. And when he learnt that what I told
-him was true of all the other cathedrals, he said
-heartily: &#8220;Is thet so?&#8221; And he was silent for
-half a minute or more.</p>
-
-<p>We came and stood by the west front, and looked
-up at the height of it, and he was impressed.</p>
-
-<p>He wagged his head at it and said: &#8220;Wondurful,
-isn&#8217;t it?&#8221; And then he added: &#8220;Marvlurs how
-they did things in those old days!&#8221; but I told him
-that much of what he was looking at was new.</p>
-
-<p>In answer to this (for I fear that his honest mind
-was beginning to be disturbed by doubt), he pointed
-to the sculptured figures and said that they were
-old, as one could see by their costumes. And as I
-thought there might be a quarrel about it, I did not
-contradict; but I let him go wandering round to
-the south of it until he came to the figure of a
-knight with a moustache, gooseberry eyes, and in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">[76]</a></span>
-general a face so astoundingly modern that one did
-not know what to say or do when one looked at it.
-It was expressionless.</p>
-
-<p>My companion, who had not told me his name,
-looked long and thoughtfully at this figure, and then
-came back, more full of time and of the past of our
-race than ever; he insisted upon my coming round
-with him and looking at the image. He told me
-that we could not do better than that nowadays
-with all our machinery, and he asked me whether a
-photograph could be got of it. I told him yes, without
-doubt, and what was better, perhaps the sculptor
-had a duplicate, and that we would go and find if
-this were so, but he paid no attention to these words.</p>
-
-<p>The amount of work in the building profoundly
-moved this man, and he asked me why there was so
-much ornament, for he could clearly estimate the
-vast additional expense of working so much stone
-that might have been left plain; though I am certain,
-from what I gathered of his character, he would not
-have left any building wholly plain, not even a railway
-station, still less a town hall, but would have
-had here and there an allegorical figure as of Peace
-or of Commerce&mdash;the figure of an Abstract Idea.
-Still he was moved by such an excess of useless
-labour as stood before him. Not that it did not give
-him pleasure&mdash;it gave him great pleasure&mdash;but that
-he thought it enough and more than enough.</p>
-
-<p>We went inside. I saw that he took off his hat,
-a custom doubtless universal, and, what struck me<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">[77]</a></span>
-much more, he adopted within the Cathedral a tone
-of whisper, not only much lower than his ordinary
-voice, but of quite a different quality, and I noticed
-that he was less erect as he walked, although his
-head was craned upward to look towards the roof.
-The stained glass especially pleased him, but there
-was much about it he did not understand. I told
-him that there could be seen there a copy of the
-Gospels of great antiquity which had belonged to
-St. Chad; but when I said this he smiled pleasantly,
-as though I had offered to show him the saddle of a
-Unicorn or the tanned skin of a Hippogriff. Had
-we not been in so sacred a place I believe he would
-have dug me in the ribs. &#8220;St. <i>Who</i>?&#8221; he whispered,
-looking slily sideways at me as he said it. &#8220;St.
-Chad,&#8221; I said. &#8220;He was the Apostle to Mercia.&#8221;
-But after that I could do no more with him. For
-the word &#8220;Saint&#8221; had put him into fairyland, and
-he was not such a fool as to mix up a name like
-Chad with one of the Apostles; and Mercia is of
-little use to men.</p>
-
-<p>However, there was no quarrelsomeness about
-him, and he peered at the writing curiously, pointing
-out to me that the letters were quite legible,
-though he could not make out the words which they
-spelled, and very rightly supposed it was a foreign
-language. He asked a little suspiciously whether
-it was the Gospel, and accepted the assurance that
-it was; so that his mind, sceptical to excess in some
-matters, found its balance by a ready credence in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">[78]</a></span>
-others and remained sane and whole. He was again
-touched by the glass in the Lady Chapel, and noted
-that it was of a different colour to the other and
-paler, so that he liked it less. I told him it was
-Spanish, and this apparently explained the matter to
-him, for he changed his face at once and began to
-give me the reason of its inferiority.</p>
-
-<p>He had not been in Spain, but he had evidently
-read much about the country, which was moribund.
-He pointed out to me the unnatural attitude of the
-figures in this glass, and contrasted its half-tones with
-the full-blooded colours of the modern work behind
-us, and he was particularly careful to note the irregularity
-of the lettering and the dates in this glass
-compared with the other which had so greatly
-struck him. I was interested in his fixed convictions
-relative to the Spaniards, but just as I was about to
-question him further upon that race I began to have
-my doubts whether the glass were not French. It
-was plainly later than the Reformation, and I should
-have guessed the end of the sixteenth or beginning
-of the seventeenth century. But I hid the misgiving
-in my heart, lest the little trust in me which my
-companion still had should vanish altogether.</p>
-
-<p>We went out of the great building slowly, and
-he repeatedly turned to look back up it, and to
-admire the proportions. He asked me the exact
-height of the central spire, and as I could not tell
-him this I felt ashamed, but he told me he would
-find it in a book, and I assured him this could be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">[79]</a></span>
-done with ease. The visit had impressed him
-deeply; it may be he had not seen such things
-before, or it may be that he was more at leisure to
-attend to the details which had been presented to
-him. This last I gathered on his telling me, as we
-walked towards the Inn, that he had had no work
-to do for two days, but that same evening he was to
-meet a man in Birmingham, by whom, he earnestly
-assured me, he was offered opportunities of wealth
-in return for so small an investment of capital as
-was negligible, and here he would have permitted
-me also to share in this distant venture, had I not,
-at some great risk to that human esteem without
-which we none of us can live, given him clearly to
-understand that his generosity was waste of time,
-and that for the reason that there was no money to
-invest. It impressed him much more sharply than
-any plea of judgment or of other investments could
-have done.</p>
-
-<p>Though I had lost very heavily by permitting
-myself such a confession to him, he was ready to
-dine with me at the Inn before taking his train, and
-as he dined he told me at some length the name of
-his native place, which was, oddly enough, that of a
-great German statesman, whether Bismarck or another
-I cannot now remember; its habits and its
-character he also told me, but as I forgot to press
-him as to its latitude or longitude to this day I am
-totally ignorant of the quarter of the globe in which
-it may lie.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">[80]</a></span>During our meal it disturbed him to see a bottle
-of wine upon the table, but he was careful to assure
-me that when he was travelling he did not object
-to the habits of others, and that he would not for
-one moment forbid the use in his presence of a
-beverage which in his native place (he did not omit
-to repeat) would be as little tolerated as any
-other open temptation to crime. It was a wine
-called St. Emilion, but it no more came from that
-Sub-Prefecture than it did from the hot fields of
-Barsac; it was common Algerian wine, watered
-down, and&mdash;if you believe me&mdash;three shillings a
-bottle.</p>
-
-<p>I lost my companion at nine, and I have never
-seen him since, but he is surely still alive somewhere,
-ready, and happy, and hearty, and noting all the
-things of this multiple world, and judging them with
-a hearty common sense, which for so many well fills
-the place of mere learning.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">[81]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Visitor<img src="images/i_graphic5.jpg" alt="" width="400" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap2">AS I was going across Waterloo Bridge the other
-day, and when I had got to the other side of
-it, there appeared quite suddenly, I cannot say
-whence, a most extraordinary man.</p>
-
-<p>He was dressed in black silk, he had a sort of
-coat, or rather shirt, of black silk, with ample
-sleeves which were tied at either wrist tightly with
-brilliant golden threads. This shirt, or coat, came
-down to his knees, and appeared to be seamless.
-His trousers, which were very full and baggy, were
-caught at his ankles by similar golden threads. His
-feet were bare save for a pair of sandals. He had
-nothing upon his head, which was close cropped.
-His face was clean shaven. The only thing approaching
-an ornament, besides the golden threads
-of which I have spoken, was an enormous many-coloured
-and complicated coat-of-arms embroidered
-upon his breast, and showing up magnificently
-against the black.</p>
-
-<p>He had appeared so suddenly that I almost ran
-into him, and he said to me breathlessly, and with a
-very strong nasal twang, &#8220;Can you talk English?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I said that I could do so with fluency, and he
-appeared greatly relieved. Then he added, with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">[82]</a></span>
-that violent nasal twang again, &#8220;You take me out
-of this!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>There was a shut taxi-cab passing and we got
-into it, and when he had got out of the crush,
-where several people had already stopped to stare
-at him, he lay back, panting a little, as though he
-had been running. The taxi-man looked in suddenly
-through the window, and asked, in the tone
-of voice of a man much insulted, where he was to
-drive to, adding that he didn&#8217;t want to go far.</p>
-
-<p>I suggested the &#8220;Angel&#8221; at Islington, which I
-had never seen. The machine began to buzz, and
-we shot northward.</p>
-
-<p>The stranger pulled himself together, and said in
-that irritating accent of his which I have already
-mentioned twice, &#8220;Now say, <i>you</i>, what year&#8217;s this
-anyway?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I said it was 1909 (for it happened this year),
-to which he answered thoughtfully, &#8220;Well, I have
-missed it!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Missed what?&#8221; said I.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, 1903,&#8221; said he.</p>
-
-<p>And thereupon he told me a very extraordinary
-but very interesting tale.</p>
-
-<p>It seems (according to him) that his name was
-Baron Hogg; that his place of living is (or rather
-will be) on Harting Hill, above Petersfield, where
-he has (or rather will have) a large house. But
-the really interesting thing in all that he told me
-was this: that he was born in the year 2183,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">[83]</a></span>
-&#8220;which,&#8221; he added lucidly enough, &#8220;would be your
-2187.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why?&#8221; said I, bewildered, when he told me
-this.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Good Lord!&#8221; he answered, quite frankly astonished,
-&#8220;you must know, even in 1909, that the
-calendar is four years out?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I answered that a little handful of learned men
-knew this, but that we had not changed our reckoning
-for various practical reasons. To which he
-replied, leaning forward with a learned, interested
-look:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, I came to learn things, and I lay I&#8217;m
-learning.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He next went on to tell me that he had laid a
-bet with another man that he would &#8220;hit&#8221; 1903,
-on the 15th of June, and that the other man had
-laid a bet that he would get nearer. They were to
-meet at the Savoy Hotel at noon on the 30th, and
-to compare notes; and whichever had won was to
-pay the other a set of Records, for it seems they
-were both Antiquarians.</p>
-
-<p>All this was Greek to me (as I daresay it is to
-you) until he pulled out of his pocket a thing like a
-watch, and noted that the dial was set at 1909.
-Whereupon he began tapping it and cursing in the
-name of a number of Saints familiar to us all.</p>
-
-<p>It seems that to go backwards in time, according
-to him, was an art easily achieved towards the
-middle of the Twenty-second Century, and it was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">[84]</a></span>
-worked by the simplest of instruments. I asked
-him if he had read &#8220;The Time Machine.&#8221; He
-said impatiently, &#8220;You have,&#8221; and went on to
-explain the little dial.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;They cost a deal of money, but then,&#8221; he added,
-with beautiful simplicity, &#8220;I have told you that I
-am Baron Hogg.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Rich people played at it apparently as ours do at
-ballooning, and with the same uncertainty.</p>
-
-<p>I asked him whether he could get forward into
-the future. He simply said: &#8220;What <i>do</i> you mean?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why,&#8221; said I, &#8220;according to St. Thomas, time
-is a dimension, just like space.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>When I said the words &#8220;St. Thomas&#8221; he made a
-curious sign, like a man saluting. &#8220;Yes,&#8221; he said,
-gravely and reverently, &#8220;but you know well the
-future is forbidden to men.&#8221; He then made a
-digression to ask if St. Thomas was read in 1909.
-I told him to what extent, and by whom. He got
-intensely interested. He looked right up into my
-face, and began making gestures with his hands.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Now that really <i>is</i> interesting,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>I asked him &#8220;Why?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, you see,&#8221; he said in an off-hand way,
-&#8220;there&#8217;s the usual historic quarrel. On the face of it
-one would say he wasn&#8217;t read at all, looking up the
-old Records, and so on. Then some Specialist gets
-hold of all the mentions of him in the early Twentieth
-Century, and writes a book to show that even
-the politicians had heard of him. Then there is a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">[85]</a></span>
-discussion, and nothing comes of it. <i>That&#8217;s</i> where
-the fun of Travelling Back comes in. You find out.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I asked him if he had ever gone to the other
-centuries. He said, &#8220;No, but Pop did.&#8221; I learned
-later that &#8220;Pop&#8221; was his father.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You see,&#8221; he added respectfully, &#8220;Pop&#8217;s only
-just dead, and, of course, I couldn&#8217;t afford it on my
-allowance. Pop,&#8221; he went on, rather proudly, &#8220;got
-himself back into the Thirteenth Century during a
-walk in Kent with a friend, and found himself in
-the middle of a horrible great river. He was saved
-just before the time was up.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;How do you mean &#8216;the time was up&#8217;?&#8221; said I.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why,&#8221; he answered me, &#8220;you don&#8217;t suppose
-Pop could afford more than one hour, do you?
-Why, the Pope couldn&#8217;t afford more than six hours,
-even after they voted him a subsidy from Africa,
-and Pop was rich enough, Lord knows! Richer&#8217;n I
-am, coz of the gurls.... I told you I was Baron
-Hogg,&#8221; he went on, without affectation.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes&#8221; said I, &#8220;you did.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, now, to go back to St. Thomas,&#8221; he
-began&mdash;&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why on earth&mdash;&mdash;?&#8221; said I.</p>
-
-<p>He interrupted me. &#8220;Now that <i>is</i> interesting,&#8221;
-he said. &#8220;You know about St. Thomas, and you
-can tell me about the people who know about him,
-but it <i>does</i> show that he had gone out in the Twentieth
-Century, for you to talk like that! Why, I
-got full marks in St. Thomas. Only thing I did<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">[86]</a></span>
-get full marks in,&#8221; he said gloomily, looking out of
-the window. &#8220;That&#8217;s what <i>counts</i>,&#8221; he added: &#8220;none
-of yer high-falutin&#8217; dodgy fellows. When the Colonel
-said, &#8216;Who&#8217;s got the most stuff in him?&#8217; (not because
-of the rocks nor because I&#8217;m Baron Hogg),
-they all said, &#8216;<i>That&#8217;s</i> him.&#8217; And that was because
-I got first in St. Thomas.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>To say that I simply could not make head or tail
-of this would be to say too little: and my muddlement
-got worse when he added, &#8220;That&#8217;s why the
-Colonel made me Alderman, and now I go to Paris
-by right.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Just at that moment the taxi-man put in his head
-at the window and said, with an aggrieved look:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why didn&#8217;t you tell me where I was going?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I looked out, and saw that I was in a desolate
-place near the River Lea, among marshes and chimneys
-and the poor. There was a rotten-looking
-shed close by, and a policeman, uncommonly suspicious.
-My friend got quite excited. He pointed
-to the policeman and said:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, how like the pictures! Is it true that they
-are the Secret Power in England? Now <i>do</i>&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The taxi-man got quite angry, and pointed out to
-me that his cab was not a caravan. He further informed
-me that it had been my business to tell him
-the way to the &#8220;Angel.&#8221; His asset was that if he
-dropped me there I would be in a bad way; mine
-was that if I paid him off there he would be in a
-worse one. We bargained and quarrelled, and as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">[87]</a></span>
-we did so the policeman majestically moved up,
-estimated the comparative wealth of the three
-people concerned, and falsely imagining my friend
-to be an actor in broad daylight, he took the taxi-man&#8217;s
-part, and ordered us off back to the &#8220;Angel,&#8221;
-telling us we ought to be thankful to be let off so
-lightly. He further gave the taxi-man elaborate instructions
-for reaching the place.</p>
-
-<p>As I had no desire to get to the &#8220;Angel&#8221; really,
-I implored the taxi-man to take me back to Westminster,
-which he was willing to do, and on the way
-the Man from the Future was most entertaining.
-He spotted the public-houses as we passed, and
-asked me, as a piece of solid, practical information,
-whether wine, beer, and spirits were sold in them.
-I said, &#8220;Of course,&#8221; but he told me that there was a
-great controversy in his generation, some people
-maintaining that the number of them was, in fiction,
-drawn by enemies; others said that they were, as a
-fact, quite few and unimportant in London, and
-others again that they simply did not exist but were
-the creations of social satire. He asked me to point
-him out the houses of Brill and Ferguson, who, it
-seems, were in the eyes of the Twenty-second Century
-the principal authors of our time. When I
-answered that I had never heard of them he said,
-&#8220;That <i>is</i> interesting.&#8221; I was a little annoyed and
-asked him whether he had ever heard of Kipling,
-Miss Fowler, or Swinburne.</p>
-
-<p>He said of course he had read Kipling and Swinburne,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">[88]</a></span>
-and though he had not read Miss Fowler&#8217;s
-works he had been advised to. But he said that
-Brill for wit and Ferguson for economic analysis
-were surely the glories of our England. Then he
-suddenly added, &#8220;Well, I&#8217;m not sure about 1909.
-The first <i>Collected</i> Brill is always thought to be 1911.
-But Ferguson! Why he knew a lot of people as
-early as 1907! He did the essay on Medival
-Economics which is the appendix to our school text
-of St. Thomas.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>At this moment we were going down Whitehall.
-He jumped up excitedly, pointed at the Duke of
-Cambridge&#8217;s statue and said, &#8220;That&#8217;s Charles I.&#8221;
-Then he pointed to the left and said, &#8220;That&#8217;s the
-Duke of Buccleuigh&#8217;s house.&#8221; And then as he saw
-the Victoria Tower he shouted, &#8220;Oh, that&#8217;s Big Ben,
-I know it. And oh, I say,&#8221; he went on, &#8220;just look
-at the Abbey!&#8221; &#8220;Now,&#8221; he said, with genuine
-bonhomie as the taxi drew up with a jerk, &#8220;are
-those statues symbolic?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; I said, &#8220;they are real people.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>At this he was immensely pleased, and said that
-he had always said so.</p>
-
-<p>The taxi-man looked in again and asked with
-genuine pathos where we really wanted to go to.</p>
-
-<p>But just as I was about to answer him two powerful
-men in billycock hats took my friend quietly but
-firmly out of the cab, linked their arms in his, and
-begged me to follow them. I paid the taxi and
-did so.</p>
-
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">[89]</a></span>The strange man did not resist. He smiled rather
-foolishly. They hailed a four-wheeler, and we all
-got in together. We drove about half a mile to the
-south of Westminster Bridge, stopped at a large
-Georgian house, and there we all got out. I noticed
-that the two men treated the stranger with immense
-respect, but with considerable authority. He, poor
-fellow, waved his hand at me, and said with a faint
-smile as he went through the door, arm in arm with
-his captors:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sorry you had to pay. Came away without my
-salary ticket. Very silly.&#8221; And he disappeared.</p>
-
-<p>The other man remaining behind said to me very
-seriously, &#8220;I hope his Lordship didn&#8217;t trouble you,
-sir?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I said that on the contrary he had behaved like
-an English gentleman, all except the clothes.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well,&#8221; said the keeper, &#8220;he&#8217;s not properly a
-Lord as you may say; he&#8217;s an Australian gent. But
-he&#8217;s a Lord in a manner of speaking, because Parliament
-did make him one. As for the clothes&mdash;ah!
-you may well ask! But we durstn&#8217;t say anything:
-the doctor and the nurse says it soothes him since
-his money trouble. But <i>I</i> say, <i>make</i> &#8217;em act sensible
-and they will be sensible.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He then watched to see whether I would give
-him money for no particular reason, and as I made
-no gestures to that effect I went away, and thus
-avoided what politicians call &#8220;studied insolence.&#8221;</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">[90]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">A Reconstruction of the Past<img src="images/i_graphic2.jpg" alt="" width="165" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">&#8220;IT has been said with some justice that we know
-more about the Victorian Period in England
-than we do of any one of the intervening nine centuries,
-even of those which lie closest to our own
-time, and even of such events as have taken place
-upon our own soil in the Malay Peninsula. I will
-attempt to put before you very briefly, as a sort of
-introduction to the series of lectures which I am
-to deliver, a picture of what one glimpse of life in
-London towards the end of the Nineteenth Century
-must have resembled.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It is a sound rule in history to accept none but
-positive evidence and to depend especially upon the
-evidence of documents. I will not debate how far
-tradition should be admitted into the reconstruction
-of the past. It <i>may</i> contain elements of truth; it
-<i>must</i> contain elements of falsehood, and on that
-account I propose neither to deny nor to admit this
-species of information, but merely to ignore it; and
-I think the student will see before I have done with
-my subject that, using only the positive information
-before us, a picture may be drawn so fully detailed
-as almost to rival our experience of contemporary
-events.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">[91]</a></span>&#8220;We will imagine ourselves,&#8221; continued the professor,
-with baleful smile of playful pedantry, &#8220;in
-Piccadilly, the fashionable promenade of the city,
-at nine o&#8217;clock in the morning, the hour when the
-greatest energies of this imperial people were
-apparent in their outdoor life; for, as we know
-from the famous passage which we owe to the pen of
-the pseudo-Kingsley, the English people, as befitted
-their position, were the earliest risers of their time.
-We will further imagine (to give verisimilitude to
-the scene) the presence of a north-east wind, in
-which these hardy Northerners took exceptional
-delight, and to which the anonymous author above
-alluded to has preserved a famous hymn.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Piccadilly is thronged with the three classes
-into which we know the population to have been
-divided&mdash;the upper class, the middle, and the lower,
-to use the very simple analytical terms which were
-most common in that lucid and strenuous period.
-The lower class are to be seen hurrying eastward in
-their cloth caps and &#8216;fustian,&#8217; a textile fabric the
-exact nature of which is under dispute, but which
-we can guess, from the relics of contemporary evidence
-in France, to have been of a vivid blue, highly
-glazed, and worn as a sort of sleeved tunic reaching
-to the knees. The headgear these myriads are
-wearing is uniform: it is a brown skull cap with a
-leather peak projecting over the eyes, the conjectural
-&#8216;cricket cap,&#8217; of which several examples are
-preserved. It has been argued by more than one<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">[92]</a></span>
-authority that the article in question was not a
-headgear. It appears in none of the statuary of the
-period. No mention of it is made in any of the vast
-compilations of legal matter which have come down
-to us, and attempts have been made to explain in an
-allegorical sense the very definite allusions to it with
-which English letters of that time abound. I am
-content to accept the documentary evidence in the
-plain meaning of the words used, and to portray to
-you these &#8216;toiling millions&#8217; (to use the phrase of
-the great classic poet) hurrying eastward upon this
-delightful morning in March of the year 1899.
-Each is carrying the implement of his trade (possession
-in which was secured to him by law). The one
-holds a pickaxe, another balances upon his head a
-ladder, a third is rolling before him a large square
-box or &#8216;trunk&#8217;&mdash;a word of Oriental origin&mdash;upon a
-&#8216;trolley&#8217; or small two-wheeled vehicle dedicated to
-some one of the five combinations of letters which
-had a connection not hitherto established with the
-system of roads and railways in the country. Yet
-another drags after him a small dynamo mounted on
-wheels, such as may be seen in the frieze illustrating
-the Paris Exhibition of ten years before.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Interspersed with this crowd may be seen the
-soldiery, clad entirely in bright red. But these, by
-a custom which has already the force of law, are
-compelled to occupy the middle of the thoroughfare.
-They are of the same class as the labouring men
-round them, and like these carry the implements of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[93]</a></span>
-their trade, with which we must imagine them from
-time to time threatening the passers-by. All, I say,
-are hurrying eastward to their respective avocations
-in the working part of this great hive.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Appearing as rarer units we perceive members
-of the second or <i>middle</i> class proceeding at a more
-leisurely and dignified pace towards their professional
-or commercial pursuits, the haunts of which
-lie less to the eastward and more in the centre of
-the city. These are dressed entirely in black, and
-wear upon their heads the round hat to which one
-of my colleagues erroneously gave the title of a
-religious emblem, a position from which, I am glad
-to see, he has recently receded. Nothing is more
-striking in the scene than the absolute uniformity of
-this costume. In the right hand is carried, according
-to the ritual of a secret society to which the
-greater part of this class belong, a staff or tube.
-The left hand grasps a roll of printed paper which
-we may premise without too much phantasy to be
-the original news-sheet from which the innumerable
-forgeries and copies of the succeeding dark ages
-proceeded. We are, of course, ignorant of its name,
-but we may accept it as the prototype of that vast
-mass of printed matter which purports to be contemporary
-in date, but which recent scholarship has
-definitely proved to be of far later origin. Beyond
-these, but in numbers certainly few, the exact
-extent of which I shall discuss in a moment, are
-the <i>upper</i> classes, or Gentry. How many they may<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">[94]</a></span>
-be in such a crowd, I repeat, we cannot tell.
-We know that to the whole population they stood
-somewhat as one to 10,000. The proportion in
-London may have been slightly higher, for we
-have definite documentary information that in certain
-provincial centres &#8216;not a gentleman&#8217; could be
-discovered, though for what reason these centres
-were less favoured we are not told. In a street
-full of some thousands we shall certainly not be
-exaggerating if we put the number of the Gentry
-present at certainly a couple of individuals, and
-we may put as our highest limits half a dozen.
-How are they dressed? In a most varied manner.
-Some in grey, some in pink (these are off to hunt
-the fox in the fields of Croydon or upon the heath
-of Hampstead, or possibly&mdash;to follow the conjecture
-of the Professor of Geology in his fascinating book
-on the Thames Valley&mdash;to Barking Level). Others
-are in black silk with a large oval orifice exposing
-the chest. Others again will be in white flannel,
-and others in a species of toga known as &#8216;shorts.&#8217;
-These are students from the university, or their
-professors, and they will be distinguished by a square
-cap upon the head which, unlike so many other
-conjectural forms of headgear, we can definitely
-pronounce to have had a religious character. A
-tassel sometimes of gold hangs from the centre of
-this square. With the exception of this headgear
-the Gentry discover upon their heads as uniform
-a type of covering as their inferiors of the middle<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">[95]</a></span>
-class, who salute them as they pass by lifting the
-round hat with the right hand. This headgear is
-tubular and probably of some light metal, polished
-to a highly reflecting surface, and invariably (as we
-know by the fascinating diaries recently collected
-by the University Press) polished in the same direction
-upon some sort of lathe.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;If we are lucky we may see at this hour one
-member of a class restricted even among the few
-gentlemen of that period, the Peers. Should we
-see such an one he will be walking in a red plush
-robe. It is probable that he will carry upon his
-head the same species of hat as the others of his
-rank, but I admit that it is open to debate whether
-this hat were not surrounded by a circle of metal
-spikes, each surmounted with a small ball. Such a
-person will be walking at an even more leisurely
-pace than the few other members of the Gentry
-who may be present, and upon the accoutrements
-of his person will be discovered a small shield, varying
-in size from a couple of inches to as many feet,
-stamped with a representation of animals and often
-ornamented by a device in the English or in the
-Latin tongue. These devices, many of which have
-come down to us engraved upon metal, are of the
-utmost value to the historian. They have enabled
-him to reconstruct the exact appearance of animals
-now long extinct, and it is even possible in some
-cases to ascertain the particular families to which
-they belonged. No class of object, however, has<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">[96]</a></span>
-suffered more from frequent forgeries than these
-emblems. Luckily there is an almost invariable test
-for recognising such forgeries, which consists in
-the use of the French language misspelt. Of some
-thousands of such signs many hundreds affect a
-legend in the French tongue, and of these hardly
-one is correctly spelt. Moreover, essential words
-are often omitted, and in general the forgeries
-betray that imperfect acquaintance with the contemporary
-language of Paris which was one of the
-marks of social inferiority at that time. When I
-add that the total number of Peers at any given
-moment was less than seven hundred out of forty
-million people, while the number of these shields
-which have been discovered already amounts to over
-five hundred thousand, it will be apparent that the
-proportion of genuine emblems must be very small.
-Now and then a house will bear the picture of some
-such shield painted and hung out upon a board
-before it. This sometimes, but not universally, indicates
-the nobility of the tenant. In the matter
-of religion....&#8221; At this point the professor looked
-narrowly at his notes, held one sheet of them in
-various positions, put it up to the light, shook his
-head, and next, observing the hour, said that he
-would deal with this important subject upon the
-following Wednesday or Thursday, according to sale
-of tickets during the intervening days. With these
-words, after a fit of coughing, he withdrew.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">[97]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Reasonable Press<img src="images/i_graphic3.jpg" alt="" width="225" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">The Opposition Paper: Leader</span></p>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IT is difficult to repress a feeling of natural indignation
-when one considers the policy which the
-Government and Mr. Robespierre have seen fit to
-pursue during the last two years, and especially since
-the unfortunate blunder of Mr. Danton and Mr.
-Desmoulins. We have never hidden our opinion that
-these two gentlemen&mdash;able and disinterested men as
-they undoubtedly were&mdash;acted rashly in stepping out
-of the party (as it were) and attempting to form an
-independent organisation at a moment when the
-strictest discipline was necessary in the face of the
-enormous and servile majority commanded by the
-Government. However unrepresentative that majority
-may be of the national temper at this moment, the
-business of a member of the Convention lies chiefly
-on the floor of the House, and it is the height of unwisdom
-to divide our forces even by an act of too
-generous an enthusiasm for the cause. We would
-not write a word that might give offence to the surviving
-relatives of the two statesmen we have named,
-but this much <i>must</i> be said: the genius of the nation
-is opposed to particular action of this sort; the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">[98]</a></span>
-electors understand Government and Opposition, by
-separate action like Mr. Danton&#8217;s and Mr. Desmoulin&#8217;s
-they are simply bewildered. Such eccentric
-displays do no good, and may do very great harm.
-Meanwhile, we must repeat that the general attitude
-of the Government is indefensible. That is a strong
-word, but hardly too strong under the circumstances.
-It is not the executions themselves which have (as
-we maintain) alienated public sentiment, nor their
-number&mdash;though it must be admitted that 1200 in
-four months is a high record&mdash;it is rather the pressure
-of business in the Courts and the disorganisation
-of procedure which the Plain Man in the Street
-notices and very rightly condemns, and we would
-warn Mr. Robespierre that unless a larger number of
-judges are created under his new Bill the popular
-discontent may grow to an extent he little imagines,
-and show itself vigorously at the polls. We are all
-agreed that Mr. Carnot shows admirable tact and
-energy at the War Office, and it is characteristic of
-that strong man that he has left to others the more
-showy trappings of power. We would urge upon him
-as one who is, in a sense, above party politics, to
-counsel his colleagues in the Government in the
-direction we have suggested. It may seem a small
-point, but it is one of practical importance, and the
-Man in the Street cares more for practical details
-than he does for political theories.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">[99]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">The Government Paper: Leader</span></p>
-
-<p>The present moment is opportune for reviewing
-the work of the Government to date, and drawing up
-a political balance-sheet as it were of its successes
-and failures. We have always been open critics of
-the present Administration, whenever we thought
-that national interests demanded such criticism, and
-our readers will remember that we heartily condemned
-the ill-fated proposal to change the place of
-public executions from the Place de la Revolution to
-the Square de l&#8217;Egalit&mdash;a far less convenient spot;
-but apart from a few tactical errors of this sort it
-must be admitted, and is admitted even by his
-enemies, that Mr. Robespierre has handled a very
-difficult situation with admirable patience and with a
-tremendous grasp of detail. It is sometimes said of
-Mr. Robespierre that he owes his great position
-mainly to his mastery over words. To our thinking
-that judgment is as superficial as it is unjust. True,
-Mr. Robespierre is a great orator, even (which is
-higher praise) a great <i>Parliamentary</i> orator, but it is
-not this one of his many talents which is chiefly responsible
-for his success. It is rather his minute
-acquaintance with the whole of his subject which
-impresses the House. No assembly in the world is
-a better judge of character than the Convention, and
-its appreciation of Mr. Robespierre&#8217;s character is that
-it is above all a practical one. His conduct of the
-war&mdash;for in a sense the head of the Government and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">[100]</a></span>
-Leader of the House may be said to conduct any and
-every national enterprise&mdash;has been remarkable.
-The unhappy struggle is now rapidly drawing to a close
-and we shall soon emerge into a settlement to which
-may be peculiarly applied the phrase &#8220;Peace with
-Honour.&#8221; The restraint and kindliness of our
-soldiers has won universal praise, even from the
-enemy, and it is a gratifying feature in the situation
-that those of our fellow-citizens in Toulon, Lyons,
-and elsewhere who could not see eye to eye with us
-in our foreign and domestic policy are now reconciled
-to both. One last word upon the Judges Bill. We
-implore Mr. Robespierre to stand firm and not to
-increase the present number, which is ample for the
-work of the Courts even under the somewhat exceptional
-strain of the last four years. After all it is no
-more fatigue to condemn sixty people to death than
-one. The delay in forensic procedure is (or rather
-was) due to its intolerable intricacy, and the reforms
-introduced by Mr. Robespierre himself, notably the
-suppression of so-called &#8220;witnesses&#8221; and of the old-fashioned
-rigmarole of &#8220;defence,&#8221; has done wonders
-in the way of expedition. We too often forget that
-Mr. Robespierre is not only a consummate orator and
-a past master of prose, but a great lawyer as well.
-We should be the last to hint that the demand for
-more judges was due to place-hunting: vices of that
-kind are happily absent in France whatever may be
-the case in other countries. The real danger is
-rather that if the new posts were created jealousy<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">[101]</a></span>
-and a suspicion of jobbery might arise <i>after</i> they
-were filled. Surely it is better to leave things as
-they are.</p>
-
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">The Opposition Paper: Lobby Notes</span></p>
-
-<p>Really the Government Press seems determined to
-misrepresent last Friday&#8217;s incident! Mr. Talma has
-already explained that his allusion to cripples was
-purely metaphorical and in no way intended for
-Mr. Couthon, for whom, like everyone in the House,
-he has the highest respect.</p>
-
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">The Government Paper: Lobby Notes</span></p>
-
-<p>Last Friday&#8217;s incident is happily over. Mr. Talma
-has assured Mr. Couthon that he used the word
-&#8220;cripple&#8221; in a sense quite different from that in
-which that highly-deservedly popular gentleman
-unfortunately took it.</p>
-
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Social and Personal</span></p>
-
-<p>The Marquis de Misenscene is leaving Paris tonight
-for Baden Baden. His Lordship intends to
-travel in the simplest fashion and hopes his incognito
-may be preserved.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Couthon, the deservedly popular M.P., made a
-pathetic sight yesterday at Mr. Robespierre&#8217;s party
-in the Tuileries Gardens. As most people know, the
-honourable gentleman has lost the use of his lower<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">[102]</a></span>
-limbs and is wheeled about in a bath-chair, but he
-can still gesticulate freely and his bright smile
-charms all who meet him.</p>
-
-<p>Madame Talma was At Home yesterday on behalf
-of the Society for the Aid and Rescue of Criminal
-Orphans. Whatever our political differences we all
-can unite in this excellent work, and the great rooms
-of Talma House were crowded. At Madame Talma&#8217;s
-dinner before the reception were present Major
-Bonaparte, Mr. Barrere, Mr. St. Just, Mrs. Danton
-(widow of statesman), Mrs. Desmoulins (mother of
-the late well known author-journalist), and Miss
-Charlotte Robespierre, who looked charming in old
-black silk with a high bodice and jet trimmings.</p>
-
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Letters to the Papers</span></p>
-
-<p>Sir,&mdash;I hope you will find space in your columns
-for a protest against the disgraceful condition of the
-public prisons. I have not a word to say, sir, against
-the presence of the prisoners in such large numbers
-at this exceptional moment; moreover, as nearly all
-their cases are <i>sub judice</i> it would be highly improper
-in me to comment upon them. I refer, sir, only to
-the intolerable noise proceeding from the cells and
-rendering life a burden to all ratepayers in the
-vicinity. Prisoners are notoriously degenerate and
-often hysterical, and the nuisance created by their
-lamentations and protests is really past bearing. I
-can assure the Government that if they do not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">[103]</a></span>
-provide gags, <i>and use them</i>, they shall certainly not
-have my vote at the next election.&mdash;I am, &amp;c.,</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Disgusted</span>.</p>
-
-
-<p>Sir,&mdash;<i>May</i> I trespass upon your space to make
-known to our <i>many</i> friends that the memorial service
-for my late husband, the Archbishop of Paris, is
-postponed till the 1st Decadi in Fructidor?&mdash;With
-many thanks in advance for your courtesy, I am, &amp;c.,</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Aspasia Gorel</span>.</p>
-
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Official News</span></p>
-
-<p>We are requested by the Home Office to give
-publicity to the arrangements for to-morrow&#8217;s executions.
-These will be found on page 3. There will
-be no executions on the day after to-morrow.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">[104]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">Asmodeus<img src="images/i_graphic5.jpg" alt="" width="400" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">&#8220;CAN you not show me,&#8221; said the Student, as
-they flew swiftly through the upper air over
-Madrid, he clinging tightly to the Devil&#8217;s skirts,
-&#8220;can you not show me other sights equally entertaining
-before we finish our journey?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Readily,&#8221; replied Asmodeus, &#8220;for I have the
-power of showing you every heart and thought in
-Madrid, and of unroofing every house if it be my
-pleasure, and I am determined to repay you in
-whatever way you choose for the service you have
-done me. First, then, cast your eyes down at the
-very well-dressed gentleman whom you see in that
-open taxi-cab, enjoying as he whirls along the warm
-air of a night in the season. He is a wealthy man
-in charge of one of the great departments of State;
-nay, I can tell you which one, for the mines in Peru
-are his special department.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Doubtless,&#8221; said the Student, &#8220;he is at this
-moment considering some weighty matter in connection
-with his duties.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; said the Devil; &#8220;you must guess again.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, then, since you have shown me so many
-diverting weaknesses in men I must believe that he
-is plotting for the advancement of some favourite.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">[105]</a></span>&#8220;Yet again you are wrong,&#8221; said the Devil. &#8220;His
-whole mind is occupied in watching the sums
-marked by the taximeter, which he constantly consults
-by the aid of a match; only last Wednesday,
-the Feast of St. Theresa, he was overcharged a
-matter of a quarter of a real by one of these
-machines, and he is determined this shall not
-happen again. You perceive the great house which
-he is now passing. It is lit up at every window,
-and the sounds of music are proceeding from it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I not only see it,&#8221; said the Student, &#8220;but have
-seen this sort of sight so often during the season in
-Madrid that I am certain you will not find anything
-here to surprise me.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; said the Devil, &#8220;I was perhaps wrong in attempting
-to amuse you by so commonplace a spectacle
-as that of a moneylender entertaining very nearly
-all those in Madrid with whom he has had no dealings,
-and even some of those who are in his power;
-that is, if, on account of their nobility or from some
-other cause, it is worth his while to have them seen
-in his rooms. But what I would particularly point
-out to you is, not this kind of feast which (as you
-say) you have seen a thousand times, but the old
-man who is mumbling strange prayers over a dish of
-food in that common servants&#8217; room which you may
-perceive to lie half above the ground and half beneath
-it next to the kitchen. He is the father of
-the wealthy gentleman who is entertaining the
-guests upstairs.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">[106]</a></span>&#8220;It is evident,&#8221; said the Student, &#8220;that he has
-no liking for High Life.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; said Asmodeus, &#8220;and in this eccentricity
-he is supported with true filial sympathy by his
-son.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I perceive,&#8221; said the Student, &#8220;a man tossing
-uneasily in his sleep, and from time to time crying
-out as one does to a horse when it is restive, or
-rather as men cry to horses which they can hardly
-control.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I am well acquainted with him,&#8221; said the Devil.
-&#8220;He is one of my most earnest clients, but in
-nothing does he divert me more than in these nightmares
-of his wherein he cries &#8216;Whoa there! Steady,
-old girl!&#8217; And again, &#8216;Now then! Now then!&#8217;
-not omitting from time to time, &#8216;You damned
-brute!&#8217; and a cuff upon his pillow.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;To what, my dear Asmodeus, do we owe this
-diversion?&#8221; asked the Student wonderingly. &#8220;He
-seems to be a wealthy man, if we may judge by the
-house in which we see him and the furniture of
-the room in which he so painfully sleeps. And
-surely there is nothing upon his mind?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You are wrong,&#8221; said the Devil; &#8220;there is
-upon his mind a most weighty matter, for he considers
-it a necessity in his position to ride every
-morning along the soft road especially prepared for
-that exercise upon the banks of the Manzanares,
-where he may meet the wealth and fashion of
-Madrid occupied in the same pastime. But unfortunately<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">[107]</a></span>
-for him he is wholly devoid of the art
-of equitation and stands in as much terror of his
-mount as does a lady of her dressmaker. For one
-hour, therefore, of every day, he suffers such tortures
-that I greatly fear we shall not be able to add
-to them appreciably in my dominions when the
-proper time arrives. But let us leave these wealthy
-people, whose foibles are, after all, much the same,
-and turn to the poorer quarters which lie south of
-the King&#8217;s Royal Palace.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>In a few moments they had reached these and
-were examining a mean house not far from the
-Church of St. Alphonso, in a bare upper room of
-which a woman with a starved and anxious expression
-was writing, late as was the hour, at top speed.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Poor woman!&#8221; said the Student. &#8220;I perceive
-that she is one of those unhappy people whom
-grinding poverty compels to produce ephemeral
-literature which is afterwards printed and sold at
-one real for the divertisement of the populace of
-Madrid. I know of no trade more pitiful, and I can
-assure you the sight of her industry moves me to the
-bottom of my heart.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The sight is indeed pitiful,&#8221; said the Devil, &#8220;to
-those at least who permit themselves the luxury of
-pity&mdash;a habit which I confess I have long ago
-abandoned. For you must know that in the company
-of Belphegor, Ashtaroth, and the rest even
-the softest-hearted of devils will grow callous. But
-more interesting to you perhaps than the sad necessities<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">[108]</a></span>
-of her trade is the matter which she is at
-present engaged upon.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What is that?&#8221; said the Student.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why,&#8221; said Asmodeus, &#8220;she is writing &#8216;Nellie&#8217;s
-Notes&#8217; for a paper called <i>The Spanish Noblewoman</i>,
-and she is at this very moment setting down her
-opinion that there is no better way to pass a rainy
-afternoon than taking out and cleaning one&#8217;s Indian
-Bracelets, Ropes of Pearls, Diamonds, and other
-gems. She is good enough to add that she herself
-thinks it wise and a good discipline to clean her own
-jewellery and not leave it to a maid.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;In the room below you will see a young man
-whom I very much regret to say is in a state of
-complete intoxication.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I do not know,&#8221; said the Student, &#8220;why you
-should regret such a sight, for I had imagined that
-all human frailty was a matter of pleasure to your
-highnesses.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes,&#8221; replied Asmodeus, &#8220;in the general it is
-so, but you must know that this particular vice is so
-inimical to the province which I control that I regard
-it with peculiar detestation, and I am not upon
-so much as speaking terms with Shamarel, who has
-been deputed by the Council to look after those
-who exceed in wine.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Is not that the same,&#8221; asked the Student,
-&#8220;whom they say twice appeared to a hermit at
-Carinena?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You are right,&#8221; said Asmodeus, betraying a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">[109]</a></span>
-slight annoyance, &#8220;but pray do not put it about
-that a personage of such importance was at the
-pains of appearing to a common hermit. The fact
-is, he was at that moment visiting the Campo
-Romano to assure himself that the vines were in
-good condition, and it was by the merest accident
-that the hermit caught sight of him during this
-journey, for you must know that he makes it a
-punctilio never to appear in person to one under
-the rank of Archbishop, and even then he prefers
-that the recipient of the favour should be a Cardinal
-into the bargain, and if possible a Grandee of
-Spain.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You have told me so much about your amiable
-colleague,&#8221; said the Student, &#8220;that you have forgotten
-to tell me whether any moral divertisement
-attached to the poor young fellow whom we see in
-that offensive stupor.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; said the Devil, &#8220;now I come to think of it,
-there is perhaps nothing remarkable in his condition,
-unless you think it worthy of notice that he
-is a medical student and will shortly be entrusted
-with the nerves and veins of the poor in the public
-hospitals of Madrid. It is to be hoped that he will
-soon put behind him these youthful follies, for if he
-persists in them they will make his hand tremble,
-and in that case he will never be permitted to
-practise the art of surgery upon the persons of the
-wealthy and more remunerative classes.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Outside the house,&#8221; said the Student, &#8220;I see a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">[110]</a></span>
-policeman walking with some solemnity, and I confess
-that the sight is pleasing to me, for it gives me
-a feeling that the good people of Madrid are well
-looked after when so expensive an instrument of
-the law is spared for so poor a quarter.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You are right,&#8221; said Asmodeus, &#8220;and were I
-now to show you the inner heart of the Duke of
-Medina y Bar who controls the police forces of
-Madrid, you would find that his chief anxiety in the
-distribution of his men came from the dilemma
-in which he perpetually finds himself, whether to
-furnish them rather in large numbers to the
-wealthier quarters for the defence of which policemen
-exist, or for the poorer quarters, the terrorising
-of which is necessarily their function.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;At any rate,&#8221; said the Student, &#8220;he need not
-bother himself about the houses of that large
-number of people (and I am one) from whom there
-is nothing to steal and who yet have never learnt
-any of the arts of theft. In a word, he is spared
-the trouble either of protecting or of keeping down
-what are called the middle classes.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;True,&#8221; said Asmodeus, &#8220;but most unfortunately
-this kind of person does not herd together in special
-districts. If they did so it would be a great relief
-to the strain upon the Police Department; but they
-are scattered more or less evenly throughout the
-wealthier and the poorer quarters.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Can you tell me,&#8221; asked the Student, &#8220;whether
-it is worth our while to watch the policeman for a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">[111]</a></span>
-few moments in the exercise of his duties and
-whether he would provide us with any entertainment
-as we watched him unseen?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Alas!&#8221; answered the Devil sadly, &#8220;I have no
-power to forecast the future; but from my knowledge
-of the past I can tell you that during the ten
-years since he has joined the force this officer has
-not once arrested a rich man in error on a dark
-night, nor perjured himself before a Magistrate so
-openly as to be detected, nor done any of those
-things which legitimately amuse us in people of
-his kind.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But do you not think,&#8221; said the Student, &#8220;that
-we might by remaining here see him help an old
-woman across the road amid the plaudits of the
-governing classes, or take a little child that is lost
-by the hand and lead it to its mother&#8217;s home?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Doubtless,&#8221; said the Devil, yawning, &#8220;we
-should find him up to tricks of that sort were we
-willing to wait here, floating in the air, for another
-ten or dozen hours, when the streets will be full of
-people. But the play-acting to which you so feelingly
-allude is but rarely indulged in by these
-gallant men when onlookers are wanting. Come,
-the sky is already pale in the direction of the
-eastern mountains; it will soon be day, and I desire
-before you are completely tired out to show you
-one more sight.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>With these words Asmodeus took the Student by
-the hand and darted with inconceivable rapidity<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">[112]</a></span>
-over the roofs of the city until he came to a particular
-spot which he had evidently marked in his
-flight.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Cast your eyes,&#8221; he said, &#8220;upon this narrow but
-busy thoroughfare beneath us. It is the only street
-in Madrid which at so late an hour is still full of
-people and of business. It is called Fleet Street.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I have heard of it,&#8221; said the Student.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No doubt,&#8221; said the Devil; &#8220;but what I particularly
-desire to point out to you is a man whom
-you will see in his shirt-sleeves, seated upon a
-swivel-chair and writing away for dear life, matter
-which will appear to-morrow in the <i>Morning Post</i>.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well,&#8221; said the Student, &#8220;what of that?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Can you guess what he is writing?&#8221; asked
-Asmodeus.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That I am quite unable to do,&#8221; said the
-Student.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It is,&#8221; said the Devil, &#8220;a series of satirical remarks
-upon the frailties and follies of others&mdash;and
-yet he is a journalist!&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">[113]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Death of the Comic Author<img src="images/i_graphic2.jpg" alt="" width="165" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">A COMIC Author of deserved repute was lodging
-at the beginning of this month in a house
-with broken windows, in a court off the Gray&#8217;s Inn
-Road.</p>
-
-<p>He had undertaken to produce a piece of Humorous
-Fiction to the length of 75,000 words.</p>
-
-<p>The Comic Author, a man of experience (for this
-was his forty-seventh book), had sat down to begin
-his task. He calculated how long it would last him.
-He was good for 1500 words a day, if they were
-short words, and even when doom or accident compelled
-him to the use of long ones he could manage
-from 1163 to 1247.</p>
-
-<p>The specification was lucid and simple. There
-was to be nothing in the work that could offend the
-tenderness of the patriot nor the ease of good manners,
-let alone the canons of decency and right living. A
-powerful love interest which he was compelled under
-Clause VII of his contract to introduce immediately
-after each of the wittiest passages had been deftly
-woven into the fabric, and (as was clearly laid down
-in Clause IX) no matter already published might
-appear in those virgin pages. If any did so, be sure
-it was so veiled by the tranposition of phrases and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">[114]</a></span>
-other slight changes of manner as to escape the publisher&#8217;s
-eye.</p>
-
-<p>So far so good. But upon the 13th of August, a
-day of great beauty, but of excessive heat, the Comic
-Author, sitting at his desk, was struck by Apollo, the
-God and patron of literary men.</p>
-
-<p>It was the custom of the Comic Author, who was
-a teetotaler and a vegetarian, to wear a soft shirt
-entirely made of wool and devoid of a collar, which
-ornament, he was assured by Members of the Faculty,
-exercised a prejudicial effect upon the health. It
-was equally his custom to compose his famous periods
-with his back turned to the light. This habit he
-had also adopted at the dictation of the Faculty, who
-had proved to him beyond possibility of refutation
-that the human eye is damaged by nothing more
-than by reading or writing with one&#8217;s face towards
-the window. With his back, therefore, to the window
-in his room (it was unbroken), it was the Comic
-Artist&#8217;s wont to sit at a plain and dirty small deal
-table and express his mind upon paper, his head reposing
-upon his left hand, his fountain pen grasped
-firmly in his right, and his lips and tongue following
-the movement of his nib as it slowly crawled over
-the page before him.</p>
-
-<p>The Comic Author (again under the impulse of
-the Faculty) kept his hair cut short at the back; to
-cut it short all over was more than his profession
-would allow. You have, then, the Comic Author
-sitting at his desk with his back to the unbroken<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">[115]</a></span>
-window, his neck exposed from the shortness of hair
-and the absence of collar, under the brilliant light of
-the 13th of August.</p>
-
-<p>A fourth condition must now be considered: by
-some physical action never properly explained, glass,
-though it may act as a screen to radiant heat, will also
-store and intensify the action of sunlight. So that
-anything placed immediately beneath it upon a bright
-day will (it is notorious) suffer or enjoy an effect of
-heat far greater than that discoverable upon its outer
-side. The common greenhouse is a proof of this.
-The Comic Author was therefore in a situation to
-receive the full power of Apollo. It took the form
-of a sunstroke, and with his story uncompleted, nay,
-in the midst of an unfinished phrase, he fell helpless.</p>
-
-<p>His Landlady, summoning a neighbour to her aid
-(for the charwoman never stayed after ten o&#8217;clock,
-and it was already noon), dragged him to his room
-and sent for the parish doctor, who, after a brief
-examination of the patient, declared him to be in
-some danger; but the poor fellow was not so far
-gone as to forget his obligations, and he murmured
-a few words which, after some difficulty, they understood
-to be the address of the publisher whom he
-would not for worlds have disappointed. Imagining
-this address to be in some way connected with a
-pecuniary advantage to herself, the Landlady sent
-to it immediate word of his accident, and within
-half an hour a motor-car of surpassing brilliance and
-immense power was purring at the door. From this<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[116]</a></span>
-vehicle descended in a gentlemanly but commanding
-manner One who seemed far too great for the humble
-lodging which he entered. And the Doctor, leaving
-his patient for a moment, was pleased to receive the
-visitor in a lower room, while the Landlady, who was
-also interested in the event, listened with due
-courtesy in the passage without.</p>
-
-<p>The Publisher (for it was he) learned with increasing
-concern the desperate position of the Comic
-Author, and while he was naturally chiefly concerned
-with the financial loss the little accident might involve,
-it should be remembered to his credit that he
-made inquiries as to the state of the patient and
-even asked whether he suffered physical pain. Upon
-hearing that the Comic Author, though fuddled
-by cerebral congestion, did undoubtedly suffer the
-Visitor&#8217;s brow perceptibly darkened; he pointed out
-to the Doctor that if this accident had but happened
-ten days later it would have had consequences much
-less serious to himself.</p>
-
-<p>The Doctor was eager to point out that the fault
-was none of his. He had come the moment he had
-heard of the case, and, moreover, sunstroke was a
-disease which betrayed itself by no premonitory
-symptoms. He assured the Publisher that if the
-Comic Author&#8217;s survival could in any way be of
-service to the firm he would do everything in his
-power to save his life.</p>
-
-<p>The Publisher replied, a little testily, that the
-value of the Comic Author&#8217;s survival would entirely<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">[117]</a></span>
-depend upon the talent remaining to him after his
-recovery, and pointed out what the Doctor had overlooked,
-that a sensational death, if it received due
-recognition from the Press, often caused the works
-of the deceased to sell for a week or more with
-exceptional rapidity.</p>
-
-<p>He next asked whether the Comic Author had not
-left manuscripts, and the Landlady was pleased to
-bring him not only all that lay upon the deal table,
-but much more beside, and all his private correspondence
-as well, which she found where she had
-often perused it, in various receptacles of her lodger&#8217;s
-room.</p>
-
-<p>The Publisher upon receiving these seemed to feel
-his position less acutely, and sending the sheets out
-at once to his secretary in the car (with instructions
-that those stories or sketches hitherto unpublished
-should be carefully noted) he resumed his conversation
-with the medical man. He was first careful to
-ask how long cases of this sort when they proved
-fatal commonly endured, and expressed some relief
-at hearing that certain benignant exceptions had
-lingered for several days. He was further assured
-that lucid intervals might be counted on, and in
-general he discovered that the lines upon which the
-story had been intended to proceed might be recovered
-from the lips of the dying man before he
-should exchange the warm and active existence of
-this world for the Unknown Beyond.</p>
-
-<p>He re-entered his motor-car, therefore, with a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">[118]</a></span>
-much lighter heart, promising to send an Expert
-Stenographer who should take down the last and
-necessary instructions from the lips of Genius. The
-motor-car then left that court off the Gray&#8217;s Inn
-Road where the tragedy was in progress, and swept
-westward to the larger atmosphere of St. James&#8217;s.</p>
-
-<p>At this point again, when the activity and decision
-of one master brain seemed to have saved all, Fate
-intervened. The Expert Stenographer, having lacked
-regular employment for nearly eighteen weeks, was
-so overjoyed at learning the news and the price attached
-to his immediate services, that he could not
-resist cheerful refreshment and conversation with
-friends in celebration of the occasion. He reached
-the Gray&#8217;s Inn Road, therefore, somewhat late in the
-day; he was further delayed by a difficulty in discovering
-the house with broken windows which had
-been indicated to him, and when he entered it was
-to receive the unwelcome news that the Comic
-Author was dead.</p>
-
-<p>The Doctor, whose duties had already for some
-hours called him to other scenes where it was his
-blessed mission to alleviate human suffering, was not
-present to confirm the sad event, and the Expert
-Stenographer, who could not believe that he had
-been baulked of so unexpected a piece of fortune,
-insisted upon proof which the Landlady was unable
-to afford. He even sat for some few moments by
-the side of the Poor Lifeless Clay in the vain hope
-that some further indication as to the general trend<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">[119]</a></span>
-of the book might fall from the now nescient lips.
-But they were dumb.</p>
-
-<p>How many consequent misfortunes depended upon
-this untoward accident the reader may easily guess.
-The Landlady, to whom the Comic Author had owed
-thirty shillings for a month&#8217;s rent and service, was in
-a very natural anxiety for some days, an anxiety which
-was increased by the discovery that her former lodger
-had no friends, while his few relatives seemed each
-to have, in their own small way, claims against him
-of a pecuniary nature.</p>
-
-<p>His dress clothes, upon which she had confidently
-counted, turned out to belong to a costumier of the
-neighbourhood, who loudly complained that he had
-had no notice of this intempestive demise, and was
-at least a sovereign out of pocket by so awkward a
-conjunction; nor was he appreciably relieved when
-it was pointed out to him that the suit would at least
-carry no contagious disease.</p>
-
-<p>The Stenographer, as I have already indicated, lost
-the remuneration dependent upon his Expert Services,
-and was further at the charge of the refreshment
-which he had foolishly consumed in anticipation
-of that gain.</p>
-
-<p>The Doctor, indeed, was not disappointed, for he
-had expected nothing, but by far the worst case was
-that of the generous and wealthy man who had been
-at all the risk of advertising, partly printing, and
-already ordering the binding of the work which he
-now found himself at a loss to produce.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">[120]</a></span>There is no moral to this simple story: it is one
-of the many tragedies which daily occur in this great
-city, and from what I know of the Comic Author&#8217;s
-character, he would have been the last to have inflicted
-so much discomfort had it in any way depended
-upon his own volition; but these things are beyond
-human ordinance.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">[121]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On certain Manners and Customs<img src="images/i_graphic2.jpg" alt="" width="165" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">I &nbsp; WAS greatly interested in the method of government
-which I discovered to obtain in the Empire
-of Monomotapa during my last visit there. I say
-&#8220;during my last visit&#8221; because although, as everyone
-knows, I have repeatedly travelled in the more
-distant provinces of that State, I had never spent
-any time to speak of in the capital until I delayed
-there last month for the purpose of visiting a friend
-of mine who is one of the State Assessors. He was
-good enough to explain to me many details of their
-Constitution which I had not yet grasped, and I conceive
-it&mdash;now that I have a full comprehension of it&mdash;to
-be as wise a method of governing as it is a
-successful one.</p>
-
-<p>I must first put before the reader the elements of
-the matter. Every citizen in Monomotapa takes a
-certain fixed rank in the State; for the inhabitants
-of that genial clime have at once too much common
-sense and too strict a training to talk nonsense
-about equality or any other similar metaphysical
-whimsey. Every man, therefore, can precisely tell
-where he stands in relation to his fellows, and all
-those heart-burnings and jealousies which are the
-bane of other States are by this simple method at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">[122]</a></span>
-once exorcised. Moreover, the method by which
-a man&#8217;s exact place is determined is simplicity itself,
-for it reposes upon his yearly revenue; and there is
-a gradually ascending scale from the poorest, whose
-revenue may not amount from all sources to more
-than 40 Tepas a month, to the Supreme Council, the
-wealthier members of which may have as much as
-10,000,000 Tepas a month, or even more. There is
-but one drawback to this admirably practical and
-straightforward way of ordering the State, which is
-that by a very ancient article of their religion the
-Monomotapians are each forbidden to disclose to
-others what the state of their fortunes may be. It
-is the height of impertinence in any man, even a
-brother, to put questions upon the matter; all documents
-illuminating it are kept strictly secret, and
-though religious vows and binding oaths are very
-much disliked among this people, yet one is rigidly
-observed, which is that forbidding the divulgence by
-a bank of the sums of money entrusted to it by its
-clients. Certain rash spirits have indeed proposed
-to destroy the anomaly and either to make some
-other standard arrange the order of society (which
-is unthinkable) or else to allow questions of money
-to be freely debated, and the incomes of all to be
-matter of public comment.</p>
-
-<p>Now, like many excellent and rational attempts
-at religious or social reform, these propositions must
-wholly fail in practice. As for setting up some
-other standard than that of wealth by which to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">[123]</a></span>
-decide the importance of one&#8217;s fellow citizens, the
-Monomotapians very properly regard such a proposal
-as fantastic to the point of buffoonery. Nor,
-to do them justice, do those who propose the scheme
-seriously intend this part of it. They rather put it
-forward to emphasise the second half of their programme,
-which has much more to be said for it.
-But here a difficulty arises of a sort that often upsets
-the calculations of idealists, namely, that however
-much you change the laws you can with more difficulty
-change the customs of the people, and though
-you might compel all banking accounts to be audited,
-or even insist upon every man making a public return
-of his income, yet it is certain that the general
-opinion upon this matter would result, in practice,
-in much the same state of affairs as they now have.
-Men would devise some other system than that of
-banks; their returns would be false, and there would
-be a sort of general unconscious conspiracy among all
-to support fraud in this matter.</p>
-
-<p>My host next explained to me the manner in
-which laws are made among the Monomotapians
-and the manner in which they are administered. It
-seems that by a fundamental rule of their Constitution
-no law may be passed in less than twenty-five
-years, unless it can be proved to have its origin in
-terror.</p>
-
-<p>If indeed those who are the wealthiest and therefore
-the most important in the State can prove to
-the satisfaction of all that they have gone blind<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">[124]</a></span>
-with panic, then indeed the passage of a law is permitted
-even in a few hours. Thus, when a certain
-number of young gentlemen had so far forgotten
-their good breeding as to torture by way of sport
-considerable numbers of the poorer classes, one of
-these in his turn, oblivious to the rules of polite
-behaviour, so far forgot himself as to strike his
-young master in the face. It was under these circumstances,
-when the greater part of the governing
-classes had fled abroad, or were closely locked in
-behind their doors, that the &#8220;Tortures Restrictions
-Bill&#8221; was passed; but this haste was even then
-regarded as somewhat indecent, and it would have
-been thought more honourable to have discussed
-the matter for at least two days. Nominally, however,
-affairs of real importance cannot be legislated
-upon, as I have said, in less than twenty-five years.
-It is customary for the Monomotapians first to wait
-until some neighbouring State has attempted a particular
-reform. When that reform has been working
-for some years, if it be successful in its working, the
-wealthier Monomotapians begin to talk about it
-according to set rules. And it is again a fundamental
-point in their Constitution that one-half of
-those who so debate must be for, the other half
-against the proposed change. The discussion is
-carried on by some seventy or eighty men, of whom
-two-thirds at least must possess a fortune of at least
-1000 Tepas a month, but it is customary to mix
-among them one or two men of exceptional poverty,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">[125]</a></span>
-as this is imagined in some way or other to please
-the Gods. The middle class, on account of their intolerable
-habit of referring to learned books and to
-the results of their travel, are very properly excluded.
-These, then, debate for a term of years, and
-when they are weary of it they will very often begin
-to debate again. Meanwhile the institution or the
-reform upon which their discussion has turned will
-have taken root in those foreign countries which it
-is their pride to copy, and they can at last be certain
-that in following suit Monomotapa will have
-nothing to lose. When all this is decided a certain
-number of men are set apart, the poorer of whom
-are given a sum of money and the wealthier certain
-titles on condition that they vote in favour of the
-change; while another body of men are set apart
-and rewarded in a precisely similar manner for
-giving a pledge of the opposite sort. But great
-care is taken that the first body shall be slightly
-larger than the second, for by an unexplained
-decision of their priests the force of a law depends
-upon the margin between the two bodies so
-chosen. These electors once named are put into
-an exceedingly narrow passage in which it would
-be difficult for any very stout person to move at
-all. At the end of the passage doors still narrower
-open upon the street, the door upon the left being
-used to record affirmative, that upon the right negative
-votes. The whole mass, which consists of near
-a thousand men, is then kindly but firmly pushed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">[126]</a></span>
-by Assistants of the King (as they are called) until
-its last member has been squeezed through one of
-the two doors. This process is immensely popular
-among the Monomotapians, who will gather in
-crowds to cheer the wretched men whom avarice or
-ambition has devoted to so pleasant a task. And
-when they have come out, covered with sweat and
-perhaps permanently affected in their hearts by the
-ordeal, they are very often granted civic honours
-by their fellow-townsmen over and above the sums
-of money or titles which they have already received.
-With such frenzied delight do the Monomotapians
-regard this singular practice that even women have
-lately petitioned to be permitted to join in the
-scrimmage. This they will undoubtedly be granted
-in cases where they can prove a certain wealth, for,
-indeed, there is no reason why an exercise of this
-sort should be confined to one sex. But it is understood
-that a certain part of the women of Monomotapia,
-many of them also wealthy, are willing to
-pay money to prevent such a result, and if this
-indeed be the case a very curious situation, almost
-unknown in the annals of Monomotapia, will arise;
-for since all government is in the hands of the rich,
-it is necessary that the rich should act together in
-serious affairs of State. And what on earth will
-happen when one section of the wealthy, whether
-men or women, are opposed to the actions of
-another section, it would indeed be difficult to determine.
-Nor are the older men and the more<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">[127]</a></span>
-experienced without grave misgivings as to the issue
-of such an unprecedented conflict.</p>
-
-<p>I cannot conclude without telling you briefly the
-manner in which their Kings are elected, for it
-reflects in every detail at once the originality and
-the wisdom of this people.</p>
-
-<p>There are in Monomotapa some three or four
-hundred public halls in which is conducted the
-national sport, which consists in competitions between
-well-known talkers as to who can talk the
-longest without exhaustion, and it rapidly becomes
-known, through well-developed agencies of information
-as well as by public repute, which individuals
-have attained to the greatest proficiency in this regard.
-Sometimes in the remotest province will arise
-a particular star, but more often it is in the Metropolis
-or its neighbourhood that your really great
-talkers can be found; a man in the tradition of that
-great King of the last century who upon one occasion
-talked the clock round and was in reward for
-that feat permitted to hold the Kingship for three
-terms in succession.</p>
-
-<p>When by a process of elimination the two strongest
-talkers have been discovered, they are brought
-to the capital, set up upon a stage before a vast
-audience of Assessors (of which my friend, as I have
-told you, was one), and begin talking one against
-the other with great rapidity, starting at a signal
-made by an official who is paid for this duty a very
-high salary indeed. It may well be imagined that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">[128]</a></span>
-the interest in the struggle grows keen after the
-first few hours have passed. The panting breath,
-the discoloured cheeks, the drooping attitude of
-either competitor, call forth cheers of encouragement
-from his supporters and even murmurs of
-sympathy from his numerous judges. At last, it
-may be in the sixth or the seventh hour, one of the
-two goes groggy&mdash;if I may so express myself&mdash;he
-falters in his words, perhaps repeats himself, passes
-his hand to his forehead or takes a drink of gin
-(which, from its resemblance to water, is greatly
-favoured in these contests). Such signals of distress
-are the beginning of the end. His successful rival,
-straining himself to one last effort, will pour out a
-great string of sentences of an approved pattern,
-dealing as a rule with the glories and virtues of
-those who have listened to him, of their ancestry,
-and their hold upon the Monomotapian State, and as
-the defeated competitor falls lifeless to the floor
-this successful fellow is crowned amid the applause
-of the vast assembly. I was at the pains to ask
-whether it was necessary that these long harangues
-should make sense, for it seemed to me that this
-added labour would very materially handicap many
-men who might otherwise possess all the physical
-requirements of victory, and I was free to add that
-it would seem to me, at least, as a foreigner, very
-foolish to weigh down some fine athlete worthy of
-the Crown by demanding of him the rare characteristics
-of the pedant. I was relieved to hear that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">[129]</a></span>
-there was no obligation as to the choice of words
-used or the order in which they were to be pronounced,
-saving that they must be words in the
-vulgar tongue. But it seems, oddly enough, that
-the trainers in this sport after generations of experience
-have discovered that the competitors actually
-suffer less fatigue if they will repeat certain set and
-ritual phrases than if they take refuge in mere
-gibberish, just as men marching in step are said to
-suffer less fatigue than men marching at ease. So
-at least I was assured, but my insufficient acquaintance
-with the Monomotapian tongue forbade me to
-make certain upon the matter.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">[130]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Statesman<img src="images/i_graphic4.jpg" alt="" width="300" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="right">&#8220;<span class="smcap">Htel de Ferras, Paris</span>, <i>August 1, 1846</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">&#8220;MY dear Father,&mdash;I got in here last night, after
-a very painful and tiresome journey, at eleven
-o&#8217;clock. At least it was eleven o&#8217;clock by Calais
-time, but they are so careless in this country about
-their clocks that it would be very difficult to say
-what the right time really was were I not able to
-consult the excellent chronometer which you and
-Mamma were so kind as to give me after my success
-in the Schools at Oxford this summer. I confess to
-the childishness of having rung the chimes in it five
-or six times during the night to while away the
-tedium of the journey in the Diligence from Beauvais.
-Beauvais contains a really remarkable cathedral,
-but it is unfinished. I notice, indeed, that
-many of the buildings undertaken by the French
-remain in an incomplete condition. The Louvre,
-for instance (which is so near this hotel, and the
-roofs of which I can see from my window), would be
-a really fine building if it were completed, but this
-has never been done, and the total effect is very
-distressing. I fancy it is the numerous wars, in
-which the unhappy people have been engaged at
-the caprice of their rulers, which have led to such<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">[131]</a></span>
-deplorable inconsequence. You have often warned
-me not to judge rashly upon a first impression, but
-I confess the people seem to me terribly poverty-stricken,
-especially in the country districts, where
-the children may often be seen hobbling about in
-rough <i>wooden</i> shoes, without stockings to their feet.
-I say no more. I hope, dear Papa, that when
-Parliament meets I shall be returned from Italy,
-and that I shall be able to follow your action in the
-House of Commons. You know how ardently I
-attend to the great struggle for Free Trade, to the
-attainment of which, as of every form of Righteousness,
-you have ever trained my early endeavours.</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-<span class="gapright">&#8220;I am, your affectionate son,</span><br />
-
-&#8220;<span class="smcap">Jo. Bilsted</span>.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p class="right">&#8220;<span class="smcap">Htel de Ferras</span>, <i>January 15, 1853</i>.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My dear Julia,&mdash;I write you a hurried note to
-tell you that I have left behind me, at Number
-Eleven, my <i>second beaver hat</i>. It is in the hatbox in
-the white cupboard on the landing outside the
-nursery door. Do not send anything else with it,
-as you were imprudent enough to do last time I
-asked you to despatch luggage; the Customs are
-very particular, and it is important for me just now,
-amid all these political troubles, not to have what
-the French call &#8216;histoires.&#8217; I have really nothing
-to tell you more as to the condition of affairs, nor
-anything to add to the brief remarks in my last
-letter. Were I not connected by business ties with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">[132]</a></span>
-the Continent nothing should tempt me to this kind
-of journey again. The train service is ridiculously
-slow, and there is a feeling of distress and ill-ease
-wherever one goes. It is truly amazing to me that
-any people, however stunted by centuries of oppression,
-should tolerate the form of government which
-has been recently set up by brute force in this unhappy
-country! Meanwhile, though everyone discusses
-politics, nothing is <i>done</i>, and the practical
-things of life are wholly neglected. The streets
-still remain the narrow, ill-lit thoroughfares which
-would be a disgrace to a small English provincial
-town, and the Army, so far as any civilian can
-judge, is worthless. The men slouch about with
-their hands in their pockets; the Cavalry sit their
-horses very badly; and even the escort of the
-&#8216;Emperor&#8217; would look supremely ridiculous in any
-other surroundings. I have little doubt that if
-horse racing were more thoroughly developed the
-Equine Race would improve. As it is, the horses
-here are deplorable. I hope to persuade M. Behrens,
-who is one of the few sensible and clear-sighted men
-I have met during this visit, to accept our proposals,
-and I will write you further on the matter.</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="gapright">&#8220;Your affectionate husband,</span><br />
-
-&#8220;<span class="smcap">Jo. Bilsted</span>.</p>
-
-
-<p>&#8220;P.S.&mdash;I somewhat regret that you have accepted
-the invitation to the Children&#8217;s Party. However,
-I never interfere with you in these matters. I must,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">[133]</a></span>
-however, positively forbid your taking little Charles,
-who, though he is eldest, suffers, I fear, from a weak
-heart, inherited from your dear mother. I hope to
-return this day fortnight.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p class="right">&#8220;<span class="smcap">Htel de Ferras</span>, <i>July 15, 1870</i>.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My dear Julia,&mdash;It was a matter of great regret
-to me that you should have been compelled to leave
-Paris a few days before myself; but I shall follow to-morrow,
-and hope to be at Number Eleven by
-Thursday at the latest. You will then have learned
-the terrible truth that war has been finally declared.
-Nothing could have more deeply <i>im</i>pressed and
-<i>op</i>pressed me at the same time. The overwhelming
-military power which in better hands and under a
-proper guidance might have been turned to such
-noble uses is to be hurled against the insecure combination
-of German States which have recently been
-struggling, perfectly rightly in my opinion, to become
-One Great Nation; for I make no doubt that
-the lesser States will throw in their lot with Prussia:
-a menace to one is a menace to all. I write from
-the bottom of my heart (my dear Julia), when I say
-that I am convinced that after the first triumphs of
-this Man of Blood our own Government will speak
-with no uncertain voice, and will defend the new
-German people against the aggressor. It was sufficiently
-intolerable that his Italian policy should
-have been framed before our eyes, without intervention,
-and that the unity of that ancient land should<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">[134]</a></span>
-be deferred through his insolence. I have not borne
-to visit Rome since the hateful presence of a foreign
-garrison was established there. I will even go so
-far (perhaps against your own better judgment) as
-to raise the matter in Parliament, but I greatly fear
-that the House will not be sitting when the most
-drastic action is needed. However, I repeat what I
-have said; I am confident in the ultimate Righteousness
-of our intervention. I am therefore confident
-that we shall not allow the further expansion
-of this Military Policy.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;As I write the garish, over-lit faades of this
-luxurious Babylon, its broad, straight streets, with
-their monotonous vulgar splendour, and the swarms
-of the military all round, fill me with foreboding.
-It would be a terrible thing if this very negation of
-True Civilisation and Religion were to triumph, and
-I am certain that unless we speak boldly we ourselves
-shall be the next victim. But we <i>shall</i> speak
-boldly.... My faith is firm.</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="gapright">&#8220;Your affectionate husband,</span><br />
-
-&#8220;<span class="smcap">Jo. Bilsted</span>.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;P.S.&mdash;I am glad that Charles has got through his
-examination successfully. I hope he clearly understands
-that I have no intention of letting him be
-returned for Pensbury until a year has elapsed.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p class="right">&#8220;<span class="smcap">Htel de Ferras</span>, <i>April 1, 1886</i>.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My dear Charles,&mdash;It was a filial thought in you
-to send a letter which would reach me upon my<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">[135]</a></span>
-sixtieth birthday, and believe me that, speaking as
-your father, I am not insensible to it.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I wish you could come and see your mother and
-me if only for a few hours, but I know that your
-Parliamentary duties are heavier than ever; indeed,
-life in the House of Commons is not what it used to
-be! In my time it was often called &#8216;the best club
-in Europe.&#8217; Alas, no one can say that now! Meanwhile
-your mother and I are very happy pottering
-about our old haunts in Paris; but you have no idea,
-my dear Charles, how changed it all is! You can,
-of course, remember the Second Empire as a child,
-but to your mother and me, who were so intimate with
-Paris during its most brilliant period, there is something
-tragic in the sight of this great capital since
-the awful chastisement of fifteen years ago. We
-ought not, of course, to judge foreign nations too
-harshly, but after no inconsiderable experience of
-Parliamentary life I cannot but have the most
-gloomy forebodings as to the future of this nation.
-There seems no settled policy of any kind. Yesterday
-I attended a debate in the Chamber, but the
-various speakers articulated so rapidly that I was
-not able to follow them with any precision. It is
-surely an error to pour out torrents of words in this
-fashion, and I cannot believe there is any mature
-thought behind it at all. I regret to say that the
-practice of duelling, though denounced by all the
-best thought in the country, is still rife, and nowhere
-do occasions for its exercise arise more frequently<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">[136]</a></span>
-than in the undisciplined political life of this capital.
-One must not, however, look only on the dark side;
-there are certainly some very fine new buildings
-springing up, especially in the American quarter
-towards the Arc de Triomphe. Of course your
-mother and I keep to the old Htel de Ferras. We
-are at an age now when one does not easily change
-one&#8217;s habits, but it seems to me positively dingy
-compared with some of these new great palaces.
-It is a comfort, however, to deal with people who
-know what an English banknote is, and who will
-take an English cheque, and who can address one
-properly on the outside of an envelope. It amused
-your dear mother to see how quickly they seized the
-new honour which her Majesty has so graciously
-conferred upon me.</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="gapright">&#8220;Your affectionate father,</span><br />
-
-&#8220;<span class="smcap">Jo. Bilsted</span>.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p class="right">&#8220;<span class="smcap">Htel de Ferras</span>, <i>October 19, 1906</i>.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My dear Charles,&mdash;I cannot tell you how warmly
-I agree with your last letter upon the state of
-Europe. I am an old man, I have seen many men
-and things, and I have been particularly familiar with
-foreign policy ever since I first entered the House
-of Commons, now nearly fifty years ago, but rarely
-have I known a moment more critical than the present.
-My one comfort lies in the fact that in spite
-of the divisions of Party, the heart of the nation
-is still sound, and the leaven of common sense in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">[137]</a></span>
-the electors will save us yet. I feel a shade of
-regret sometimes to think that the division no
-longer retains its old name; I should like to feel
-that, father and son, we had held it for three generations,
-but though the name has changed, the spirit
-of the place is the same.... I beg you to mark my
-words; I may say without boasting that I have rarely
-been wrong in my judgment of foreign affairs. When
-one sees things here one sometimes trembles for the
-future.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;This Hotel is not at all what it was. It is ill-kept
-and damp, and I shall not return to it.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Expect me in London before the end of the
-week.</p>
-
-<p class="right">&#8220;<span class="smcap">Penshurst.</span>&#8221;</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>[Lord Penshurst died shortly after his return to
-London. He was succeeded by his son Charles,
-second Baron, but the Division is still represented
-by a member of the family in the person of Mr.
-George Bilstead, his second son, the husband of
-Mrs. Bilstead, and author of <i>The Coming Struggle in
-the Balkans</i>.]</p></blockquote>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">[138]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Duel<img src="images/i_graphic6.jpg" alt="" width="475" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IN the year 1895 of blessed memory there was
-living in the town of Paris at the expense of his
-parents a young English gentleman of the name of
-Bilbury; at least, if that were not his name his
-name was so nearly that that it doesn&#8217;t matter. He
-spoke French very well, and had for his age (which
-was twenty-four) a very good working acquaintance
-with French customs. He was popular among the
-students with whom he associated, and it was his
-especial desire not to seem too much of a foreigner
-on the various occasions when French life contrasts
-somewhat with that of this island. It was something
-of a little mania of his, for though he was
-patriotic to a degree when English history or English
-habits were challenged, yet it made him intolerably
-nervous to feel exceptional or eccentric in the town
-where he lived. It was upon this account that he
-fought a duel.</p>
-
-<p>There happened to be resident in the town of
-Paris at the same time another gentleman, whose
-name was Newman; he also was young, he also was
-English, but whereas Mr. Bilbury was by genius
-a painter, Mr. Newman was by vocation an engineer.
-And while Mr. Bilbury would spend hours in the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">[139]</a></span>
-studio of a master whom (in common with the other
-students) he despised, Mr. Newman was continually
-occupied in playing billiards with his fellow students
-of engineering in the University. And while Mr.
-Bilbury was spending quite twelve hours a day in
-finding out how to make a picture look like a thing
-if you stood a long way off from it (which is the end
-and object of his school in Paris), Mr. Newman had
-already acquired the art of making a billiard ball
-come right back again towards the cue after it had
-struck its neighbour. Mr. Bilbury had learned how
-to sing in chorus with the other students songs relating
-in no way to pictorial excellence; Mr. Newman
-had learned to sing those songs peculiar to
-students of engineering, but relating in no way to
-applied physics. In a word, these two young gentlemen
-had never met.</p>
-
-<p>But one day Mr. Bilbury, going arm-in-arm with
-three friends towards the river, met upon the pavement
-of the Rue Bonaparte Mr. Newman in much
-the same posture, but accompanied by a rather
-larger bodyguard. It would have been astonishing
-to anyone little acquainted with the temper of students
-in the University, and indeed it <i>was</i> astonishing
-both to Mr. Newman and to Mr. Bilbury, though
-they had now for some months been acquainted
-with the inhabitants of that strange corner of the
-universe, to see how this trifling incident provoked
-an altercation which in its turn degenerated into a
-vulgar quarrel. Each party refused to give way to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">[140]</a></span>
-the other, and the members of each began comparing
-the members of the other to animals of every
-kind such as the pig, the cow, and even certain
-denizens of the deep. In the midst of the hubbub
-Mr. Bilbury, not to be outdone in the racy vigour of
-youth, shouted at Mr. Newman (who for all he
-knew might have been a Russian revolutionary or
-a man from St. Cyr) an epithet which he had
-come across in the contemporary literature of the
-capital, and which he imagined to be of common
-exchange among the merry souls of the University.
-To his surprise&mdash;nay, to his alarm&mdash;a dead silence followed
-the use of this very humble and ordinary word.
-Mr. Newman, to whom it was addressed, was not indeed
-ignorant of its meaning (for it meant nothing in
-particular and was offensive), but was astonished
-at the gravity of those round him when the little
-epithet had been uttered. With a sense of surprise
-now far exceeding that of Mr. Bilbury he saw his
-companions draw themselves up stiffly, take off their
-eccentric felt hats with large sweeping gestures,
-and march him off as stiff as pokers, leaving the
-Bilbury group solemn with the solemnity of men
-who have a duty to perform.</p>
-
-<p>That duty was very quickly accomplished. The
-eldest and most responsible of the three friends told
-Bilbury very gently but very firmly that there could
-be no issue but one to the scene which had just
-passed.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I am not blaming you, my dear John,&#8221; he said<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">[141]</a></span>
-kindly (Mr. Bilbury&#8217;s name was John), &#8220;but you
-know there can be only one issue.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Mr. Newman&#8217;s friends, after maintaining
-their strict and haughty parade almost the whole
-length of the Rue Bonaparte, broke silence together,
-and said: &#8220;It is shameful, and you will not tolerate
-it!&#8221; To which Mr. Newman replied by an assurance
-that he would in no way fall beneath the dignity of
-the situation.</p>
-
-<p>More than this neither Mr. Bilbury nor Mr. Newman
-knew, but they both went to bed that night
-much later than either intended, and each felt in
-himself a something of what Ruth felt when she
-stood among the alien corn, or words to that effect.</p>
-
-<p>And next morning each of them woke with the
-knowledge that he had some terrible business on
-hand with some ass of a foreigner who had got
-excited, or, to be more accurate, had suddenly stopped
-being excited for wholly incomprehensible reasons
-at a particular moment in a lively conversation. Both
-Mr. Newman and Mr. Bilbury were, I say, in this
-mood when there entered to Mr. Newman in his
-room in the Rue des Ecoles (which he could ill afford)
-two of his friends of the night before, who said to
-him very simply and rapidly that it would be better
-for them to act as his seconds as the others had
-chosen them as most fitted. To this Mr. Newman
-murmured his adhesion, and was about to ask
-anxiously whether he would soon see them again,
-when, with a solemnity quite out of keeping with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">[142]</a></span>
-their usual good-fellowship, they bowed in a ritual
-manner and disappeared.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile a similar scene was taking place in
-the little fourth-floor room which Mr. Bilbury occupied,
-and Mr. Bilbury, somewhat better acquainted
-with the customs of the University, dismissed his
-two friends with a little speech and awaited developments.</p>
-
-<p>Before lunch the thing was arranged, and Mr. Newman,
-who was waiting in a rather hopeless way for
-his friends&#8217; return, was informed at about twelve
-o&#8217;clock that all was settled; it was to be at the end
-of the week, up in Meudon, in a field which belonged
-to one of his friends&#8217; uncles. &#8220;We are less likely
-to be disturbed there,&#8221; said the friend, &#8220;and we
-can carry the affair to a satisfactory finish.&#8221; Then
-he added: &#8220;It has a high wall all round it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But,&#8221; said the other second, interrupting him,
-&#8220;since we have chosen pistols that will not be much
-good, for the report will be heard.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; said the first second in a nonchalant manner,
-&#8220;my uncle keeps a shooting gallery and the neighbours
-will think it a very ordinary sound. You had,&#8221;
-he explained courteously to Mr. Newman, &#8220;the
-choice of weapons as the insulted party, and we
-chose pistols of course.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Of course,&#8221; said Mr. Newman, who was not
-going to give himself away upon details of this kind.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The other man&#8217;s seconds,&#8221; went on Mr. Newman&#8217;s
-friend genially, &#8220;wanted swords, but we told<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">[143]</a></span>
-them that you couldn&#8217;t fence; besides which, with
-amateurs nothing ever happens with swords. And
-then,&#8221; he continued, musing, &#8220;if the other man is
-really good you&#8217;re done for, whereas with pistols
-there is always a chance.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>To Mr. Bilbury, equally waiting for the luncheon
-hour in some gloominess of soul, the same tale was
-told, <i>mutatis mutandis</i>, as they say in what is left of
-the classical school of the University. His adversary
-had chosen pistols. &#8220;And you know,&#8221; said one of
-his seconds to Bilbury sympathetically, &#8220;he had the
-right of choice; technically he was the insulted
-party. Besides which, pistols are always better if
-people don&#8217;t know each other.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The other second agreed, and was firmly of the
-opinion that swords were only for intimate friends
-or politicians. They also mentioned the field at
-Meudon, but with this difference that it became in
-their mouths the ancient feudal property of one of
-their set, and they were careful to point out that
-the neighbours were all Royalists, devotedly attached
-to the family, and the safest and most silent witnesses
-in the world.</p>
-
-<p>For the remaining days Mr. Bilbury and Mr.
-Newman were conducted by their separate groups
-of friends, the first to a shooting gallery near Vincennes,
-the second to a shooting gallery near St.
-Denis. Their experiments were thus conducted
-many miles apart: and it was just as well. It was
-remarkable what an affluence of students came as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">[144]</a></span>
-the days proceeded to see the exercise in martial
-sport of Mr. Newman. At first from fifty to sixty
-of the students with one or two of the pure mathematicians
-and three or four chemists comprised the
-audience, but before the week was over one might
-say that nearly all the Applied Physics and Positive
-Sciences of the University were crowding round
-Vincennes and urging Mr. Newman to accurate and
-yet more accurate efforts at the target. At St. Denis
-the number of artists increased in a similar proportion,
-and to these, before the week was ended,
-were added great crowds of poets, rhetoricians, and
-even mere symbolists, who wore purple ties and
-wigs. These also urged Mr. Bilbury to add to his
-proficiency; and sometimes that principal himself
-would shudder to see a long-haired and apparently
-inept person with a greenish face pick up a pistol
-with dreadful carelessness and put out the flame of
-a candle at a prodigious distance with unerring aim.</p>
-
-<p>When the great day arrived two processions of
-such magnitude as gave proof of the latent wealth
-of the Republic crawled up the hill to Meudon. The
-occasion was far too solemn for a trot, and two men
-at least of those present thought several times uncomfortably
-about funerals. I must add in connection
-with funerals that a large coffin was placed upon
-trestles in a very conspicuous part of the field, into
-which each party entered by opposite wooden gates
-which, with the high square wall all round, quite
-shut out the surrounding neighbourhood. The two<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">[145]</a></span>
-groups of friends (each over a hundred in number),
-all dressed in black and most of them in top-hats,
-retired to opposite corners of the field, nor was there
-any sign of levity in either body in spite of their
-youth; the four seconds, who were in frock-coats and
-full of an unnatural importance, deposited upon the
-ground between them a very valuable leather case
-which, when it was opened, discovered two perfectly
-new pistols of a length of barrel inordinate even for
-the use of Arabs, let alone for civilised men. These
-two were loaded in private and handed to either
-combatant, and Mr. Bilbury and Mr. Newman, having
-been directed each to hold the pistol pointed to the
-ground, were set apart by either wall while the
-seconds proceeded to pace the terrain. Mr. Newman
-remembered the cricket pitches of his dear home
-which perhaps he would never see again; Mr. Bilbury
-could think of nothing but a tune which ran in his
-head and caused him grave discomfort.</p>
-
-<p>When the ceremony of the pacing was over the
-two unfortunate gentlemen were put facing each
-other, but twisted, with the right side of the one
-turning to the corresponding side of the other, so as to
-afford the smallest target for the deadly missiles; and
-then one of the seconds who held the handkerchief
-retired to some little distance to give the signal.</p>
-
-<p>It was at this juncture, as Mr. Newman and Mr.
-Bilbury stood with their pistols elevated towards
-heaven, and waiting for the handkerchief to drop,
-each concentrated with a violent concentration upon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">[146]</a></span>
-the emotions of the moment, that a prodigious noise
-of hammering and shouting was heard at one of the
-doors of the enclosure, and that three gentlemen&mdash;the
-one wearing a large three-coloured sash, the like
-of which neither Mr. Bilbury nor Mr. Newman had
-ever seen&mdash;entered, and ordered the whole party to
-desist in the name of the law. So summoned, the
-audience with the utmost precipitation climbed over
-the wall, forced itself through the gates, and in every
-manner at its disposal vanished. And the gentleman
-with the tri-coloured sash, sitting down in the calmest
-manner upon one of the trestles and turning the
-coffin over by way of making a table, declared himself
-a public officer, and took notes of all that had
-occurred. It was interesting to see the businesslike
-way in which the seconds gave evidence, and the
-courtesy with which the two principals were treated
-as distinguished foreigners by the gentleman with
-the three-coloured sash. He was young, like all the
-rest, amazingly young for a public official of such
-importance, but collected and evidently most efficient.
-When he had done taking his notes he stood
-up in a half-military fashion, ranged Mr. Newman
-and Mr. Bilbury before him, and very rapidly read
-out a series of legal sentences, at the conclusion of
-which was a fine of one hundred francs apiece, and no
-more said about the matter. Mr. Bilbury and Mr.
-Newman were astonished that attempted homicide
-should cost so little in this singular country. They
-were still more astonished to discover that etiquette<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">[147]</a></span>
-demanded a genial reconciliation of the two combatants
-under such circumstances, and they were
-positively amazed to find after that reconciliation
-that they were compatriots.</p>
-
-<p>It was their seconds who insisted upon standing
-the dinner that evening. The whole incident was
-very happily over save for one passing qualm which
-Mr. Bilbury felt (and Mr. Newman also) when he saw
-the gentleman, whom he had last met as the tri-coloured
-official of the Republic, passing through the
-restaurant singing at the top of his voice and waving
-his hand genially to the group as he went out upon
-the boulevard.</p>
-
-<p>But they remembered that in democracies the
-office is distinguished from the man. Luckily for
-democracies.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">[148]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On a Battle, or &#8220;Journalism,&#8221; or
-&#8220;Points of View&#8221;<img src="images/i_graphic2.jpg" alt="" width="165" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>&#8220;<i>The art of historical writing is rendered the less facile
-in expression from I know not what personal differences
-which the most honest will admit into their record of events,
-and the most observant wilt permit to colour the picture
-proceeding from their pens.</i>&#8221; (Extract from the Judicious
-Essay of a Gentleman in Holy Orders, author of <i>A
-History of Religious Differences</i>.)</p></blockquote>
-
-
-<h3>I</h3>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">From His Royal Highness the Commander-in-Chief
-to the Minister of War of his Brother the
-Emperor of Patagonia.</span></p></blockquote>
-
-<p>(Begins)</p>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">I &nbsp; HAVE the honour to report: Upon the morning
-of Sunday, the 31st, the enemy attacked the
-left of my position in great force, a little before
-dawn. I withdrew the XIth, XIIIth, and IInd
-Brigades, which were here somewhat advanced,
-covering their retirement with detachments from
-the First, the Thirty-seventh, and the Forty-second
-of the Line. The retirement was executed in good
-order and with small loss, the total extent of which
-I cannot yet determine, but of which by far the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">[149]</a></span>
-greater part consists of men but slightly wounded.
-Several pieces which had been irretrievably
-damaged were destroyed and abandoned. Upon
-reaching a position I had determined in my general
-plan before leaving the capital (see annexed sketch
-map A) the forces entrenched, defending a line
-which the enemy did not care to attack. I have
-reinforced the Brigade with two groups drawn from
-the Corps Artillery, and have despatched all aids,
-medicaments, etc., required.</p>
-
-<p>A simultaneous attack delivered upon the centre
-of my position was repulsed, the enemy flying in
-the utmost disorder, and leaving behind them two
-pieces of artillery and a colour, which last I have
-sent under the care of Major the Duke of Tierra
-del Fuego to be deposited among the glorious
-trophies that adorn the Military Temple.</p>
-
-<p>By noon the action showed no further development.
-In the early afternoon I determined to
-advance my right, largely reinforced from the
-centre, which was now completely secure from
-attack. The movement was wholly successful, and
-the result coincided exactly with my prearranged
-plans. The enemy abandoned all this upper portion
-of the right bank of the Tusco in the utmost confusion;
-his main body is therefore now in full retreat,
-and there is little doubt that over and above
-the decisive and probably final character of this
-success I shall be able to report in my next the
-capture of many prisoners, pieces, and stores. I<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">[150]</a></span>
-congratulate His Majesty upon the conspicuous
-courage displayed in every rank, and recommend
-for distinguished service the 1847 names appended.
-His Majesty&#8217;s Government may take it that this
-action virtually ends the war. (Ends.)</p>
-
-
-<h3>II</h3>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">From Field-Marshal the Most Illustrious the
-Lord Duke of Rapello to the Minister of War
-of the Republic of Utopia.</span></p></blockquote>
-
-<p>(Begins) Upon the morning of Sunday, the 31st,
-in accordance with the plan which I had drawn up
-before leaving the capital, I advanced my right a
-little before dawn against the left of the Imperial
-position, which was very strongly posted upon the
-edge of a precipitous cliff, one flank reposing upon
-an impassable gulf and the other on a deep and
-torrential river. The enemy resisted with the utmost
-stubbornness, but was eventually driven from his
-positions, though these were strongly entrenched
-after more than a week&#8217;s work with the spade. He
-abandoned the whole of his artillery. A great
-number of prisoners have fallen into my hands, and
-the loss of the enemy in killed alone must amount
-to many thousands. Particulars will follow later,
-but I am justified in saying that the left wing of the
-enemy is totally destroyed. Meanwhile, General
-Mitza, most ably carrying out my instructions, contained<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">[151]</a></span>
-the enemy upon the centre without loss, save
-for one pom-pom and a Maxim, which were shattered
-by a chance shell early in the action. The 145th
-also report the loss by burning of a waggon containing
-their Colours, eighteen cans of tinned beef,
-and the Missionaries&#8217; travelling library. Somewhat
-later in the day the enemy attempted to retrieve a
-hopeless position by advancing his right in great
-force. I had been informed of the movement (which
-was somewhat clumsily executed) in ample time, and
-withdrew the petty outposts I had thrown out for
-observation in his neighbourhood. There is little
-doubt that the enemy will now attempt to withdraw
-his main force along the line of the Tusco Valley,
-but a glance at the map will show that this retreat
-is closed to him by my occupation of the line X Y
-(see annexed sketch map), and he is now virtually
-contained.</p>
-
-<p>I congratulate the Government of the Republic
-upon the signal and decisive victory our troops have
-driven home, and I may confidently assure them that
-it is tantamount to the successful ending of the
-present campaign. Appended is a list of officers
-recommended for distinguished service, which I have
-made as brief as possible, and which I particularly
-beg after so glorious a day may not be curtailed by
-political intrigues, of which I have already been
-compelled to complain. (Ends.)</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[152]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h3>III</h3>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Extract from a Leading Article in one of the
-most Reputable Newspapers of the Capital of
-Patagonia upon Monday the 1st.</span></p></blockquote>
-
-
-
-<p>&#8220;We have always maintained in these columns
-that His Imperial Majesty&#8217;s Government was amply
-justified in undertaking the short, and now happily
-successful, campaign in which it was proposed to
-chastise the so-called &#8216;Republic&#8217; of Utopia, whose
-chronic state of anarchy is a menace to the peace and
-prosperity of civilisation. It is a pleasure to be able
-to announce this morning what was already a foregone
-conclusion in the minds of all educated men.
-The enemy&#8217;s forces&mdash;if we may dignify them by that
-name&mdash;have been overwhelmed at the first contact,
-and it is now only a question of whether they will
-be utterly disorganised during retreat or will prefer
-to capitulate while some semblance of discipline
-remains to them. We must, however, implore public
-opinion to preserve at this juncture the calm, sane
-courage which is among the best traditions of our
-race, and we reiterate the absolute necessity of
-abstaining from any wild cat policy of annexation.
-It should be enough for us that the &#8216;Republic&#8217; of
-Utopia will now exist in name only, and has ceased
-for ever to be a menace to its neighbours. A
-specially gratifying feature in the news before us is
-the skill and mastery displayed by the Prince, whose<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">[153]</a></span>
-advanced years (we blush to remember it) had been
-the cause of so much secret criticism of his command.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-<h3>IV</h3>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Extract from the Leading Article of the most
-Popular Journal of the Utopian Republic, same
-date.</span></p></blockquote>
-
-<p>&#8220;Citizens, awake! All ye that kneel, arise! Ares
-(the god of battles) has breathed upon the enemy,
-and he has been destroyed! The cowardly mercenaries
-who handle the gold of Patagonia have broken
-and fled before our troops upon the very first occasion
-when their reputed valour was put to the test. The
-glorious and aged Mitza has guaranteed that the
-next news will be that of their complete submission.
-It will then be for the Government to decide whether
-our victorious lads should complete a triumphant
-march upon the Patagonian capital or whether it
-may not be preferable to wring from that corrupt
-and moribund society such an indemnity as shall
-make them for ever impotent to disturb the frontiers
-of free men.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-<h3>V</h3>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Extract from the Note of the Military Expert of
-the aforesaid weighty and reputable Journal of
-the Capital of Patagonia: A Journalist.</span></p></blockquote>
-
-
-
-<p>&#8220;It is not easy to reconstruct from the fragmentary
-telegrams that have come through from the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">[154]</a></span>
-front the tactical nature of the great and happily
-decisive victory upon the Tusco which has just ended
-the campaign. So far as one can judge, His Royal
-Highness the Commander-in-Chief lay <i>en biais</i>, reposing
-his right upon the river itself and his left
-upon the Caon of the Encantado, his centre somewhat
-advanced &#8216;in gabion,&#8217; his pivot points refused,
-and his right in double concave. Upon a theory of
-Ballistic and Shock, which all those who have read
-His Royal Highness&#8217;s daring and novel book of thirty
-years ago, entitled &#8216;Cavalry in the Field,&#8217; will remember,
-our Corps Artillery and reserve of horse
-were doubtless some miles in the rear of the firing
-line. The enemy, with an amazing ignorance of the
-elements of military knowledge, appear to have
-attacked the <i>left</i> of this position. It is an error to
-which we should hardly give credence were not the
-telegrams so clear and decisive on this point. The
-reader will immediately grasp the obvious result of
-such a piece of folly. His Royal Highness promptly
-refused <i>en potence</i>, wheeled his left centre round upon
-the Eleventh Brigade as a pivot, and supported this
-masterly move by the sudden and unexpected appearance
-of no less than thirty-six guns, the converging
-fire of which at once arrested the ill-fated
-and mad scheme of the enemy. The rest is easily
-told. Our centre retaining its position, in spite of
-the burning zeal of the men to take part in the
-general advance, the right, which had not yet come
-into action, was thrown forward with a sudden,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">[155]</a></span>
-sweeping movement, and behind its screen of Cavalry
-debouched upon the open plateau which dominates
-the left bank of the Tusco. After that all was over;
-the next news we shall have will certainly be the
-capitulation of our broken foe, unless, indeed, he
-prefer to be destroyed piecemeal in a scattered
-flight.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-<h3>VI</h3>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Extract from the Note of the Military Expert
-of the popular Journal of Utopia: Formerly
-a Sergeant in the Commissariat Department of
-the Army.</span></p></blockquote>
-
-
-
-<p>&#8220;It is not easy to reconstruct from the fragmentary
-telegrams which have come through from
-the front the tactical nature of the great and happily
-decisive victory upon the Tusco. Some points are
-obvious. In the first place, it was &#8216;a soldiers&#8217; battle.&#8217;
-Gallant old Mitz (to whom all honour is due) drew
-up the line of battle, but the hard work was done
-by Bill Smith and Tom Jones, and the rest in the
-deadly trenches above the right bank. It seems
-probable that all the heaviest work was done on our
-right, and therefore against the enemy&#8217;s left, unless,
-indeed, the private telegram received by a contemporary
-be accurate, which would make out the
-heaviest work to have been on our left against the
-enemy&#8217;s right. The present writer has an intimate
-personal knowledge of the terrain, over every part<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">[156]</a></span>
-of which he rode during the man&oelig;uvres of five years
-ago. It is sandy in places, interspersed with damp,
-clayey bits; much of it is undulating, and no small
-part of it rocky. Trees are scattered throughout
-the expanse of the now historic battlefield; their
-trunks afford excellent cover. The River Tusco, as
-our readers will have observed, is the dominating
-feature of the quadrilateral, which it cuts <i>en chelon</i>.
-The Patagonians boasted that though our army was
-acknowledgedly superior to their own, their commercial
-position would enable them to weary us out
-in the field. Yes, I don&#8217;t think!&#8221;</p>
-
-
-<h3>VII</h3>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Extract from a Lecture delivered by a Professor
-of Military History one hundred years later,
-in the University of Lima.</span></p></blockquote>
-
-
-
-
-<p>&#8220;Among the minor factors of this complicated
-situation was the permanent quarrel between Patagonia
-and Utopia, and though it has been much
-neglected by historians, and is, indeed, but a detail
-upon the flank of the great struggle of the coalition,
-a few moments must be given to the abortive operations
-in the Tusco Valley. They appear to have
-been conducted without any grasp of the main rules
-of strategy, each party advancing in a more or less
-complete ignorance of the position of the other,
-their communications parallel, their rate of advance<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">[157]</a></span>
-deplorably slow, and neither possessing the information
-nor the initiative to strike at his opponent
-during a three-weeks&#8217; march, at no point of which
-was either army so much as fifty miles from the other.
-These farcical three weeks ended in a sort of skirmish
-difficult to describe, and apparently confined
-to the extreme left of the Patagonian forces. The
-Utopians here effected some sort of confused advance,
-which was soon checked. At the other end of the
-line they retired before a partial movement of the
-enemy, effected without any apparent object, and
-certainly achieving no definite result. The total
-losses in killed and wounded were less than seven per
-cent of those engaged. The next day negotiations
-were entered into between the two generals; their
-weary discussion occupied a whole week, during
-which hostilities were suspended. The upshot of
-the whole thing was the retirement of the Patagonian
-Army under guarantees, and in consideration
-of the acceptation of the old frontier by the Utopian
-Government. Politically the campaign is beneath
-notice, as both territories were absorbed six months
-after in the recasting of the map after the Treaty of
-Lima, and the policing of them handed over to the
-now all-conquering Northern Power. Even as military
-history the operations deserve little more than
-passing notice, save, perhaps, as an example of the
-gross yet ever recurrent folly of placing numerically
-large commands in the hands of aged men. Mitza,
-upon the occasion of this fiasco, was over seventy-five<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">[158]</a></span>
-years of age and long in his dotage, while the Prince
-of the Blood who had been chosen to lead (nominally,
-at least) the Patagonian Army was, apart from
-his increasing years, a notorious drunkard, and what
-is perhaps worse from a military point of view, daily
-subject to long and complete lapses of memory.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">[159]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">A Descendant of William Shakespeare<img src="images/i_graphic1.jpg" alt="" width="100" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IT was during the early months of 1909 that I first
-became acquainted with a descendant of William
-Shakespeare the great dramatist, who happened at
-that moment to be in London.</p>
-
-<p>This gentleman (for he was of the male sex) was
-one of our American visitors, and was stopping at
-the Carlton Hotel. His name, as he assured me,
-Charlemagne K. Hopper. He resided, when he
-was at home, in the rapidly rising township of Bismarckville,
-Mo., where he added to a considerable
-private income the profits of an extensive corn
-business, dealing in wheat both white and red, and
-of both spring and autumn varieties, maize or
-Indian corn, oats, rye, buckwheat of every variety,
-seed corn, and bearded barley; indeed, no kind of
-cereal was unfamiliar to this merchant. His quick
-eye for the market and the geniality of his character
-had (he convinced me) made him friends in every
-circle. He has the entre to the most exclusive
-coteries of Albany and Buffalo, and he had that
-season been received by the patrons of literature in
-Park Lane, Clarges Street, and Belgrave Square.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hopper&#8217;s descent from the Bard of Avon has
-been established but quite recently: these lines are<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">[160]</a></span>
-perhaps the first to lay it before the public, and the
-discovery is an excellent example of the way in
-which two apparently insignificant pieces of evidence
-may, in combination, suggest an historical
-discovery of capital importance.</p>
-
-<p>It is, of course, common knowledge that Lady
-Barnard of Abington was a lineal descendant of
-William Shakespeare. She died (without issue, as
-was until recently supposed) at the end of the seventeenth
-century. But two almost simultaneous finds
-made in the early part of the present year have
-tended to modify the old-established conviction that
-this lady was the last descendant of the poet.</p>
-
-<p>The first of these finds was made by Mr. Vesey,
-of the British Museum, well known for his monograph
-on <i>The Family of Barnard of Abington</i>. It
-consisted in a small diary or notebook belonging
-to the Lady Barnard in question, in which, among
-other entries, was the record of the payment of
-twenty guineas made to a &#8220;Mrs. M.&#8221; just before
-Christmas of the year 1678. Mr. Vesey published
-this document in pamphlet form at the beginning
-of March, 1908.</p>
-
-<p>In the April number of <i>Cambridgeshire Notes and
-Queries</i> Major Pepper, of Bellevue Villa, Teversham
-(not far from the Gog Magog Hills), published, as
-a matter of curiosity, a letter which he had purchased
-in a sale of MSS., but only so published on
-the chance that it might have an interest for those
-who follow the history of the county. It was a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">[161]</a></span>
-letter from one Joan Mandrell, the governess of
-Anne Hall, praying her correspondent to send
-&#8220;twenty guineas for the payment of rent.&#8221; The
-interest of this document to the students of local
-history lay in the fact that this Anne Hall was the
-ancestress of the Pooke family. Joan Mandrell&#8217;s
-letter was addressed upon the back of the sheet,
-though the name of the addressee was no longer
-decipherable, but the letters &#8220;...bington Hall&#8221;
-were, and are, clearly legible, as also the date. The
-letter further contains a minute description of Anne
-Hall&#8217;s return to London from a foreign school and
-of the writer&#8217;s devotion to the addressee, whom she
-treats throughout as mother of the young woman
-committed to her care. This Anne Hall later
-married Henry Pooke, whose son Charles made his
-fortune in politics under Walpole&#8217;s administration,
-founding the family and estate of Understoke, which
-is so familiar to every Cambridgeshire man.</p>
-
-<p>More than one student noted the coincidence between
-these two publications appearing but a fortnight
-apart; and at the end of May a paper was
-already prepared to be read to the Genealogical
-Society showing that the lineage of the poet had
-been continued in the Pookes.</p>
-
-<p>So far the matter was of merely antiquarian interest,
-for Charles Pooke&#8217;s great grandson, General
-Sir Arthur Pooke, had died in 1823 at Understoke
-without issue. It was, however, of some importance
-to all those who care for the literary history of their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">[162]</a></span>
-country to know that the blood of the poet could
-be traced so far.</p>
-
-<p>Just before the paper was read a further discovery
-came in to add a much greater and more living
-interest to the matter.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Cohen, a charming and cultivated genealogist,
-whose business is mainly with America and the
-Colonies, had been for some months actively engaged
-for Mr. Hopper in tracing the arms of his,
-Mr. Hopper&#8217;s, maternal grandfather&mdash;a Mr. Pooke.
-When Mr. Cohen became acquainted with the facts
-mentioned above he cabled to Mr. Hopper, who sent
-by return of post copies of certain family documents
-which clearly proved that this Mr. Pooke was
-identical with a younger brother of Sir Arthur. This
-younger brother was an erratic and headstrong lad
-who had enlisted in early youth under Cornwallis,
-and had been killed, as it was believed, at Yorktown.
-He was as a fact wounded and made
-prisoner; he was not killed. He was released at
-the Peace of 1783, preferred remaining in the New
-World to facing his creditors in the Old, married
-the daughter of Peter Kymers, of Orange, N.J.,
-and soon afterwards went West. In 1840 his only
-daughter Cassiopea, who was then keeping a small
-store in Cincinnati, married the Rev. Mr. Aesop
-Hopper, a local minister of the Hicksite persuasion.
-Charlemagne K. Hopper is the only issue of that
-marriage.</p>
-
-<p>The genealogy stands thus:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">[163]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_163.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">[164]</a></span>This family tree is now so well established that a
-full publication of the lineage, with a commentary
-upon the whole romantic story, is about to appear
-in one of the reviews from the pen of &#8220;Thersites,&#8221;
-a pseudonym which, as many of our readers are
-aware, barely hides the identity of one of our best-known
-experts upon Foreign Affairs.<a name="FNanchor_1_1" id="FNanchor_1_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a></p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hopper did not remain in London beyond
-the close of the season. He had proposed to leave
-for Biskra a week or so after I made his acquaintance,
-but the change in the weather
-decided him to go no farther south than Palermo,
-whence he will return by Naples, Rome, Assisi,
-Genoa, and Boulogne, visiting on the way the
-quaint old city of Strasbourg. He will reach England
-again some time in the month of April, 1910,
-and on his return he proposes to devote some part
-of his considerable fortune to the erection of a
-suitable monument at Stratford-on-Avon in memory
-of his great ancestor. This generous gift will be
-accompanied by certain conditions, but there is
-little doubt that the town will accept the same,
-and that a fine fountain surrounded with symbolical
-figures of Justice, Prudence, and Mercy, and
-adorned with medallions of Queens Elizabeth and
-Victoria, George Washington and President Roosevelt,
-will soon adorn the quiet little Warwickshire town.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hopper also proposes to found a Shakespeare<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">[165]</a></span>
-Scholarship at Sidney-Sussex College in Cambridge,
-and another at Wadham College in Oxford, each of
-the value of 300 a year, on the model of the
-Rhodes Scholarships, such scholarships to be granted
-not merely for book work but for business capacity
-and physical development. He has also planned a
-Chair for the propagation of Shakespearean knowledge
-in Glasgow, and he will endow a Reader in
-Shakespeare to the University of Aberdeen.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hopper is himself no mean <i>littrateur</i>, though
-a characteristic modesty has hitherto restrained him
-from publishing his verse, whether rhyme, blank, or
-in sonnet form. It is possible that now he is
-acquainted with his great descent his reluctance
-may be overcome and he may think better of this
-decision. I may add that Mr. Hopper places no
-credence in the Baconian theory, and hopes by
-diligent search among his family papers to prove
-the authenticity of at least the five major tragedies
-and <i>A Midsummer Night&#8217;s Dream</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hopper is a total abstainer; he neither
-smokes nor chews; his religious views, always broad
-and tolerant, incline him strongly towards the New
-Theology, and, in common with many other men of
-exceptional intelligence, he has been profoundly
-affected by the popular translation of Dr. Haeckel&#8217;s
-<i>Riddle of the Universe</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Though delighting in social intercourse, Mr.
-Hopper has the true gentleman&#8217;s instinct against
-being lionised, and in particular stands in dread of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">[166]</a></span>
-the Duchess of Dundee. He has therefore begged
-me to insist as little as possible on his identity in
-anything I thought it my duty to record in print
-upon so interesting a matter, and I have so far
-acceded to his request as to have refrained from
-publishing these lines until he had left our shores;
-but I make little doubt that on his return in the
-spring this missing link between the two branches of
-the Anglo-Saxon kin cannot but receive the public
-recognition he deserves.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">[167]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On the Approach to Western England<img src="images/i_graphic1.jpg" alt="" width="100" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">HOW difficult it is to say what one really feels
-about the landscapes and the countrysides and
-the subtle souls of Europe! I think that all men
-who are of European blood feel those countrysides
-and the soul of them very strongly; but I think
-that they feel as I feel now, as I write, a difficulty
-of expression. There is something in it like the
-difficulty of approaching a personality. One may
-admire, or reverence, or even love, but the personality
-is different from one&#8217;s own; it has a chastity of
-its own that must be respected, it has its boundaries
-and its honour, and one always fears that one will
-transgress such boundaries if one so much as speaks
-of the new thing one has come upon and desired to
-describe.</p>
-
-<p>With distant travel it is not so. One comes far
-over seas to a quite strange land and one treats it
-brutally. One&#8217;s appreciation is a sort of conquest;
-and you will note that those who speak of the
-Colonies, or of America, or of Africa, or of Asia
-speak of them with a hard intolerance as of something
-quite alien, or with a conventional set of
-phrases, as of something not worth the real expression
-of emotion. Now it is not so with our
-ancient provinces of Europe.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">[168]</a></span>A man coming out of the Cis-Alpine Gaul into
-old Italy across the Apennines feels something; indeed
-he feels it! What it is he feels very few men
-have written down; none has said it fully. You
-get out of one thing into something other when you
-climb up out of the Valley of the Parma and cross
-the High Apennines and look southward into the
-happy Garfagnana, and hear the noise of the little
-Serchio beginning in its meads. In the same way
-no one has described (to my knowledge at least)
-that shock of desolation and yet of mystery which
-comes upon a man when he crosses the River
-Couesnon and passes from Normandy into Brittany.
-Normandy is rich, Brittany is poor. Normandy
-loves ritual, Brittany religion. Normandy can make
-things, Brittany prayers. Normandy lives by Brittany
-in the matter of the soul, Brittany not by
-Normandy in the matter of the body. What Norman
-ever gave a Breton anything? You cross that
-river and everything changes. The men and women
-have dreamier eyes, the little children play more
-wonderfully, everybody is poor.</p>
-
-<p>Or, again, the passage from the hard industry of
-the Lancashire Plain suddenly on to the moors,
-where the farming men and women are so quiet and
-silent and self-respectful and seem so careful rather
-to preserve what they own than to add to it. Or,
-again, the startling passage over Carter Fell from
-the Englishmen of Rede-Dale to the Scotchmen of
-Jedburgh; or the sharp passage from the violent,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">[169]</a></span>
-active, sceptical, cruel, courageous, well-fed, ironical
-Burgundians into the gentle Germans of the
-Vosges: here is a boundary which is not marked in
-any political way, and yet how marked it is!</p>
-
-<p>Now in England we have many such approaches
-and surprises. I will not speak of that good change
-which comes upon a man as he travels south from
-Victoria Station and hears, almost at the same time
-that he first smells earth, the South Country tongue;
-nor will I speak of that other change which perhaps
-some of my readers know very well, the change
-from the active and grasping Cockney into the quiet
-tenacity of East Anglia. It is not my province&mdash;but
-if I am not wrong one strikes it within half
-an hour in the fast expresses&mdash;these people push
-with quants, they sail in wherries, they inhabit flat
-tidal banks, they are at peace. Nor will I here
-speak of the Marches and how, between a village
-and a village, one changes from the common English
-parish with the Squire&#8217;s house and the church and
-the cottages and all, into the hard slate roofs and the
-inner flame of Wales. Rather I would speak of
-something the boundary of which has never yet
-been laid down, but which people call (I think)
-&#8220;The West Country.&#8221;</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>One never knows, when one is tackling a thing
-like this, where one should first begin to tackle it,
-or by what end one should take it. Every man<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">[170]</a></span>
-according to his own study, every man according to
-his own bent or accident of experience, takes it by
-his own handle, and the one man speaks of the
-language, the other of the hills, another of the
-architecture, another of the names. For my part
-I would desire to speak of all.</p>
-
-<p>When one gets over a certain boundary one is in
-a peculiar district of this world, a special countryside
-of Europe, a happy land with a conviction and
-a tradition of its own which may not have a name,
-but which is in general the West Country, and
-which by its hills and by its men and women convinces
-any true traveller at once of its personality.
-More than one man after a dreary wandering southwards
-through the Midlands has walked by night
-up one of its fresh streets to an inn and cried:
-&#8220;What! Have I come upon Paradise?&#8221; And this
-feeling comes also when one has climbed up the
-Cotswold through the little places of stone and
-suddenly sees the valley floor of the Severn so full
-of orchards, or has come over the flat deserts of the
-Upper Thames and had revealed to him the Golden
-Valley; or, after plodding through Wiltshire, has
-smelt an air which told him that not far off were the
-heavy tides of that haunted sea which runs between
-the Welsh hills and the peninsula of Cornwall and
-Devon. Men are lost in these seas and are saved in
-them perpetually as by miracles: I can appeal, in
-this print, to how many? They have been saved
-by the miracle of that water. Here Arthur was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">[171]</a></span>
-cast up by the waves: on to that flat salt, in its
-calm, full of mists, looked out those who gave us
-our legend of his Court.</p>
-
-<p>The boundary into this particular land is not only
-fetched by men on foot; in no matter what kind of
-travel one pursues, one recognises that boundary in
-a flash as one traverses it. It is not only the orchards,
-nor the abrupt and pointed hills, nor those domestic
-towns, happy with memories, nor those clear waters,
-nor those meadows, bounded by careful walls of
-stone, but something much more which tells one that
-one has got into the enchanted land. That spirit in
-it which made the stuff of our early history, which
-gave us the landing of Joseph of Arimathea and the
-glorious bush of Glastonbury and the cycle of the
-Round Table and those good verses with regard to
-passion unrestrained:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">... well you wot that of such life</div>
-<div class="verse">There comes but sore battaille and strife</div>
-<div class="verse">And blood of men and hard Travail....</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>And the prophecies of Merlin, and the story of
-Tristan and Iseult and all the vision of immortality
-and of resurrection inhabits it still.</p>
-
-<p>I never can believe (I speak for myself alone) that
-man can be dissociated from his earth any more than
-I can believe that the soul can be dissociated from
-the body. When men say to me that there is
-no soul, they can go on saying. But when men say
-that the soul can neglect the body then there is<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">[172]</a></span>
-matter for argument; and when the argument is
-finished one finds it is not so. Now thus it is with
-the earth that breeds us and into which if we are
-content to die at home (and since we must die somewhere,
-better die there) we should at last return.
-The landscapes of Europe make European men, and
-it is not for nothing that the climate and the shapes
-of the hills and the nature of the building stuff
-change just where man changes.</p>
-
-<p>There is enchantment upon every high place of
-England, but the enchantment of the Devonshire
-Moors and of the Tors to the North and upwards
-from them is different from the enchantment of the
-Downs. There is a great delight in the proper fireplaces
-of the English people, but who, thoroughly
-alive, could mistake a fireplace in the West Riding
-for a fireplace on the Western Rother or either of
-these for a fireplace a little before Sherborne in the
-tumbles and the hollows where Dorset and Somerset
-meet? There is a richness of the speech and a contentment
-of the tongue which any man from the new
-countries might think common to all English agricultural
-men: yet there was a man from Sussex who,
-hearing the Sussex tongue in the Choughs at Yeovil,
-felt himself indeed come home. Our provinces differ
-very much.</p>
-
-<p>I have sometimes wondered whether in the process
-of time these little intimate differences of ours
-will survive. I wish they would! I wish they would,
-by the Lord! The Greeks were a little people, yet<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">[173]</a></span>
-their provinces have survived, and the contempt that
-Aspasia felt for the Peloponnesus is (or should be)
-yet recorded. The hill tribes behind the Ph&oelig;nician
-coast were a little people, but the fame of their
-religion, of their civil wars, has survived that of the
-merchants of Tyre. Rome, Veii, and the others
-were little places like Arundel and Pulborough,
-quite close together; but they were talked of, and
-men know much of them to-day.</p>
-
-<p>I could wish the differences of this island were so
-known and that people coming from a long way off
-would be humble and learn those differences. Surely
-a nation grows great in this way, by many provinces
-reacting one upon the other, recognised by the
-general will, sometimes in conflict with it. At any
-rate the West Country is a province of Europe; no
-one can get into it without touching his youth again
-and putting his fingers to earth, and getting sustenance
-from it, as a man does when he turns at the
-turning point of a race and touches earth with his
-fingers and is strong again to spring forward.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">[174]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Weald<img src="images/i_graphic5.jpg" alt="" width="400" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap2">AMONG the changes that have come upon England
-with the practice and facility for rapid
-travel many would put first the conquest (some
-would call it the spoiling) of little-known and
-isolated stretches of English landscape; and men
-still point out with a sort of jealous pride those districts,
-such as the upper Cotswolds, which modern
-travel has not disturbed. It seems to me that there is
-another feature attaching to the facility for travel, and
-that is this, that men can now tell other men what
-their countrysides are like; men can now compare
-one part of England with another in a way that once
-they could not do, and this facility in communication
-which so many deplore has so much good about it
-at least, in that it permits right judgments. There
-have been men in the past who have travelled
-widely for the mere pleasure of seeing many parts
-of their own country&mdash;Cobbett was one&mdash;but they
-were rare. As the towns grew, commercial travelling
-led men only to the towns, but now the thing is
-settling down. Men travel everywhere, all kinds of
-men, and no part of England remains of which a
-man can say that he loves it without knowing why
-he loves it, or that its character is indefinable. So
-it is with the Weald.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">[175]</a></span>All that roll of land which lies held between and
-above the chalk of South-Eastern England, the clay
-and the sand, and the uncontinuous short trees, the
-muddy little rivers, the scattered homesteads, the
-absence of levels, and almost the absence of true
-hills, the distant prospects northwards and southwards
-of quite another land, the blue lines and
-naked heights a day&#8217;s journey away against the sky&mdash;all
-that is the Weald. And it runs from the
-place where the two lines of chalk meet in Hampshire
-beyond Selborne, and beyond Petersfield, right
-away to the sea which it sweeps upon in a grand
-curve, between Pevensey (which was once the chief
-port of the Weald) and the heights round Hastings:
-for though these heights are in a manner part of the
-Weald, yet between them and the chalk again by
-Folkestone no true Wealden country lies.</p>
-
-<p>Unless a man understands the Weald he cannot
-easily write about the beginnings of England, and
-yet historians have not understood it. Only the men
-mixed into it and married with it or born upon it
-have understood it, and these, I say, until lately were
-not permitted by constant travel that judgment by
-analogy and by contrast which teaches us the true
-meaning of things that we had hitherto only instinctively
-known. Now a Wealden man can say
-certain things about his countryside which are of real
-value to history and perhaps to politics as well; at
-any rate, to politics in that larger sense of patriotism
-intelligently appreciating the future of one&#8217;s own<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">[176]</a></span>
-land. Thus the Wealden man, now that he knows
-so much else in England, can tell the historian that
-the Weald was never the impenetrable forest which
-historians would make of it. It lay in a barrier
-between the ports of the Channel and the Thames
-Valley. But the barrier was not uninhabited; it was
-not impassable. Its scattered brushwood was patchy,
-its soil never permanently marshy nor ever for long
-distances difficult for a mounted man or a man on
-foot. The Weald from the very beginning had
-homesteads in it, but it had not agglomerations
-of houses, nor had it parishes save in very few places.
-If you look at the map now you can see how the old
-parishes stretch northward and southward in long
-strips from the chalk and loam country up towards
-the forest ridge which is the centre of the Weald.
-Those long strips were the hunting rights of the
-village folk and their lords. Of some parishes carved
-out of the central Weald we can accurately tell the
-origin. We know that they were colonised as it
-were, cleared, and had their church built for them in
-the great spurt of civilisation which marked the
-twelfth and thirteenth centuries. Men would understand
-the early history of the Weald better, and
-with it the early military history of South-Eastern
-England, if they would take one of the old forest
-paths&mdash;as that from Rusper, for instance, which
-works its way down, now as a metalled road, now as
-a green lane, now as a mere footpath with right
-of way, past the two old &#8220;broad&#8221; fords on the upper<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">[177]</a></span>
-Arun and the marshy land east of Pulborough until
-it gets to Roundabout, and so to Storrington. All
-the history of communications in the Weald is exemplified
-in such a journey&mdash;and it is a journey which,
-though it is little more than twenty miles in length,
-takes quite a day. You have the modern high road,
-the green lane of the immediate past, and in places
-a mere track of remote antiquity. You see just how
-difficult it is to traverse the clay, how the occasional
-knobs of sand relieve your going; you can notice the
-character of the woodland where it is still untouched,
-and if you are wise you will notice one thing above
-all, and that is the character of the water. Now it
-is this which explains the Weald. Many bad bits
-of clay in Europe have formed highways for armies&mdash;for
-instance, all that rotten land in the great bend
-of the Loire which the Romans called the <i>Solitarium</i>,
-and which the French called the <i>Sologne</i>. But the
-Weald differs from most others in this, that good and
-plentiful water is hard to find. It is not the muddiness
-of the streams that is the chief defence of the
-place against human travel and habitation; it is the
-way in which, when rain has fallen and when water
-is plentiful, going is difficult, and the way in which,
-when a few days of dry weather come, the going
-becomes easy, but the water in the little streams
-disappears. There is evidence that the Romans, when
-they built their great military road&mdash;perhaps their
-only purely military road in Britain&mdash;across the
-Weald skipped one intervening station which should,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">[178]</a></span>
-upon the analogy of others, have been present upon it
-in the heart of the Weald, and pressed the march in
-this place to nearly double its usual length. The
-French armies do precisely the same thing in the bad
-lands of the Plain of Chalons to-day. Wherever
-there is ancient habitation in the Weald, or rather
-upon the fringes of the Weald, there is good, plentiful,
-and perennial water; elsewhere the Weald is
-still what it has been throughout history&mdash;a great
-rolling place, not deserted, not lonely, and yet
-not humanised. It is exactly the place for a seclusion
-from men, for you can see some men, but not
-too many of them; and I have always thought that
-King wise, who, when his enemies desired to kill
-him, wandered in the Andredsweald. The historians
-say that he took refuge in the impassable thickets
-of the forest. This is bosh. No man can sleep out
-in this climate for a season round, nor can any man
-live without cooked meat, nor do I see an Anglo-Saxon
-king living without wine and a good deal
-of pomp into the bargain. As to the wine, men
-might argue, but as to the pomp, they cannot. I will
-tell you what this King did without any doubt. He
-went from steading to steading and was royally entertained,
-and if you ask why it was a refuge for him
-the answer is that it was a refuge against the pursuit
-of many men.</p>
-
-<p>The Weald is a refuge against the pursuit of many
-men. It was so then: it is so now.</p>
-
-<p>And this leads me to my conclusion. The Weald<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">[179]</a></span>
-will never be conquered. It will always be the
-Weald. To be conquered is to suffer the will of
-another: the Weald will suffer no will but its own.
-The men of the Weald drive out men odious to them
-in manner sometimes subtle, sometimes brutal,
-always in the long run successful. Economics break
-against the Weald as water breaks against stone. It
-is not a long walk from London. Your Londoner in
-summer comes and builds in it. So foreign birds
-their nests. But unlike the foreign birds, he does
-not return with each returning spring. For the
-Weald will welcome the bird for the pleasure the
-bird gives it, and drive it out when the pleasure is
-done. Now it welcomes the Londoner for his money,
-and this feature in the Londoner is not recurrent
-with the seasons.</p>
-
-<p>Here is some Latin which I am assured is grammatical
-and correctly spelled as well:</p>
-
-<p class="center">Stat et stabit: manet et manebit, spectator orbis.</p>
-
-<p>She stands and still shall stand; she remains and
-shall remain: a watcher of the generations.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">[180]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On London and the Houses in it<img src="images/i_graphic2.jpg" alt="" width="165" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE aspect of London, as the man who knows it
-grows older, begins to take on characters of
-permanence and characters of change, both of which
-are comparable to those of a human life. It is perceived
-that certain qualities in the great soul of the
-place are permanent, and that the memories of many
-common details merge after the passage of years
-into a general picture which is steadfast and gives
-unity to the whole.</p>
-
-<p>This is especially true of the London skies, and
-more true, I think, of the London skies in autumn
-than at any other season of the year. Men go home
-from the City or from the Courts westward at an
-hour which is that of sunset, when the river catches
-more light than at any other time: the mixture of
-mist and smoke and of those shapes in our clouds,
-beyond the reek of the town, which are determined
-by the south-west wind blowing up the line of the
-valley, make together an impression which is the
-most lasting of the landscapes in which we live.
-These it was which inspired Turner when he drew
-them from the deserted room in the tower of Battersea
-Church, or from that corner house over the River,
-whence he could watch evening after evening the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">[181]</a></span>
-heavy but transparent colours which enter into the
-things he painted. Many foreigners, caught by the
-glamour of that artist, have missed the source
-whence his mellow and declining sunlight was inspired;
-its source was in these evening and autumn
-skies of London. There is a permanence also in the
-type of home which London built for more than two
-centuries, and which was laid down after the Great
-Fire, and there is a permanence in the older stonework.
-It is difficult or impossible to define what
-there is in common between the brown stock brick
-of London, which is the stuff of all its background
-whether of large houses or mean, and the black and
-white weathering of Portland stone. Perhaps the
-unity which seems to bind them is wholly in the
-mind, and depends merely upon association, but it is
-very strong upon anyone who has grown up from
-childhood into middle age surrounded by the vision
-of this town; and it would seem as though London
-was only London because of those rough surfaces of
-soft stonework, streaked with white wedges, scaling
-off the grime of St. Martin&#8217;s, or St. Clement Dane&#8217;s,
-or the fine front of the Admiralty, and standing out
-clear against the general brown mass of the streets.
-The quite new things have no character at all. One
-wonders what cosmopolitan need can have produced
-them. London never produced them, with their
-stone that so often is plaster, and their alien suggestion
-of whatever is least national in Paris or New
-York. London never produced them.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">[182]</a></span>The noise of the streets in spite of every change
-remains the same, it is the same comforting and distant
-roar, like the roar of large waters among hills,
-which every visitor has noticed, with its sharp contrast
-to the rattle and cries of other great capitals.
-Why it should be so no one, I think, has discovered,
-though many have described it, but it remains an
-unmistakable thing, and if a London man, who
-had travelled and was far away, should be set down
-by a spirit in London, not knowing where he was,
-when he heard through a window high above the
-street this distant and continuous roar, he would
-know that he had come home. It should surely in
-theory have disappeared, this chief physical characteristic
-of the great place, yet neither the new
-electricity and the hissing of the wires, nor the new
-paving, nor even the new petrol seem to change it.
-It is still a confused and powerful and subdued voice,
-like a multitude undecided. The silence also does
-not change. The way in which in countless spots you
-pass through an unobserved low passage, or through
-an inconspicuous narrow turning, and find yourself
-in a deserted place, from which the whole life of
-London seems blanketed out, has been to every
-traveller and to every native part of the charm and
-surprise of London. Dickens knew it very well,
-and makes of it again and again a dramatic something
-in his work which stamps it everywhere with
-the soul of London. In every decade men growing
-older deplore the disappearance of this or that sanctuary<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">[183]</a></span>
-of isolation and silence, but in the aggregate
-they never disappear; something in the very character
-of the people reproduces them continually,
-and if any man will borrow the leisure&mdash;even a
-man who knows his London well&mdash;to peer about
-and to explore for one Saturday afternoon in one
-square mile of older London, how many such unknown
-corners will he not find! The populace also
-upon whom all this is founded remain the same.</p>
-
-<p>What changes in London are the things that also
-change in the life of a man, and nothing more than
-the relationship of particular spots and particular
-houses to our own lives. There is perhaps no city
-in the world where, under the permanence of the
-general type, there is so perpetual a flow and disturbance
-of association. It has even become normal
-to the life of the citizens, and the conception of a
-fixed home has left them. Here and there&mdash;but
-more and more rarely with every year&mdash;you may
-point out a great house which some wealthy family
-has chosen to inhabit for some few generations; but
-fixity of tenure, tradition, family tradition at least,
-and sacred hereditary things, either these were never
-proper to London or they have gone; it is this which
-overspreads a continued knowledge of London with
-an increasing loneliness and with memories that find
-no satisfaction or expression, but re-enter the heart
-of a man and do a hurt to him there.</p>
-
-<p>There are so many strange doors that should be
-familiar doors. Turning sometimes into some street<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">[184]</a></span>
-where one has turned for years to find at a very well-known
-number windows of a certain aspect and little
-details in the drab exterior of the house, every one
-of which was as familiar as a smile, one is (by the
-mere association of years and of a gesture repeated
-a thousand times) in the act of coming to the steps
-and of seeking an entry. The whole place is as
-much one&#8217;s friend and as much indicative of one&#8217;s
-friend as would be his clothes or his voice or any
-other external thing. He is not there, and the
-house is worse than empty. London grows full of
-such houses as a man grows older. Most of us have
-other losses sharper still, which men of other cities
-know less well, for most of us pass and repass the
-house where we were born, or where as children we
-gathered all the strongest impressions of life. It is
-impossible to believe that other souls are inheriting
-the effect of those familiar rooms. It is worse than
-a death; it is a kind of treason.</p>
-
-<p>I know a house in Wimpole Street of which every
-part is as familiar quite as the torn leaves of the old
-books of childhood, but I have passed it and repassed
-it for how many years, forbidden an entrance,
-and finding that ancient and fixed friend in league,
-so to speak, with strangers. Or, in another manner,
-which of us does not know a house like any other
-house, amid the thousand unmarked houses in the
-better streets of the town, but to us quite individual
-because there met within it once so many who were
-for us the history of our time? It was in that room<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">[185]</a></span>
-(where are the three windows) that she received her
-guests, retaining on into the last generations of a
-worse and degraded time the traditions of a better
-society. Here came men who could discuss and
-reveal things that are now distorted legends, and
-whose revelations were real because they came as
-witnesses: soldiers of the Crimea, of India, of
-Italy, and of Algiers, or men who remembered
-great actions within the State: actions that were
-significant through conviction, before we became
-what we are. Here was breeding; here were the
-just limits of tone and emphasis and change, and
-here was that type of intercourse which was surely
-as great and as good a thing as Europe or England
-has known. Who sees that room to-day? What
-taste has replaced her taste? What choice of stuff
-or colour mars the decoration on the walls? What
-trash or alien thing takes the place of that careful
-elaborate womanly work in which her travels
-throughout the world were recorded, and in which
-the excellent modesty of an art sufficient for her
-purpose reproduced in line and in colour the ironic
-nobility of her mind and the wide expanse of her
-learning? We do not know and we cannot know.
-The house is neither ours nor hers. To whomever
-it has passed it has turned traitor to us who knew.</p>
-
-<p>It is better, I think, for those who have such memories
-when the material things that enshrine them
-wholly disappear, for then there is no jar, no agony
-of contrast between that society which once was and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">[186]</a></span>
-this which now is, with its quality of wealth and of
-the uses to which wealth is put to-day. If we must
-suffer the intolerable and clumsy presence of accidental
-power&mdash;power got suddenly, got anyhow, got
-by chance, untrained and unworthy&mdash;at least may
-we suffer such things in their own surroundings, in
-huge conservatories, with loud music, with an impression
-of partial drunkenness all around, and a
-certainty all around of intellectual incompetence
-and of sprawling bodies and souls. It is better to
-suffer these new things in such surroundings as may
-easily let one believe that one is not in London at
-all, but on the Riviera; and let the heat be excessive,
-and let there be a complete ignorance of all
-wine except champagne, and let it be a place where
-champagne is supposed to be one wine. Then the
-frame will suit the picture, and there will at least be
-no desecration of material things by human beings
-unworthy of the bricks and mortar. I say it is much
-better when the old houses disappear, at least the
-old houses in which we knew and loved the better
-people of a better time:&mdash;and yet the youth or childhood
-in which so many of us saw the last of it is not
-thirty years, is barely twenty years dead!</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">[187]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On Old Towns<img src="images/i_graphic5.jpg" alt="" width="400" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">EVERY man who has a civilised backing behind
-him, every man, that is, born to a citizenship
-which has history to nourish it, knows, loves, desires
-to inhabit, and returns to, the Old Towns; but the
-more one thinks of it the more difficult one finds
-it to determine in what this appetite consists.</p>
-
-<p>The love of a village, of a manor, is one thing.
-You may stand in some place where you were born
-or brought up, especially if it be some place in which
-you passed those years in which the soul is formed
-to the body, between, say, seven years of age and
-seventeen, and you may look at the landscape of it
-from its height, but you will not be able to determine
-how much in your strong affection is of man
-and how much of God. True, nearly everything
-in a good European landscape has been moulded,
-touched, coloured, and in a sense made by Christian
-men. It is like a sort of tapestry which man has
-worked upon the stuff that God gave him; but, still,
-any such landscape from the height of one of our
-villages has surely more in it of God than of man.
-For one thing there is the sky; and then it must be
-admitted that the lines of the hills were there before
-man touched them, and though the definite outline<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">[188]</a></span>
-of the woods, the careful thinning of them which
-allows great trees to grow, the noble choice and contrast
-of foliage, the sharp edge of cultivated against
-forest land, the careful planting of the tallest kinds
-of things, pine trees and elms, are all man&#8217;s work;
-and though the sights of water in between are
-usually man&#8217;s work also, yet in the air that clothes
-the scene and in all its major lines, man did not
-make it at all: he has but used it and improved it
-under the inspiration of That which made the whole.</p>
-
-<p>But with the Old Towns it is not so. They please
-us in proportion to their apparent intensity of effort;
-the more man has worked the more can we embed
-ourselves within them. The more different is every
-stone from another, and the more that difference is
-due to the curious spirit of man the more are we
-pleased. We stand in little lanes where every single
-thing about us, except the strip of sky overhead,
-is man&#8217;s work, and the strip of sky overhead becomes
-what all skies are in all pictures&mdash;something subordinate
-to man, an ornament.</p>
-
-<p>One could make a list of the Old Towns and go
-on for ever: the sea-light over the red brick of
-King&#8217;s Lynn from the east, and the other sea-light
-from the south over that other King&#8217;s town, Lyme
-Regis; the curious bunch of Rye; the hill of Poitiers
-all massed up with history, and in whose uneven
-alleys all the armies go by, from the armies of the
-Gauls to the army that makes a noise about them
-to-day: the hill of Lincoln, where one looks up<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">[189]</a></span>
-from the Roman Gate to the towers completing the
-steep hill; the two hills of Cassel and of Montreuil,
-similarly packed with all that men are, have been,
-and remain; the quadrated towns, some surely
-Roman, some certainly so; Chichester, Winchester,
-Horsham, Oxford, Chester, and a hundred others&mdash;England
-is most fruitful in these; the towns that
-draw their life from rivers and have high steep walls
-of stone or brick going right down into the waters,
-Albi, Newcastle as it once was; in its own small way
-Arundel as it still is; the towns of the great flats,
-where men for some reason can best give rein to
-their fancy, Delft, Antwerp (that part of it which
-counts), Bruges, Louvain; Ypres also where the cooking
-is so vile.</p>
-
-<p>One might continue for ever this futile list of
-towns&mdash;this is in common to them all, that wherever
-men come across them in travel they have a
-sense of home and the soul reposes.</p>
-
-<p>Nowhere have I found this more than in the
-curious and to some the disappointing town of Arles.
-Arles has about it, more than any other town I know,
-the sentiment of protracted human experience. They
-dig and find stone tools and weapons. They dig
-again and find marks of log huts, bronze pins, and
-the arms of the Gauls. And then, apparent to the
-eye and still living as it were, and still breathing, as
-it were, the upper air which is also ours, not buried
-away like dead things, but surviving, is Greece, is
-Rome, is the Dark Ages, is the Middle Ages, is the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">[190]</a></span>
-Renaissance, is the religious quarrel, is the Eighteenth
-Century, is the Revolution, is to-day. I have sometimes
-thought that if a man should go to Arles with
-the desire deliberately to subject himself at once to
-the illusion and to the reality of the past, here he
-could do so. He could look curiously for a day at
-the map and see how the Rhone had swept the place
-for thousands upon thousands of years, making it a
-sort of corner at the head of its great estuary, and
-later of its delta; then he might spend the day
-wondering at the flints and the way they were
-chipped, and getting into the minds of the men that
-made them. Then he should spend a day with
-bronze, and then a day with the Gaulish iron. After
-that, for as many weeks as he chose, let him study
-the stones which Greece and which Rome have still
-left in the public places of the city; the half of the
-frontal of the great temple built into his hotel;
-the amphitheatre upon which he suddenly comes as
-he wanders up a narrow modern street; the Aren.
-The Dark Ages, which have left so little in Europe,
-have here left massive towers in which the echoes
-of the fighting linger, and huge rough stones which
-the Dark Ages did not quarry but which they moved
-from the palaces of the Romans to their own fortresses,
-and which by their very presence so removed
-bring back to one the long generations in which
-Europe slept healthily and survived.</p>
-
-<p>St. Trophime is all the Middle Ages. You may
-walk quietly round its cloister and see those ten<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">[191]</a></span>
-generations of men, from the hugeness of the
-Crusades to the last delicacies of the fifteenth
-century. The capitals of the columns go in order,
-the very earliest touch on that archaic grotesque
-which underlies every civilisation, the latest in their
-exact realism and their refinement, prove the
-decline of a whole period of the soul. Lest Arles
-should take up too much of this short space, I
-would remind the reader only of this ironical and
-striking thing: that on its gates as you go out of
-the city northward, you may see sculptured in
-marble what the Revolution&mdash;but a century ago&mdash;took
-to be a primal truth common to all mankind.
-It concerns the sanctity of property. Consider that
-doctrine to-day!</p>
-
-<p>But not Arles, though it is so particular an example,
-not Delft, not the old English seaports which
-so perfectly enshrine our past, not Coutances which
-everyone should know, alone explain what the Old
-Towns are, but rather a knowledge of them all
-together explains it.</p>
-
-<p>The Old Towns are ourselves; they are mankind.
-In their contortion, in their ruined regularity, in
-their familiar oddities, and in their awful corners of
-darkness, in their piled experience of the soul
-which has soaked right into their stone and their
-brick and their lime, they are the caskets of man.
-Note how the trees that grow by licence from the
-crevices of their battlements are a sort of sacramental
-saving things, exceptional to the fixed lines<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">[192]</a></span>
-about them, and note how the grass which grows
-between the setts of their paving stones comes up
-ashamedly and yet universally, as good memories
-do in the oldness of the human mind, and as purity
-does through the complexity of living.</p>
-
-<p>Which reminds me: Once there was a band of
-men, foolish men, Bohemian men, indebted men,
-who went down to paint in a silly manner, and
-chose a town of this sort which looked to them very
-old and wonderful; and there they squatted for a
-late summer month and talked the detestable jargon
-of their trade. They talked of tones and of values
-and of the Square Touch, and Heaven knows what
-nonsense, the meanwhile daubing daub upon daub
-on to the canvas; praising Velasquez (which after
-all was right) and ridiculing the Royal Academy.
-They ridiculed the Royal Academy.</p>
-
-<p>Well, now, these men were pleased to see in
-autumn grass growing between the setts of the
-street, especially in one steep street where they
-lived. It rejoiced their hearts; they said within
-themselves, &#8220;This is indeed an Old Town!&#8221; But
-the Town Council of that town had said among
-themselves, &#8220;What if it become publicly known
-that grass grows in our streets? We shall be
-thought backward; the rich will not come to visit
-us. We shall not make so much money, and our
-brothers-in-law and others indebted to us will also
-grow impoverished. Come! Let us pull up this
-grass.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">[193]</a></span>So they paid a poor man, who would otherwise
-have starved, the amount of his food on the condition
-that he should painfully pull up all the grass,
-which he did.</p>
-
-<p>Then the artists, seeing him at work, paid him
-more not to pull it up. Then the Town Council,
-finding out this, dismissed him from their employ,
-and put upon the job a distant man from some outlandish
-county, and had him watched, and he pulled
-up all the grass, every blade of it, by night, but
-thoroughly. The next morning the artists saw
-what had been done, and they went out by train to
-another town, and bought grass seed and also a
-little garden soil, and the next night they scattered
-the soil carefully between the stones and sowed the
-grass seed; and the comedy is not yet ended.</p>
-
-<p>There is a moral to this, but I will not write it
-down, for in the first place it may not be a good
-moral, and in the second place I have forgotten
-what it was.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">[194]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">A Crossing of the Hills<img src="images/i_graphic3.jpg" alt="" width="225" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">WHEN it was nearly noon my companion said
-to me:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;By what sign or track do you propose to cross
-the mountains?&#8221; For the mountains here seem
-higher than any of highest clouds: the valley beneath
-them is broad and full of fields: beyond, a
-long day off, stands in a huge white wall the Sierra
-del Cadi. Yet we must cross these hills if ever we
-were to see the secluded and little-known Andorrans.
-For the Andorrans live in a sort of cup
-fenced in on every side by the Pyrenees; it was on
-this account that my companion asked me how I
-would cross over to their land and by what sign
-I should find my way.</p>
-
-<p>When I had thought a little I answered:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;By none. I propose to go right up at them,
-and over unless I find some accident by which I am
-debarred.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, then,&#8221; said he, &#8220;let us strike up at once,
-walking steeply until we come into a new country.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>This advice was good, and so, though we had no
-longer any path, and though a mist fell upon us, we
-began walking upwards, and it was like going up a
-moor in the West Riding, except that it went on<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">[195]</a></span>
-and on and on, hour after hour, and was so steep
-that now and then one had to use one&#8217;s hands.</p>
-
-<p>The mist was all round us; it made a complete
-silence, and it drifted in the oddest way, making
-wisps of vapour quite close to our faces. Nor had
-we any guide except the steepness of the hill. For
-it is a rule when you are caught in a storm or mist
-upon the hills, if you are going up, to go the steepest
-way, and though in such a fog this often took us
-over a knoll which we had to descend again, yet on
-the whole it proved a very good rule. It was perhaps
-the middle of the afternoon, we had been
-climbing some five hours, we had ascended some six
-thousand or seven thousand feet, when to our vast
-astonishment we stumbled upon a sort of road.</p>
-
-<p>It must here be explained why we were astonished.
-The way we had come led nowhere; there
-were no houses and no men. The Andorrans whom
-we were about to visit have no communication
-northward with the outer world except a thin wire
-leading over the hills, by which those who wish to
-telephone to them can do so; and of all places in
-Europe, Andorra is the place out of which men
-least desire to get and to which men least desire
-to go. It is like that place beyond Death of which
-people say that it gives complete satisfaction and
-from which certainly no one makes any effort to
-escape, and yet to which no one is very anxious to
-go. When, therefore, we came to this road, beginning
-suddenly half way up a bare mountain and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">[196]</a></span>
-appearing unexplained through the mist, we were
-astonished.</p>
-
-<p>It was embanked and entrenched and levelled as
-would be any great French military road near the
-frontier fortresses. There was a little runnel running
-underneath the road, conveying a mountain stream;
-it was arched with great care, and the arch was
-made of good hewn stone well smoothed. But when
-we came right on to this road we found something
-more astonishing still: we found that it was but the
-simulacrum or ghost of a road. It was not metalled;
-it was but the plan or trace or idea of a road. No
-horses had ever trod its soft earth, no wheels had
-ever made a rut in it. It had not been used at all.
-Grass covered it. The explanation of this astonishing
-sight we did not receive until we had spoken in
-their own tongue the next day to the imperturbable
-Andorrans.</p>
-
-<p>It was as though a school of engineers had been
-turned on here for fun, to practise the designing of
-a road in a place where land was valueless, upon the
-very summit of the world.</p>
-
-<p>We two men, however, reasoned thus (and reasoned
-rightly as it turned out):</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The tall and silent Andorrans in a fit of energy
-must have begun this road, though later in another
-fit they abandoned it. Therefore it will lead towards
-their country.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And as we were very tired of walking up a steep
-which had now lasted for so many hours, we determined<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">[197]</a></span>
-to follow the large zigzags of this unknown
-and magic half-road, and so we did.</p>
-
-<p>It was the oddest sensation in the world walking
-in the mist a mile and more above the habitations of
-men, upon unmetalled, common earth which yet had
-the exact shape of pavements, cuttings, and embankments
-upon either side, with no sort of clue as to
-where it led or as to why men began to make it,
-and still less of an argument as to why they had
-ceased.</p>
-
-<p>It went up and up in great long turns and z&#8217;s upon
-the face of the mountain, until at last it grew less
-steep; the mist grew colder, and after a long flat I
-thought the land began to fall a little, and I said to
-my companion:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We are over the watershed, and beneath us, miles
-beneath us, are the Andorrans.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>When by the continuance of the fall of the land
-we were certain of this we took off our hats, in spite
-of the fog which still hung round us very wet and
-very cold and quite silent, and expected any moment
-a revelation.</p>
-
-<p>We were not disappointed. Indeed, this attitude
-of the mind is never disappointed. Without a
-moment&#8217;s warning the air all round us turned quite
-bright and warm, a strong gust blew through the
-whirling vapour, and we saw through the veil of it
-the image of the sun. In a moment his full disc and
-warmth was on us. The clouds were torn up above
-us; the air was immediately quite clear, and we saw<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">[198]</a></span>
-before us, stamped suddenly upon the sight, a hundred
-miles of the Pyrenees.</p>
-
-<p>They say that everything is in the mind. If that
-be true, then he and I saw in that moment a country
-which was never yet on earth, for it was a country
-which our minds had not yet conceived to be possible,
-and it was as new as though we had seen it after the
-disembodiment of the soul.</p>
-
-<p>The evening sun from over Spain shone warm and
-low, and every conceivable colour of the purples and
-the browns filled up the mountain tangle, so that
-the marvel appeared as though it had been painted
-carefully in a minute way by a man&#8217;s hand; but the
-colours were filled with light, and so to fill colour
-with light is what art can never do. The main
-range ran out upon either side, and the foothills
-in long series of peaks and ridges fell beneath it,
-until, beyond, in what might have been sky or
-might have been earth, was the haze of the plains
-of Ebro.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It is no wonder,&#8221; said I to my companion, &#8220;that
-the Andorrans jealously preserve their land and
-have refused to complete this road.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>When I had said that we went down the mountain
-side. The lower our steps fell the more we
-found the wealth and the happiness of men. At
-last walls and ploughed land appeared. The fields
-grew deep, the trees more sturdy, and under the
-shelter of peaks with which we had just been acquainted,
-but which after an hour or so of descent<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">[199]</a></span>
-seemed hopelessly above us, ran rivers which were
-already tamed and put to a use. One could see
-mills standing upon them. So we went down and
-down.</p>
-
-<p>There is no rejuvenescence like this entry into Andorra,
-and there is no other experience of the same
-sort, not even the finding of spring land after a
-month of winter sea: that vision of brilliant fields
-coming down to meet one after the endless grey
-waste of the sea.</p>
-
-<p>It was, I tell you again, a country completely new,
-and it might have been of another world, much
-better than our own.</p>
-
-<p>So we came at last to the level of the valley, and
-the first thing we saw was a pig, and the second was
-a child, and the third was a woman. The pig ran
-at us: for he was lean. The child at first smiled at
-us because we were human beings, and then divining
-that we were fiends who had violated his sacred
-home began to cry. The woman drove the pig from
-us and took in the child, and in great loneliness and
-very sad to be so received we went until we should
-find men and citizens, and these we found of our own
-size, upstanding and very dignified, and recognised
-them at once to be of the wealthy and reserved
-Andorrans. It was clear by their faces that the
-<i>lingua franca</i> was well known to them, so I said to
-the first in this universal tongue:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sir, what is the name of this village?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And he replied: &#8220;It is Saldeu.&#8221; But this he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">[200]</a></span>
-said in his own language, which is somewhat more
-difficult to understand than the <i>lingua franca</i>.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I take it, therefore,&#8221; said I, &#8220;that I am in the
-famous country of Andorra.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>To which he replied: &#8220;You are not many miles
-from the very town itself: you approach Andorra
-&#8216;the Old.&#8217;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The meaning of this I did not at first exactly
-understand, but as we went on, the sun having now
-set, I said to my companion: &#8220;Were not those
-epithets right which we attached to the Andorrans
-in our fancy before we attempted these enormous
-hills? Were we not right to call them the smiling
-and the tall Andorrans?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You are right,&#8221; he answered to me, thinking
-carefully over every word that he said. &#8220;To call
-them the secluded and the honourable Andorrans is
-to describe them in a few words.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>We then continued our way down the darkening
-valley, whistling little English songs.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">[201]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Barber<img src="images/i_graphic5.jpg" alt="" width="400" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">HUMANITY, my dear little human race, is at
-once more difficult to get at and more generally
-present than you seem to know. You are yourselves
-human beings, dear people. Yet how many
-have so fully understood their fellows (that is,
-themselves) that they could exactly say how any
-man will behave or why any man behaves as he
-does? But with that I am not to-day concerned.
-I am concerned with another matter, which is the
-impossibility of getting away from these brothers of
-ours, even if we desire to do so.</p>
-
-<p>Note you here, humans, that in reality you do not,
-even the richest of you, try to get away from your
-brothers. You do not like solitudes; you like sham,
-theatrical solitudes. You like the Highlands on
-condition that you have driven away the people
-rooted there, but also on condition that you may
-have there the wine called champagne. Now if
-you had seen that wine made, the gathering of the
-apples in the orchards of the Rhine and the Moselle,
-the adding of the sugar, the watching of the fermentation,
-and the corking with a curious machine,
-you would appreciate that if you insist upon champagne
-in the Highlands, then you are certainly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">[202]</a></span>
-taking humanity with you. If you could follow the
-thing farther and see them all passing the stuff on,
-each a little afraid of being found out, then you
-would know that as you drank your champagne in
-the most solitary valley you had done far from getting
-rid of humanity. All the grotesque of man
-and all his jollity, all his stupidity and all his sin,
-went with you into your hermitage and it would
-have gone with you anyhow without the champagne.
-You cannot make a desert except by staying away
-from it yourself. All of which leads me to the
-Barber.</p>
-
-<p>First, then, to give you the true framework of
-that astonishing man. For exactly thirty-six hours
-there had been nothing at all in the way of men;
-and if thirty-six hours seems but a short time to you
-as you read it, it certainly was a mighty long time
-for me who am writing this. Of those thirty-six
-hours the first few had been enlivened (that is, from
-five in the morning till about noon) with the sight of
-a properly made road, of worked stone, of mown
-grass, and of all that my fellow beings are busily at
-throughout the world. For though I had not seen
-a man, yet the marks of men were all around, and
-at last as I went into the Uplands I bade farewell to
-my kind in the shape of an old rusty pair of rails
-still united by little iron sleepers, one link of a
-Decauville railway which a generation before had
-led to a now abandoned mine.</p>
-
-<p>My way over the mountains lay up a gulley which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">[203]</a></span>
-turned as unexpectedly as might the street of a
-medival town; and which was quite as narrow and
-as enwalled as the street of any city; but instead of
-houses there were ugly rocks, and instead of people
-very probably viewless devils. Still, though I hated
-to be away from men I went on because I desired to
-cross the high ridge which separated me from a
-dear pastoral people, of whom I had heard from
-poets and of whom I had read in old books. They
-were a democracy simple and austere, though a little
-given to thieving, and every man was a master of
-his house and a citizen within the State. This
-curious little place I determined to see, though the
-approach to it was difficult. There are many such
-in Europe, but this one lies peculiarly alone, and is
-respected, and I might say in a sense worshipped,
-by the powerful Government to which it is nominally
-subject.</p>
-
-<p>Well, then, I went on up over the ridge and, by
-that common trick of mountains, the great height
-and the very long way somehow missed me; it grew
-dark before I was aware, and when I could have
-sworn I was about four thousand feet up I was close
-upon eight thousand. I had hoped to manage the
-Farther Valleys before nightfall, but when I found
-it was impossible what I did was this: I scrambled
-down the first four or five hundred feet of the far
-side before it was quite dark, until I came to the
-beginnings of a stream that leapt from ledge to
-ledge. It was not large enough to supply a cottage<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">[204]</a></span>
-well, but it would do to camp by, for all one needs
-is water, and there was a little brushwood to burn.
-Next morning with the first of the light I went on
-my scramble downwards&mdash;and it was the old story
-(which everyone who has wandered in the great
-mountains of Europe knows so well), I was in the
-Wrong Valley. I was used to that sort of thing, and
-I recognised the signs of it at once. I made up my
-mind for a good day&#8217;s effort, which, when one is by
-oneself, is an exasperating thing; I tried to guess
-from my map what sort of error I had made (and
-failed). I knew that if I followed running water I
-should come at last to men. At about three o&#8217;clock
-in the afternoon I made a good meal of stale bread,
-wine, and my companion the torrent, which had now
-grown to be a sort of river and made as much noise
-as though it were a politician. Then I thought I
-would sleep a little, and did so (you must excuse so
-many details, they are all necessary). It was five
-when I rose and took up my journey again. I
-shouldered the pack and stolidly determined that
-another night out in these warmer lowlands would
-not hurt me, when I saw something which is quite
-unmistakable upon the grass of those particular
-hills, a worn patch, and another worn patch a yard
-or two ahead. That meant a road, and a road
-means men&mdash;sooner or later.</p>
-
-<p>Sure enough, within half a mile, the worn patches
-having become now almost continuous, I rounded
-a big rock and there was a group of huts.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">[205]</a></span>There were perhaps two dozen of them, perhaps
-more. Three-quarters were built of great logs with
-large, very flat roofs over them held down by stones;
-one quarter were built of the same rough stones,
-and there was a tiny church of dirt colour, with
-two windows; and neither window had glass in it.
-I had found men. And I had found something
-more.</p>
-
-<p>For as I went down the main street of this Polity
-(they had &#8220;Main Street&#8221; stuck up in their language
-at the corner of the only possible mud alley of their
-town) I saw that blessed sight which sings to the
-heart and is one of the thirteen signs of civilisation,
-a barber&#8217;s pole. It was not very good; it was not
-planed or polished; the bark was still upon the
-chestnut wood of it; but there was a spiral of red
-round it in the orthodox fashion, at the end of it
-a tuft of red wool, and underneath it in very faded
-rough letters upon a board the words, &#8220;Here it is
-barbered.&#8221; More was to follow. I confess that I
-desired to draw, for beyond the little huts the mountains,
-once dreadful, now, being so far above me,
-compelled my attention. But just as I had sat down
-upon a great stone to draw their outline, there
-appeared through the disgusting little door under
-the barber&#8217;s pole one of those humans whom I have
-mentioned so often in these lines.</p>
-
-<p>He was about thirty, but he had never known
-care; his complexion was pink and white, his eyes
-were lively, his brown hair was short, curled, trimmed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">[206]</a></span>
-and oily, and some fifteen degrees from the middle
-of his head to the eastward went a very clear
-white line which was the parting of his hair. His
-two little moustaches curled upwards like rams&#8217;
-horns; his chin was square and firm, but very full
-and healthy. He was looking out for customers.
-Oh, Humanity, my brothers, Divine Object of the
-Positivists, Plaything of the Theologians, Food of the
-God of War, Great of Destiny, Victim of Experience,
-Doubtful of Doom, Foreknowing of Death, Humanity
-enslaved, exultant, always on the march, never
-arriving, the only thing yet made that can laugh and
-can cry, Humanity, in fine, which was generously
-designed as matter for poets, hear! He was looking
-out for customers! Even to the railways of his own
-land it was nearly a hundred miles; no one read
-print; beyond Latin no foreign language perhaps was
-known. No vehicle on wheels had ever been into
-that place, even the maps were wrong, no one therein
-had seen a metalled road, a ship of any kind, nor
-perhaps one polished stone. But he was looking
-out for customers.</p>
-
-<p>He spotted me. He used no subterfuge; he smiled
-and beckoned with his finger, and I went at once, as
-men do when the Figure appears at the Doorway of
-the Feast and beckons some one of the revellers into
-the darkness. I obeyed. He put a towel round my
-neck; he lathered my chin; I gazed at the ceiling,
-and he began to shave.</p>
-
-<p>On the ceiling was an advertisement in the English<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">[207]</a></span>
-tongue. I am inured by this time to the inconceivable
-stupidity of modern commerce, but (as the
-Pwca said to the Acorn) &#8220;the like of this I never
-saw.&#8221; There most certainly was not a man in the
-whole place who had ever heard of the English
-language, nor, I will bet a boot, had anyone been
-there before me who did, at any rate not since the
-pilgrimages stopped. Yet there was this advertisement
-staring me in the face, and what it told me to do
-was to buy a certain kind of bicycle. It gave no
-evidence in favour of the thing. It asserted. It
-said that this bicycle was the best. There was a
-picture of a young man riding on the bicycle, and
-under it in very small letters in the language of the
-country an address where such bicycles might be
-bought. The address was in a town as far away as
-Bristol is from Hull, and between it was range upon
-range of mountains, and never a road.</p>
-
-<p>I watched this advertisement, and the Barber all
-the while talked to me of the things of this world.</p>
-
-<p>He would have it that I was a stranger. He
-mentioned the place&mdash;it was about eighty miles away&mdash;from
-which I came. He said he knew it at once
-by my accent and my hesitation over their tongue.
-He asked me questions upon the politics of the place,
-and when I could not reply he assured me that he
-meant no harm; he knew that politics were not to
-be discussed among gentlemen. He recommended
-to me what barbers always recommend, and I saw
-that his bottles were from the ends of the earth&mdash;some<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">[208]</a></span>
-French, some German, some American&mdash;at
-least their labels were. Then when he had shaved
-me he very politely began to whistle a tune.</p>
-
-<p>It was a music-hall tune. I had heard it first
-eighteen months before in Glasgow, but it had come
-there from New York. It was already beginning to
-be stale in London&mdash;it did not seem very new to
-the Barber, for he whistled it with thorough knowledge,
-and he added trills and voluntary passages
-of merit and originality. I asked him how much
-there was to pay. He named so considerable a sum
-that I looked at him doubtfully, but he still smiled,
-and I paid him.</p>
-
-<p>I asked him next how far it might be to the next
-village down the valley. He said three hours. I
-went on, and found that he had spoken the truth.</p>
-
-<p>In that next village I slept, and I went forward
-all the next day and half the next before I came to
-what you would call a town. But all the while the
-Barber remained in my mind. There are people
-like this all over the world, even on the edges of
-eternity. How can one ever be lonely?</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">[209]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On High Places<img src="images/i_graphic5.jpg" alt="" width="400" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap2">ALL over the world every kind of man has had for
-the high places of his country, or for the high
-places that he has seen in travel (though these last
-have made upon him a lesser impression), a sentiment
-closely allied to religion and difficult to fit
-in with common words. It is upon such sites
-that sacrifice upon special occasion has been offered.
-It is here that you will find rare, unvisited, but very
-holy shrines to-day, and even in its last and most
-degraded form the men of our modern societies, who
-are atrophied in such things, spur themselves to a
-special emotion by distant voyages in which they can
-satisfy this adoration of a summit over a plain. It is
-not capable of analysis; but how marvellously it fills
-the mind. It is not difficult to understand that
-monk of the Dark Ages&mdash;to be accurate, of the early
-eleventh century&mdash;who, having doubtless seen Paris
-a hundred times from the height of Montmartre,
-could not believe that the martyrdom of St. Denis
-had taken place on the plain. Something primal in
-him demanded the high and lonely place as the
-scene of the foundation of the Church of Lutetia,
-and he would have it that St. Denis was martyred
-there. All the popular stories were with him, and
-the legend arose. Up and down Europe, wherever<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">[210]</a></span>
-there are hills, you will find upon conspicuous crags
-or little peaks, upon the loneliest ridges, a chapel.
-There is one such on a hill near Remiremont; there
-is another at Roncesvalles; there is another on the
-high platform at Portofino; there is another on the
-very height called Holy Cross above Urgel. In its
-way, St. Martha&#8217;s in Surrey is of that kind. There
-are hundreds everywhere throughout Christendom,
-and they witness to this need of man for which, I
-say, there is no name.</p>
-
-<p>I have heard of a mountain in Ireland, in the west
-of that country, to the summit of which upon a
-certain day of the year the people and the priests will
-go together, and Mass will be said in the open air
-upon that height. And so it is in several places of
-the Vosges and of the Pyrenees, and in one or two,
-I believe, of the foothills of the Alps. Everywhere
-men associate the exaltation of the high places with
-worship.</p>
-
-<p>It is to be noticed that where men cannot satisfy
-this emotion by the spectacle of distant hills, or by
-the presence of nearer ones which they can climb
-upon occasion, they remedy the defect either in their
-architecture or with their trees. The people of
-Northern France lacked height in their landscape,
-and in their forests the trees were neither of the sort
-nor stature which commonly satisfy the need of which
-I speak. Their architecture supplies it. It has
-reached its most tremendous expression in Beauvais,
-its most stately in Flanders. No man well understands<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">[211]</a></span>
-what height can be in architecture unless he
-has watched one of the great Flemish steeples from
-a vantage point upon another. They are sufficiently
-amazing when you see them, as they were meant to
-be seen, from the flat pastures outside the city walls.
-But where most you can appreciate the way in which
-they make up the impression of the Netherlands is
-from a platform such as that of Delft, halfway up
-the tower just below the bells. You look out to an
-horizon which is that of a misty sea, land absolutely
-level, and here and there the line between earth and
-sky is cut by these shafts of human effort whose
-purpose it is&mdash;and they achieve it&mdash;to give high
-places to a plain. So also Strasburg stands up in
-that great river plain of which it is the centre, and
-so Salisbury towers above the central upland of
-South England. And so Chichester over the deep
-loam of the sea plain of Sussex. You will further
-note that as you approach the mountains this attempt
-grows less in human effort, and is replaced by something
-else. At Bordeaux on the great flat sweep of
-the river, with the level vineyards all round about,
-you have a mighty spire, sprung probably from
-English effort and looking down the river as a landmark
-and a feature in the sky. But close against
-the Pyrenees, nay when, two days&#8217; walking south of
-the city, you first begin to see those mountains,
-height fails you in architecture. You have not got
-it at Dax, nor in the splendid and deserted aisles of
-Auch, nor in the complicated detail of St. Bertrand;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">[212]</a></span>
-nor is there any example of it in Perpignan; but at
-Narbonne again, where what you have to look at are
-the flat approaches of the sea, height comes in in a
-peculiar way; it is the height not of towers, but of
-walls. It has been remarked by many that effect of
-this kind is lacking in Italy; but in Italy, wherever
-you may be, you have the mountains. South of the
-Sierra Guadarama there in no attempt to diversify
-the line of the horizon in this fashion. There is
-nothing in Madrid to which a man looks up in order
-to satisfy this need for the high places, nor in the
-churches of the villages round about. The millions
-spent upon the Escorial were spent with no such
-object; but then, south of those mountains, the
-range stands up in a steep escarpment and everywhere
-is master of the plain. To the North, where
-they sink away more gradually and form no crest
-upon which the eye can repose, at once man supplies
-for himself the uplifting of the face which his soul
-must have, and the glorious vision of Segovia is proof
-of it. The castle and the cathedral of that famous
-city are like a tall ship riding out to sea; or they
-are like a man preaching from a rock with uplifted
-hands; or they are like the miraculous appearance
-of some divine messenger standing facing one above
-the steeps of the hill.</p>
-
-<p>It is so in all the places I can remember; it is so
-in the Valley of the Ebro, where Saragossa raises
-a tall nave and the tall columns of the Pilar,
-whereas, if you go northward and begin to see the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">[213]</a></span>
-hills this feature fails. It is not apparent in Huesca;
-Jaca, right under the High Pyrenees, has none of it.
-I can remember exceptions; one place, among the
-most famous in Europe, which was built for a mountain
-kingdom and under the influence of mountaineers,
-though it stands in a plain. And that is Brou,
-which seems to be made for mountains rather than
-for the plain. And there are many modern errors
-in the matter due to the copying of some style
-pedantically and to the absence of native inspiration.
-The chief of these is Lourdes, whose hideous
-basilica ought never to have attempted height in
-the midst of those solemn hills. But the history of
-man when he is dealing with his shrines is a history
-of perpetual betterment, and some day Lourdes will
-be replaced by a much worthier thing. The crypt
-is already excellent, and many good changes in
-European building have begun with the crypt.
-There are errors, I say, of this sort due to the
-modern divorce between personality and production,
-and there are accidents, though rare, like that of
-Brou, where a mountain building is set in a plain,
-though hardly ever a building of the plains in the
-mountains. But for the most part, and taking
-Europe as a whole, the rule holds good. Consider
-the church called L&#8217;Epine. It is not high, but every
-line of it is designed to give the effect of height,
-and the farther you are from it the more it seems
-to soar, and the greyer it gets the more finely is it
-drawn upwards. It stands in the roll of those vast<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">[214]</a></span>
-Catalaunian plains where twice the fate of Europe
-has been decided; where first Attila was rolled backwards,
-and where more than a thousand years after
-the armies destined to destroy the Revolution failed.
-It is the mark and the centre of that plain. But as
-you get towards the Mountain of Rheims on the
-north, the Argonne upon the east, the note of height
-in stone is withdrawn. The Argonne is low, the
-Mountain of Rheims, though high and noble, is
-hardly a true mountain, but each uplifts the face.</p>
-
-<p>Among the many misfortunes of men confined to
-this island, in the great cities of it, it may be counted
-a good fortune that they have, more than most men
-bound by modern industry, the opportunity of the
-high places. Lancashire especially has them at its
-doors, and anyone who will talk much to Lancashire
-folk will find how greatly the presence of the moors
-still enters into their lives. Notably is this true of
-the Peak just to the east of the great industrial
-plain, and the sense of height and the satisfaction
-of it is perhaps nowhere more splendidly met
-than by the spectacle of that plain beneath a winter
-sunset as one sees it from the height of the road
-above Glossop, if it be a Sunday evening when the
-smoke is not dense, because for twenty-four hours
-the factories have been silent. The smoke then
-hangs in wreaths like light clouds against the sunset
-and one perceives in a very marvellous and sudden
-fashion beneath one the life of industrial England.
-It is an aspect of the country not easily forgotten.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">[215]</a></span>
-And everywhere Englishmen have presented to them
-this effect of height within a smaller compass than
-the men of other European nations. For in the
-other nations men are either of the mountains or
-of the plains. But here the isolated and numerous
-masses of old rocks in Wales, in Cumberland, and
-just north of the Midlands, and the sharp escarpments
-of the five ranges of the chalk that radiate
-from Salisbury Plain, and the isolated ridge of the
-Malverns, and the wall of the Cotswolds over the
-Vale of Severn, make it so that nearly all those who
-live on this island, and especially those who live
-in the busiest part of it, have their line of hills
-before them. East Anglia and the Fens are an
-exception, and much of the Valley of the Thames
-as well. And here comes in the lack of London.
-London has no high places. It is the chief misfortune
-in the aspect of the city. It was not always
-so. Popular instinct was very powerful here. Since
-the Surrey hills had not their escarpment turned
-towards the Thames, and since looking nowhere
-round could the Londoner get height, he made it
-for himself, and the Gothic London of the Middle
-Ages was a mass of spires, chief and glorious above
-which was the highest spire in all Europe, higher than
-Strasburg and higher than Cologne, old St. Paul&#8217;s.
-It stood up on its hill above the river, and gave
-unity to all that scheme of spires below. Neglect
-began the ruin, the Great Fire did the rest, and
-height in London has disappeared. The tall houses<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">[216]</a></span>
-and narrow gorges of streets that are the characteristic
-of Paris and of Edinburgh are unknown
-to London. Here and there the sense of which I
-speak is satisfied. Coming up Ludgate Hill, for
-instance, and seeing the mass of St. Paul&#8217;s above it,
-or in one place where, as you come out of a narrow
-Westminster street, the upshooting of the repetitive
-lines of Victoria Tower suddenly strike you. But
-as a whole height is lacking here. Nor in so vast a
-place, now fixed in certain traditions, can it be supplied.
-It is a pity.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">[217]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On Some Little Horses<img src="images/i_graphic3.jpg" alt="" width="225" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap2">ALL the upland was full of little horses, little
-ponies of the upland. They looked with curious
-and interested eyes at man, but none of them
-had known his command. When men passed them
-riding they saw that there was some alliance
-between men and their brothers, and they asked
-news of it. Then they bent their heads down again
-soberly, to graze on the new pasture, and the wind
-blew through their manes and their tails; they
-were happy beasts, thinking of nothing, and knowing
-nothing but themselves, yet in their movements
-and the look of their eyes one could see what the
-skies were round them, and what the world&mdash;they
-were so much a part of it all.</p>
-
-<p>In the hollows of the forest there were not many
-birds, not nearly as many as one had heard in the
-Weald, but one great hawk circled up in spirals
-against the wind. The wind was blowing splendidly
-through an air quite blue and clear for many miles,
-and growing clearer as the afternoon advanced in
-gladness. It was a sea wind that had been a gale
-the day before, but during the night everything had
-changed in South England, and the principal date
-of the year was passed, the date which is the true<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">[218]</a></span>
-beginning of the year. The mist of the morning
-had scudded before thick Atlantic weather; by noon
-it was lifted into clouds, by mid-afternoon those
-clouds were large, heralding clouds of Spring against
-an unbounded capacity of sky. There was no longer
-any struggle between them and the gale; they went
-together in procession over the country and towards
-the east.</p>
-
-<p>The ridges of the land, like great waves, rolled in
-also from the westward; they were clearer and they
-were sharper with every hour, until at last the points
-of white chalk pits upon hills a day&#8217;s ride away
-showed clearly under the sunlight, and a man could
-see the trees even upon the horizon line.</p>
-
-<p>The water that one passed in the long ride
-seemed to grow clearer, and the woods to have more
-echoes. Then, whatever in the mind turned to
-memory, as the mind of all men does in Spring
-when they have done with their own springtime,
-turned to memory transformed and was full of
-visions; and whatever of the mind turned to the
-future, as most of the mind must do in men of any
-age when the vigour of the Almighty is abroad,
-looked at it through a veil which was magical.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed as though under the growing sunlight
-the change that had come, the touch, the spell, was
-a thing appreciable in moments of time and growing
-as one watched. You would have said that all the
-forest was wakening. The flowers you would have
-said, and especially the daffodils, had just broken<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">[219]</a></span>
-from the bud, and evergreens that had been in leaf
-all winter you would have said had somehow put on
-a new green. The movement of the wind in the
-branches of the beeches did not seem to move them
-but to find a movement responding to its own, and
-the colour of those branches against the blue sky
-and touched by the sun as it grew low was full
-of vivid promise. If it be not too much to ascribe a
-mood to all inanimate and animate things, there
-was a mood about one which was a complete forgetfulness
-of decay, a sort of trampling upon it, a rising
-out of it, and a using of it into life: a using of it up
-into life.</p>
-
-<p>Over three ridges of land to the southward lay the
-sea. When the sea is in movement before a clear
-wind that is not a storm, and under a clear, sharp
-sky, its movement may be perceived for miles and
-miles. No one can see the waves, but the distant
-belt is shot with a pattern which one feels so far as
-the eye commands it, and that belt is alive, and it is
-a moving thing. Moreover, the high sea downs,
-the great chalk lifts of that shore of the world, are
-different on such days from what they are upon any
-others, and receive life from the sea that made them.
-All that world upon that morning you would have
-said was not only receiving gifts from the sea, but
-was itself apparently born from the sea, lived by the
-air of it, and had been engendered in the depths of
-it before ever men were on earth.</p>
-
-<p>And of the sea also were the little horses.</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">[220]</a></span>When the Spring took them they would suddenly
-gallop forward without any purpose beyond their
-wanton pleasure, and arch their necks towards the
-ground, and bound as a wave bounds; or they would
-go together, first one starting, then a comrade, then
-half a dozen of the herd, with a short but easy gait
-which exactly recalled the movement of salt water
-under the call of the wind: the movement of salt
-water where the deeps are, following and following
-and following, before it rises to break upon the shallows,
-or to turn back on its course along the eddies
-of hidden streams.</p>
-
-<p>Anyone seeing the little horses was ready to
-believe that they had come from the Channel and
-not from the land at all, but that divine mares
-had bred them which moved over the tops of the
-waves, and that their sires flew invisibly along with
-the south-west wind. The heather bent a little
-beneath their rapid raids, and when they swerved,
-halted, and lifted up their heads to let the breeze
-blow out their manes, then they became, even
-more thoroughly than before, things of the Channel
-and of the bowling air. They were full of
-gladness.</p>
-
-<p>The little horses did not know that they were
-owned by men; and if now and then men gave
-them food in the cold weather, or now and then
-saw to the housing of them, or now and then marked
-them with a mark, a short, forgotten pain, all these
-things they took like any other brief and passing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">[221]</a></span>
-accidents of fate. It was not man that had made
-their home, nor man that ordered the things they
-saw and used. They had not in anything about
-them that look which animals have when they have
-learned that man is of all things upon earth the
-fullest of sorrow, nor that which beasts have, when
-they have seen in man, without understanding it, what
-a principal poet has called &#8220;the hideous secret of
-his mirth&#8221;&mdash;though &#8220;hideous&#8221; is an unfair word,
-for the secret sorrow of man is closely allied with
-something Divine in his destiny. Such beasts as
-are continually the companions of our souls and of
-whom another poet has said that they are &#8220;subject
-and dear to man,&#8221; take from him invariably something
-of his foreknowledge of death. And you may
-see in the patient oxen of the mountains and even
-in the herded sheep of the Downs something of
-man&#8217;s burden as they take their lives along. But
-most you will see what price is paid by those who
-accompany us when you watch dogs and find that,
-apart from the body, they can suffer, as we can
-suffer, and sometimes suffer to the death. So dogs
-that have known men know loneliness also, and
-make, as men make, for distant lights at night, and
-are not happy without living homes. Two things
-only they have not, which are speech and laughter.
-And those animals which men deal with continually
-come also into an easy or an uneasy subservience to
-him, and you may note their hesitation where there
-is an unaccustomed duty, and you may note their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">[222]</a></span>
-beginnings of panic when men are not there to
-decide some difficult thing for them.</p>
-
-<p>These little horses of which I write had as yet
-known none of these things, and anyone who
-looked at them closely could see what it was that
-the saints meant by &#8220;innocence in Nature.&#8221; There
-was no evil in them at all, and the good that was
-in them was a simple good, of the earth and of the
-place in which they lived. There, away northward,
-it was the Downs; eastward and westward, the
-Forest; southward, under the sunlight, the Sea.
-That was all the little horses knew; and the man
-who in such a place and at that moment in the
-springtime could remember nothing more was very
-much more blessed than any other of his kind.
-But later he must remember Acheron; and what he
-will bear beyond Acheron&mdash;the consequence of
-things done.</p>
-
-<p>Not so the Little Horses.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">[223]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On Streams and Rivers<img src="images/i_graphic3.jpg" alt="" width="225" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THERE is a pass called the Bon Agua, and also
-Bon Aigo, which leads from the heights of the
-Catalans to those other heights of Aragon, or as
-some would say of Bearn, for the pass is from the
-south of the mountains to the north; on the northern
-side one knows why it is called Bon Agua, because
-one sees many thousands of feet below one the little
-bracelet, the little chain, of the young Garonne.</p>
-
-<p>Do not mistake me, there are two sources of the
-Garonne. That which is most famous does the most
-famous thing; for it rises on the far side of the
-mountains and it plunges into a pond, quite a little
-pond. Then it cascades underground, through dark
-passages of which no one knows anything, and
-comes out beyond the main chain of the hills to
-join its other quieter sister from the Bon Agua.
-This startling source, I say, is the most famous,
-because it does the most startling things, though
-not more wonderful than what a Yorkshire river
-does, for there is a Yorkshire river in the West
-Riding which runs into the pond called Mallam
-Tarn and reappears afterwards beyond a rocky
-ridge; but this Garonne of which I speak goes
-right under high and silent mountains where there<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">[224]</a></span>
-are no men, and this is a feat performed, I think, by
-no other river, not even by the Rhone, which also is
-lost for the time underground (though few people
-know it), nor by the River Mole, which plays at
-being lost and never quite is, and certainly has not
-the courage to attempt the tunnelling of any hill,
-though it is proud to be called the &#8220;snouzling
-Mole,&#8221; which, by the way, it was first called in the
-year 1903&mdash;but I digress, and I must return to the
-Bon Agua.</p>
-
-<p>Well, then, there I say under the Bon Agua runs
-the quieter of the two streams which unite in the
-Val D&#8217;Aran to form the Garonne, and there it was
-that a companion of mine seeing that little stream
-looked at it with profound sadness, and said&mdash;the
-things which shall be the text of what I have to say
-here. For he said:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Poor little Garonne! Innocent and lovely little
-Garonne! I have never seen a stream so small, nor
-so pure, nor so young, nor so far from men. But
-you are on your way to things you do not know.
-For first of all you will join that boasting sister of
-yours which has come from under the hills, and can
-talk of nothing else; and then you will go past the
-King&#8217;s Bridge being no longer among kind and
-silent Spaniards, and you will have entered the
-territory of the Republic which is fierce and evil,
-and you will grow greater and wider and not more
-happy until you will come to the perfectly detestable
-town of Toulouse.... Thence after you will<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">[225]</a></span>
-have no pleasure, but only a certain grandeur to be
-passing through the Gascon fields, and all your
-desire will be for the sea in which at last you shall
-merge and be lost. And so strong will be your
-desire for that dissolution that you will be willing
-to mix your name with another name, to marry the
-Dordogne, and then you will die and you will be
-glad of it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>This is the way my friend spoke to the Garonne
-when he saw it first rising in the hills. He did not
-sing it as he might have sung it, the song it best
-likes to hear, which is called, &#8220;Had the Garonne
-but wished!&#8221; Nor did he try to console it with
-any flap-doodle about the common lot of rivers,
-knowing well that some rivers were happier and
-some less happy. But he spoke to the Garonne as
-to something that could hear and know. Now this
-is what men have always done to rivers.</p>
-
-<p>It is in this way that rivers have acquired names,
-not only among men but among gods; and it is in
-this way that they convey a fate to the countrysides
-of which they are the souls.</p>
-
-<p>There is no country of which this is more true
-than it is true of England. Englishmen of this
-time&mdash;or at least of the time just past&mdash;perpetually
-and rightly complained that somehow or other they
-missed themselves. Some took refuge in a dream
-of a sort of a mystical England which was not
-there. Others reposed in the idea of an older
-England which may once have been; others, more<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">[226]</a></span>
-foolish, hoped to find England again in something
-overseas. None of these would have suffered their
-error had they learnt England down English waters,
-seeing the great memories of England reflected in
-the English rivers, and meeting them in the silence
-and the perfection of the streams. But our roads
-first, and then our railways, our commerce which is
-from ports, and which must go direct towards them,
-our life, which is now in vast cities independent of
-streams, has made us neglect these things.</p>
-
-<p>Consider such a list as this: Arundel when you see
-it as you come up Arun on the full flood tide. Chichester
-as you see it on the flood tide from Chichester
-harbour. Durham as you see it coming down under
-that cliff with the Cathedral as massive as the
-rock. Chester as you see it, sailing up the Dee
-with a light north wind from the sea. Gloucester as
-you see it from the Severn. Or Winchester as
-you pull, if you can pull, or paddle which is easier,
-against the clear and violent thrust of the Itchin.
-Canterbury as you see it from above or from below,
-upon the easy water of the Stour; and Lincoln as
-you see it from its little ditch&mdash;and I wonder how
-many men now journey up in any fashion from
-Boston! So Norwich from the Yare. So Bramber
-for that matter from a place where the Adur grows
-narrow; and what a sight Bramber must have been
-when the Castle stood whole upon the hill, physically
-blocking the advance into the Weald.</p>
-
-<p>There is only one stream left, the Thames, which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">[227]</a></span>
-we still know, and we very rightly know it; but we
-love it only for giving us one experience which we
-might, if we chose, repeat up and down England
-everywhere. There is no country in the world like
-this for rivers. The tide pushes up them to the
-very Midlands, from every sea. There is nothing
-of the history of England but is on a river, and
-as England is an island of birds, so is it more truly
-an island of rivers. Consider the River Eden, which
-is so difficult to descend; the Wiltshire Avon and
-the Hampshire Avon, and those little branch
-streams the Thame, the Cherwell, and the Evenlode.</p>
-
-<p>Best of all, I think, as a memory or an experience
-is the Ouse, which runs from Bedford to the Wash,
-and has upon it the astonishing monument of Ely.
-Here is a river which no one can descend without
-feeling as he descends it the change of English
-provinces from the Midlands to the sea. He should
-start at Bedford; then he will pass through fields
-where tall elms give to the plains something more
-than could be given them by distant hills. The river
-runs between banks of deep grass in summer. It is
-contented everywhere; and as you go you are in
-the middle of a thousand years. You pass villages
-that have not changed; you carry your boat over
-weirs where there are mills, always shaded by large
-trees. Once in a day, at the most, you find an
-unchanging town: Huntingdon is such an one, or
-St. Ives, where I do believe the people are kinder<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">[228]</a></span>
-than in any other town. Then, as you still go on,
-the land takes on another character. You begin to
-know that England is not only rich and full of fields
-but also was made by the sea. For you come to
-great flats&mdash;and that rather suddenly&mdash;where, as at
-sea, the sky is your contemplation. You notice the
-light, the colour, and the shapes of clouds. The
-birds that wheel and scream over these spaces seem
-to be sea birds. You expect at any moment to hear
-beyond the dead line of the horizon the sound of
-surf and to see the glint of live water. Above such
-a waste rises, on what is called &#8220;an island,&#8221; and is
-in truth &#8220;an island,&#8221; the superb strength of Ely.</p>
-
-<p>No one has seen Ely who has not seen it from the
-Ouse. It is a hill upon a hill, and now permanently
-present in the midst of loneliness. It is something
-made with a framework all around of accidental
-marsh and emptiness. Thenceafter the Ouse goes
-on. You get through and down the deep step of a
-lock, and beyond it is the salt water and busy
-energy that comes and goes from the sea. Very
-deep banks, alive with the salt and the swirl of the
-tide, shut in the boat for miles, and there are very
-high bridges uniting village to village above one, till
-at last the whole thing broadens, and one sees under
-the sunlight the roofs and the spars of King&#8217;s Lynn;
-and, if one has no misadventure, one ends the journey
-at some narrow quay at a narrow lane of that
-delightful port and town.</p>
-
-<p>There is one English river out of at least thirty<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">[229]</a></span>
-others. I wish that all were known! That journey
-down the Ouse is three days&#8217; journey&mdash;but it is such
-a slice of time and character and history as teaches
-you most you need know upon this Island. Only I
-warn anyone attempting it, let the boat be light and
-let it be shallow, and be ready to sleep in it; it is
-only thus that you can know an English river, and
-if you can draw, why it will be a greater pleasure.
-It is very cheap.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">[230]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On Two Manuals<img src="images/i_graphic4.jpg" alt="" width="300" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">FLAUBERT, I believe, designed once to publish
-a Dictionary of Errors, and would actually have
-set about it had he not found the subject growing
-much too vast for any human pen. He also designed
-a reference book, or rather anthology, of follies,
-stupidities, rash judgments, and absurdities, but never
-lived to complete this great task. Now, reading this,
-I have wondered whether two little books might not
-be written which should prove useful severally to
-the undergraduate and to the politician. I do not
-say to the schoolboy, for no book yet written ever
-was or ever will be useful to him. But for the undergraduate
-a useful book might be written which I
-shall presently describe, and which would make a
-sort of foundation for all his studies. So also for the
-politician a second book might be written which
-should be of the greatest service. Let me now
-describe these two books. Perhaps among those who
-read this there will be so many men of leisure and
-learning as can in combination give the world the
-volumes I imagine.</p>
-
-<p>The first book should be called &#8220;Modern Thought,&#8221;
-and in this, without praise or blame and without any
-wandering into metaphysics or religion, the young
-fellow should be plainly taught to distinguish the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">[231]</a></span>
-certain from the uncertain. I know of nothing in
-which academic training just now is more at fault.
-That training seems to consist in two branches.
-First, the setting down of a very great number of
-things each equally certain with the last and all
-forming together one huge amorphic body or lump
-of assertion; second, a whole sheaf of theories, the
-whole fun of which consists in the fact that no one
-of them can positively be proved but that all are
-guesswork. These theories change from year to year,
-and while they are defended with a passion astonishing
-to those who live in a larger world, there is no
-pretence that they are true. The whole business
-of them is quite obviously a game. Consider, for
-instance, history. A lad is taught that William the
-Conqueror won at Hastings in 1066; that the opinion
-of the English people was behind the little wealthy
-clique that put an end to the Stuarts; that London
-heartily sympathised with the seven Bishops; that
-all Parliamentary institutions grew up on the soil of
-this island in the thirteenth century from Saxon
-origins; and that four people called Hengist, and
-Horsa, and Aella, and Cerdic led a great number of
-Germans to various points of this Island, killed the
-people living there and put the Germans in their
-stead. Now of these assertions, all of which he is to
-receive with equal certitude, all dogmatically affirmed,
-all taught to him as brute bits of truth&mdash;some, as
-that about Hastings, are rigidly true; some, such as
-the attitude of London towards the seven Bishops,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">[232]</a></span>
-are morally certain (though hardly capable of definite
-proof); some, as the weight of public opinion behind
-the Whigs, debatable though probable; some, like
-the Hengist and Horsa business, almost certainly
-mere legends&mdash;and so forth. It is to be noted that,
-if you are to teach at all, you must always have in
-your teaching some admixture of this error. No one
-can exactly balance the degree of probability attaching
-to each separate statement; there is no time to
-array all the evidence, and if there were, the mind
-of the student could not carry it. Each teacher,
-moreover, will have a scheme of values somewhat
-different from his neighbour&#8217;s; but even if some
-admixture of the error I speak of be necessary, at
-least let the student be warned that it exists. For
-if he is not so warned one of two things will happen:
-either he will believe all he is told, with the most
-appalling results to himself, and, should he later
-become powerful, to the whole nation (we are seeing
-something of that in economics to-day), or he will
-(as the cleverer undergraduate usually does) become
-sceptical of all he hears; he will begin to wonder,
-having once found his teacher out in, let us say, the
-absurdity of pretending that Parliamentary institutions
-were peculiar to Britain, whether the Battle of
-Hastings were really fought in 1066 or no. When
-he has discovered, as any boy of education, travel,
-and common sense will discover, that the Normans
-were not Scandinavians, but Frenchmen, he will be
-led to reason that perhaps William the Conqueror<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">[233]</a></span>
-never existed at all. This mood of universal scepticism
-is even more dangerous than that of bovine
-assurance, more dangerous to character, that is, and
-more dissolving of national strength.</p>
-
-<p>As with the assertions so with the theories. There
-was a theory, for instance, that a tenure of land
-existed in ancient England by which this land was
-the common property of all, and was called the land
-of the &#8220;folk.&#8221; Then this theory burst, and another
-theory swelled, which was that the &#8220;folk land&#8221;
-meant the land held by customary right as distinguished
-from land held by charter. Again, there
-was a theory that an original Saxon tendency to
-breed large landowners had gradually prevailed over
-feudal tenure. This theory burst, and another theory
-swelled, which was that the large units of land grew
-up by an accidental interpretation of Roman law.</p>
-
-<p>In the book I propose all these theories could be
-very simply dealt with. The student should be warned
-that they are theories, and theories only, that their
-whole point and value is that they are not susceptible
-to positive proof; that what makes them
-amusing and interesting is the certitude that one
-can go on having a good quarrel about them, and
-the inner faith that when one is tired of them one
-can drop them without regret. Older men know
-this, but young men often do not, and they will take
-a theory in the Academies and make a friend of it,
-and at last, as it were, another self, and clasp it
-close to their souls and intertwine themselves with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">[234]</a></span>
-it, only to find towards thirty that they have been
-hugging a shade.</p>
-
-<p>So much, then, for this first book. It would not
-need to be more than a little pocket volume of fifty
-or sixty pages, and a young man should have it to
-refer to at any moment of his studies. One of its
-maxims would be to look up the original evidence
-upon which anything he was told was based. Another
-rule he would find in it would be to underline all
-such words as &#8220;seems,&#8221; &#8220;probably,&#8221; and so forth,
-and watch in his books the way in which they
-gradually turn, as the argument proceeds, into &#8220;is&#8221;
-and &#8220;certainly.&#8221; He would also be warned before
-reading the work of any authority to remember that
-that authority was a human being, to look up his
-biography, if possible to meet him personally, to
-find out what general knowledge he had and what
-impression he made upon the casual man that met
-him. How many men have written histories of a
-campaign and yet have been proved at a dinner-table
-ignorant of the range of artillery during their
-period! How many men have learnedly criticised
-the style of Rousseau upon a knowledge of French
-very much inferior to that of most governesses!
-I at Oxford knew a don who exposed and ridiculed
-the legend of the Girondins, but throughout his
-remarks pronounced their title with a hard <i>g</i>.</p>
-
-<p>As for the politicians, their little guide-book
-through life should be of another sort. In this the
-first and most valuable part would deal with political<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">[235]</a></span>
-judgment and prophecy. The utmost care
-would be taken by the author to show how valueless
-is any determination of the future, and how crass
-the mind which predicts with confidence. Since so
-very few men happen to have made lucky shots, it
-would be the peculiar care of the author in a loving
-manner to collect all the follies and misjudgments
-which these same men had made upon other grave
-matters. And, in general, the reader would be left
-very certain that every pompous prophecy he heard
-was a piece of folly. Next in the book would come
-examples of all that political men have said and
-done which they most particularly desired to have
-forgotten. This would serve a twofold purpose, for
-first it would amuse and instruct the politician as
-he read it, since the misfortunes of others are delightful
-to human kind, and, secondly, it would
-show him that he could not himself trust to the
-effect of time, and that his natural desire to turn
-his coat or to pretend to some policy he did not
-understand would at last be judged as it deserved.
-In the third and final portion of the book the politician
-would be given a list of interesting truths,
-with regard to the matter of his trade. It would
-be proved to him in a few sentences that his decisions
-depend upon various difficult branches of
-study, and by a few suggested questions he would
-be convinced of his ignorance therein. The shortness
-of human life would be insisted upon, with
-examples showing how a man having painfully<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">[236]</a></span>
-reached power was stricken with paralysis or died
-in torment. The ludicrous miscarriage of great
-plans would be laid before him, and, better still,
-the proof that the most successful adventures had
-proceeded almost entirely from chance, and surprised
-no one more than their authors.</p>
-
-<p>At the end of the book would be a certain number
-of coupons permitting the reader to travel to
-many places which politicians commonly ignore, and
-there would be a list of the sights that he should
-see. As, for instance, the troops of such and such
-a nation upon the march, the artillery of such
-another at firing practice, and the opinion expressed
-by the populace in taverns in such and such a town.
-Then at the end would come a number of common
-phrases such as <i>cui bono</i>, <i>persona grata</i>, <i>toujours perdrix</i>,
-<i>double entendre</i>, <i>sturm und drang</i>, etc., with their
-English equivalents, if any, and their approximate
-meaning, when they possess a meaning. Upon the
-last page would be a list of the duties of a Christian
-man and a short guide to general conduct in conversation
-with the rich.</p>
-
-<p>Armed with these manuals, the youth and manhood
-of a nation would at once and vastly change. You
-would find young men recently proceeded from the
-University filled with laudable doubts arising from
-the vastness of God&#8217;s scheme, and yet modestly
-secure in certain essential truths such as their own
-existence and that of an objective universe, the
-voice of conscience, and the difference between right<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">[237]</a></span>
-and wrong. While among those of more mature
-years, who were controlling the energies of the
-State, there would appear an exact observance of
-real things, an admitted inability to know what
-would happen fifty or even twenty years hence, and
-a habit of using plain language which they and their
-audience could easily understand; of using such
-language tersely, and occasionally with conviction.</p>
-
-<p>But this revolution will not take place. The
-two books of which I speak will not be written.
-And if anyone doubts this, let him sit down and try
-to frame the scheme of one, and he will soon see
-that it is beyond any man&#8217;s power.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">[238]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On Fantastic Books<img src="images/i_graphic4.jpg" alt="" width="300" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THERE has fallen upon criticism since perhaps a
-century ago, and with increasing weight, a sort
-of gravity which is in great danger of becoming
-tomfoolery at last: as all gravity is in danger of
-becoming.</p>
-
-<p>No one dares to discuss all that lighter thing
-which is the penumbra of letters, and, what is more,
-no man of letters dares to whisper that letters
-themselves are not often much more than a pastime
-to the reader, and are only very rarely upon a level
-with good and serious speculation: never upon a
-level with philosophy: still less upon a level with
-religion. It is perhaps even a mark of the eclipse
-of religion when any department of mere intellectual
-effort can raise itself as high as literature
-has raised itself in its own eyes; and since all
-expression now (or nearly all) is through the pen
-literature thus suffering from pride can impose its
-pride upon the world.</p>
-
-<p>Two things alone correct this pride: first, that
-those who practise the trade of literature starve if
-they are austere or run into debt if they are not;
-secondly, that now and then one of the inner circle
-gives the thing away&mdash;for instance, Mr. Andrew<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">[239]</a></span>
-Lang in his excellent and never-to-be-forgotten
-remarks delivered only last year at the dinner
-of the Royal Literary Fund. This Member of our
-Union said (with how much truth!) that the writers
-of stories should remember they were writers
-of stories and not teachers and preachers. And
-the same might be said to others of the Craft.
-If a man has had granted to him by the Higher
-Powers a jolly little lyric, why, that is a jolly little
-lyric. He should bow and scrape to those who
-gave it to him and hand it on to his fellow-men for
-a dollar. But it does not make him a god, and if it
-gives him so much as a swelled head it makes him
-intolerably wearisome. More tolerable are the
-victors of campaigns discussing at table their successes
-in the field than poets who forget their
-Muse: for to their Muse alone, or to those who
-sent her, do they owe what they are, as may very
-clearly be seen in the case of those whose Muse
-has deserted them and flown again up to her native
-heaven; nor is any case more distressing than
-that of &mdash;&mdash;.</p>
-
-<p>All of which leads me to the Fantastic Books.
-One, two, a dozen at the most, in all the history of
-the world have ranked with the greatest. Rabelais
-is upon the summit, and the <i>Sentimental Journey</i>
-will live for some hundreds of years, but how many
-others are there which men remember? There is
-a sort of conspiracy against them led by the few
-intelligent vicious in league with the numerous<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">[240]</a></span>
-and virtuous fools; and thus the salt of the Fantastic
-Books, which is as good as the salt of the sea, is
-lost to the most of mankind.</p>
-
-<p>Men sit in front of the writers of Fantastic Books
-fair and squarely with their hands on their knees,
-their eyes set, their mouths glum, their souls determined,
-and say:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Come now, Fantastic Book, are you serious or
-are you not serious?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And when the Fantastic Book answers &#8220;I am
-both.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Then the man gets up with a sigh and concludes
-that it is neither. Yet the Fantastic Book was
-right, and if people were only wise they would salt
-all their libraries with Fantastic Books.</p>
-
-<p>Note that the Fantastic Books are not of necessity
-jocose books or ribald books, nor even extravagant
-books. If I had meant to write about
-extravagant books, <i>qu</i> extravagant, you may be
-certain I should have chosen that word. Rabelais
-is extravagant and so is Sterne, but not on account
-of their extravagance are they fantastic. The note
-of the Fantastic Book is an easy escape from the
-world. It is not imagination, though imagination
-is a necessary spring to it: it is that faculty by
-which the mind travels, as it reads, whether through
-space or through time or through <i>quality</i>. A book is
-a Fantastic Book, though time and space be commonplace
-enough, though the time be to-day and the
-place Camberwell, if only the mind perpetually<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_241" id="Page_241">[241]</a></span>
-travels, seeing one after another unexpected things
-in the consequence of human action or in the juxtaposition
-of emotions.</p>
-
-<p>There is a category of Fantastic Books most
-delightful, and never to my thinking overdone,
-which deals with journeys to worlds beyond the
-earth. I confess that I care nothing whether they
-are well written or ill written; so long as they are
-written in any language that I can understand I
-will read them; and to day as I write I have before
-me a notable collection of such, every one of which
-I have read over and over again. I remember one
-called the <i>Anglo-Saxon Conquest of the Solar System</i>
-or words to that effect; another of a noble kind,
-called <i>Thuka of the Moon</i>. I only mention the two
-together by way of contrast; and I remember one
-in which somebody or other went to Mars and went
-mad, but I forget the title. Be they as well written
-as the <i>First Men in the Moon</i>, which is or will be a
-classic, or as ill written as a book which I may not
-mention because there is a law forbidding any one
-to tell unpleasant truths, so long as they concern
-voyages to the Planets they are worth reading.</p>
-
-<p>Then, also, there is the future. The <i>Time Machine</i>
-is, perhaps, the chief of them; but writers who
-travel into the future, good or bad, are all delightful.</p>
-
-<p>You may say that they are also always a little
-boring because they always try to teach a lesson or
-to prophesy. That is true, but when you have comforted
-yourself with the firm conviction that prophecies<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_242" id="Page_242">[242]</a></span>
-of this kind are invariably and wildly wrong the
-disturbance which they cause in your mind will disappear.
-I have among my most treasured books one
-of the early nineteenth century, called <i>Revelations
-of the Dead Alive</i>, in which the end of our age and
-its opinions upon <i>that</i> age are presented, and it is all
-wrong! But it is very entertaining all the same.
-Most ridiculous but not least entertaining of such
-books are the Socialist books, the books showing
-humanity in the future all Socialist and going on
-like sticks. There is, indeed, another type of mournful
-Socialist book much more real and much more
-troubling, in which Socialism has failed, and the
-mass of men go on like slaves; but no matter. A
-prophecy (when it is scientific) is always and invariably
-absolutely and totally wrong:&mdash;and a great
-comfort it is to remember <i>that</i>!</p>
-
-<p>Yet another sort of Fantastic Book is your Journey
-to Hell or to Heaven. There is one I have read and
-re-read. It is called <i>The Outer Darkness</i>. I shall
-never cease to read it. It is a journey to a sort of
-Hell, and these are as a rule more entertaining than
-the Heavenly journey, though why I cannot tell.
-Does the same hold true of Dante?</p>
-
-<p>Lastly, and much the most rare and much the
-most valued of all are the books which are fantastic,
-though they cling to the present and to things
-known. In these I would include imaginary people
-in the Islands and in the Arctic, and even those
-which introduce half-rational beasts, for such books<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_243" id="Page_243">[243]</a></span>
-depend for their character not upon the matter of the
-fantasy, but upon the manner. There is a book
-called <i>Ninety North</i>, for instance, which is all about
-a race of people at the North Pole, but the power
-of the book resides not in the distance of the scene,
-but in the vision of the writer and in the little irony
-that trickles down every page.</p>
-
-<p>Who collects them or preserves them&mdash;the Fantastic
-Books? No one, I think. They are not catalogued
-under a separate Heading. They puzzle the
-writers of Indices; they bewilder Librarians. They
-must be grouted out of the mass of rubbish as Pigs
-in the Perigord grout out truffles. There is no
-other way.</p>
-
-<p>Also, in the Perigord, truffles are hunted with
-Hounds.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_244" id="Page_244">[244]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Unfortunate Man<img src="images/i_graphic3.jpg" alt="" width="225" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">TO all those who doubt the power of chance in
-human affairs; to all Stoics, Empiricists, Monists,
-Determinists, and all men whatsoever that
-terminate in this fashion, Greeting: Read what
-follows:</p>
-
-<p>There was a man I used to know whose business
-it was to succeed in life, and who had made a profession
-of this from the age of nineteen. His father
-had left him a fortune of about 600 a year, which
-he still possesses, but, with that exception, he has
-been made by the gods a sort of puffball for their
-amusement, the sort of thing they throw about the
-room. It was before his father&#8217;s death that a determination
-was taken to make him the land agent at
-the house of a cousin, who would give him a good
-salary, and it was arranged, as is the custom in that
-trade, that he should do nothing in return but dine,
-smoke, and ride about. The next step was easy.
-He would be put into Parliament, and then, by
-quiet, effective speaking and continual voting, he
-would become a statesman, and so grow more and
-more famous, and succeed more and more, and
-marry into the fringes of one of the great families,
-and then die.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_245" id="Page_245">[245]</a></span>To this happy prospect was his future turned
-when he set out, not upon the old mare but upon
-the new Arab which his father had foolishly bought
-as an experiment, to visit his cousin&#8217;s home and to
-make the last arrangements. And note in what
-follows that every step in the success-business came
-off, and yet somehow the sum total was disappointing,
-and at the present moment one can very
-definitely say that he has not succeeded.</p>
-
-<p>He set out, I say, upon the new Arab, going
-gently along the sunken road that leads to the
-Downs, when a man carrying a faggot at the end
-of a pitchfork seemed to that stupid beast a preternatural
-apparition, and it shied forward and sideways
-like a knight&#8217;s move, so that the Unfortunate
-Man fell off heavily and hurt himself dreadfully.
-When the Arab had done this it stood with its
-beautiful tail arched out, and its beautiful neck arched
-also, looking most pitifully at its fallen rider, and
-with a sadness in its eye like that of the horse
-in the Heliodorus. The Unfortunate Man got on
-again, feeling but a slight pain in the right
-shoulder. But what I would particularly have you
-know is this: that the pain has never wholly disappeared,
-and is perhaps a little worse now after
-twenty years than it has been at any previous time.
-Moreover, he has spent quite 350 in trying to
-have it cured, and he has gone to foreign watering-places,
-and has learnt all manner of names, how
-that according to one man it is rheumatism, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_246" id="Page_246">[246]</a></span>
-according to another it is suppressed gout, and
-according to another a lesion. But the point to him
-is the pain, and this endures.</p>
-
-<p>Well, then, he rode over the Down and came out
-through the Combe to his cousin&#8217;s house. The gate
-out of the field into the park was shut, and as he
-leaned over to open it he dropped his crop. I am
-ashamed to say that&mdash;it was the only act of the kind
-in his career, but men who desire to succeed ought
-not to act in this fashion&mdash;he did not get down to
-pick it up because he was afraid that if he did he
-might not be able to get on to the horse again.
-With infinite trouble, leaning right down over the
-horse&#8217;s neck, he managed to open the gate with his
-hands, but in doing so he burst his collar, and he
-had to keep it more or less in place by putting
-down his chin in a ridiculous and affected attitude.
-His hopes of making a fine entry at a pretty
-ambling trot, that perhaps his cousin would be
-watching from the window, were already sufficiently
-spoilt by the necessity he was under of keeping his
-collar thus, when the accursed animal bolted, and
-with the speed of lightning passed directly in front
-of a little lawn where his cousin, his cousin&#8217;s wife,
-and their little child were seated admiring the
-summer&#8217;s day. It was not until the horse had taken
-him nearly half a mile away that he got him right
-again, and so returned hot, dishevelled, and very
-miserable.</p>
-
-<p>But they received him kindly, and his cousin&#8217;s<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_247" id="Page_247">[247]</a></span>
-wife, who was a most motherly woman, put him
-as best she could at his ease. She even got him
-another collar, knowing how terrible is the state of
-the soul when the collar is burst in company. And
-he sat down with them to make friends and discuss
-the future. He had always heard that among the
-chief avenues to success is to play with and be kind
-to the children of the Great, so he smiled in a
-winning manner at his cousin&#8217;s little boy, and
-stretching out his arms took the child playfully by
-the hand. A piercing scream and a sharp kick
-upon the shin simultaneously informed him that he
-had fallen into yet another misfortune, and the boy&#8217;s
-mother, though she was kindness itself, was startled
-into speaking to him very sharply, and telling him
-that the poor lad suffered from a deeply cut finger
-which was then but slowly healing. He made
-his apologies in a nervous but sincere manner, and
-in doing so was awkward enough to upset the little
-table which they had carried out upon the lawn,
-and upon which had been set the cups and saucers
-for tea. The whole thing was exceedingly annoying.</p>
-
-<p>In this way did the Unfortunate Man enter the
-great arena of modern political life.</p>
-
-<p>You must not imagine that he failed to obtain
-the sinecure which his father had sent him to
-secure. As I have already said, the failure of the
-Unfortunate Man was not a failure in major plans
-but in details. There may have been some to
-whom his career appeared enviable or even glorious,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_248" id="Page_248">[248]</a></span>
-but Fate always watched him in a merry mood, and
-he was destined to suffer an interior misery which
-never failed to be sharpened and enlivened by the
-innumerable accidents of life.</p>
-
-<p>He obtained for his cousin from the North of
-Scotland a man of sterling capacity, whose methods
-of agriculture had more than doubled the income of
-a previous employer; but as luck would have it this
-fellow, whose knowledge of farming was quite
-amazing, was not honest, and after some few months
-he had absconded with a considerable sum of money.
-A well which he had advised to be dug failed to find
-water for some two hundred feet, and then after all
-that expense fell in. He lamed one of his cousin&#8217;s
-best horses by no fault of his own; the animal trod
-upon a hidden spike of wood and had to be shot;
-and in doing his duty by upbraiding a very frousty
-old man who was plunging about recklessly just
-where a lot of she (or hen) pheasants were sitting on
-their eggs he mortally offended the chief landowner
-of the neighbourhood, who was none other than the
-frousty old man himself, and who was tramping
-across the brushwood to see his cousin upon most
-important matters. It was therefore in a condition
-of despair that his cousin finally financed him for
-Parliament. The constituency which he bought
-after some negotiations was a corrupt seaport upon
-the coast of Rutlandshire (here is no libel!). He
-was at first assured that there would be no opposition,
-and acting upon this assurance took the one<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_249" id="Page_249">[249]</a></span>
-brief holiday which he had allowed himself for five
-years. The doctor, who was anxious about his
-nerves, recommended a sea voyage of a week upon
-a ship without wireless apparatus. He landed in
-Jamaica to receive a telegram which informed him
-that a local gentleman of vast influence, eccentric,
-and the chief landowner in the constituency, had
-determined to run against him, and which implored
-him to cable a considerable sum of money, though
-no such sum was at his disposal.</p>
-
-<p>In the earthquake the next day he luckily escaped
-from bodily injury, but his nerves were terribly
-shaken. Thenceforward he suffered from little
-tricks of grimace which were to him infinitely
-painful, but to others always a source of secret,
-sometimes of open, merriment. He returned and
-fought the election. He was elected by a majority
-of 231, but not until he had been twice blackmailed,
-and had upon at least three occasions given
-money to men who afterwards turned out to have
-no vote. I may say, to put the matter briefly, that
-he retained the seat uninterruptedly until the last
-election, but always by tiny majorities at the expense
-of infinite energy, sweating blood, as it were, with
-anxiety at every poll, and this although he was
-opposed by the most various people. It was Fate!</p>
-
-<p>He spoke frequently in the House of Commons,
-and always unsuccessfully, until one day a quite unexpected
-accident of war in a foreign country gave
-him his opportunity. It so happened that the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_250" id="Page_250">[250]</a></span>
-Unfortunate Man knew all about this country; he
-had read every book published upon it; it was the
-one thing upon which he was an authority. And
-ridiculous as had been his numerous efforts to engage
-the attention of the august assembly, upon this
-matter at least his judgment was eagerly expected.
-The greatest courtesy was shown him, the Government
-arranged that he should speak at the most
-telling time of the debate, and when he rose it was
-before a full House, strained to an eager attention.</p>
-
-<p>He struck an attitude at once impressive and
-refined, stretched forth his hand in a manner that
-gave promise of much to come, and was suddenly
-seized with an immoderate fit of coughing. An
-aged gentleman, a wool merchant by profession, who
-sat immediately behind him, thought to do a kindly
-thing by slapping him upon the back, being ignorant
-of that Shoulder Trouble with which the jolly
-reader is acquainted. And the Unfortunate Man,
-in the midst of his paroxysm of coughing, could not
-restrain a loud cry of anguish. Confused interruptions,
-rising to a roar of protest, prevented him
-from going further, and he was so imprudent, or
-rather so wretchedly unlucky, as to be stung into
-a violent expression of opinion directed towards
-another member sitting upon his immediate left, a
-moneylender by trade and very sensitive. This
-fellow alone had heard the highly objectionable
-word which the Unfortunate Man had let drop. It
-is a word very commonly used by gentlemen in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_251" id="Page_251">[251]</a></span>
-privacy, but rare, indeed, or rather wholly unused
-on the public occasions of our dignified political life.
-In vain did those about the moneylender pull at his
-skirts and implore him not to rise. He was white
-with passion. He rose and appealed to the Chair.
-He reiterated the offensive expression in the clearest
-and most articulate fashion, apologising to the horrified
-assembly for having to sully the air it breathed
-by the necessary repetition of so abominable an
-epithet, and he demanded the correction of the
-monster in human form who had descended to use it.
-The reprimand which the Unfortunate Man received
-from the Chair was lengthy and severe, and from
-that day forward he determined that the many
-omens of ill-fortune which had marked his life had
-reached their turn. He was too proud to resign,
-but his caucus, in spite of further considerable gifts
-of money, indignantly repudiated their Member,
-and when the election came he had not the courage
-to face it.</p>
-
-<p>He is now living, broken and prematurely aged,
-in a brick house which he has built for himself in a
-charming part of the County of Surrey. He has
-recently discovered that the title to his freehold
-is insecure: an action is pending. Meanwhile, a
-spring of water has broken out under the foundations
-of the building, and some quarter of a mile
-before its windows, obscuring the view of the
-Weald in which he particularly delighted, a very
-large factory with four tall chimneys is in process<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_252" id="Page_252">[252]</a></span>
-of erection. These things have depressed him
-almost to the verge of despair, and he can only
-forget his miseries in motoring. He is continually
-fined for excessive speed, though by nature the
-most cautious of men, and terrified by high speeds,
-and I learn only to-day that as he was getting
-ready to go into Guildford to dispute a further fine
-before the Bench a backfire has put his wrist out of
-joint, and he suffers intolerable pain. <i>Militia est
-Vita Hominis!</i></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_253" id="Page_253">[253]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Contented Man<img src="images/i_graphic4.jpg" alt="" width="300" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap2">LUCIFER, for some time a bishop in Southern
-Italy (you did not know that, but it is true
-nevertheless, and you will find his name in the writings
-of Duchesne, and he took part in councils; nay,
-there was a time when I knew the very See of
-which he was bishop, but the passage of years effaces
-all these things)&mdash;Lucifer, I say, laid it down
-in his System of Morals that contentment was a
-virtue, and said that it could be aimed at and acquired
-positively, just as any other virtue can. Then there
-are others who have said that it was but a frame of
-mind and the result of several virtues; but these
-are the thinkers. The great mass of people are
-willing to say that contentment is strictly in proportion
-to the amount of money one may have, and
-they are wrong. I remember now there was a Sultan,
-or some such dignitary, in Spain, who counted the
-days of his life which had been filled with content,
-and found that they were seventeen. He was
-lucky; there are not many of us who can say the
-same. Then once a man told me this story about
-contentment, which seemed to me full of a profound
-meaning. It seems there was once an old gentleman
-who was possessed of something over half a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_254" id="Page_254">[254]</a></span>
-million pounds, a banker, and this old gentleman
-every night of his life would go through certain
-little private books of his, compare them with the
-current list of prices, and estimate to a penny what
-he was worth before he slept. It was always a great
-pleasure to him to note the figures growing larger,
-and a great pain to him to note the rare occasions
-when they had shrunk a little in twenty-four hours.
-It so happened that this old gentleman lost a considerable
-sum of money which he had imprudently
-lent to a distant and foreign country too much
-praised in the newspapers, and he worried so much
-over the loss that he became ill and could not go to
-his office. His sons kept on the business for him, and
-every succeeding week they lost more and more of
-the money. But such was their filial piety that every
-night they gave the old gentleman false information,
-and that in some detail, so that he could put down
-his little rows of figures and see them growing larger
-night after night. You see, it was not the wealth
-that he desired, it was the increase in the little rows
-of figures; the wealth he consumed was the same;
-he wore the same clothes, he ate the same food, he
-lived in the same house as before, and he had for a
-companion eternally one or another of the two nurses
-provided by the doctor. The figures increasing regularly
-as they did filled him with a greater and a
-greater joy. After two years of this business he
-came to die, but his passing was a very happy one:
-he blessed his sons fervently and told them that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_255" id="Page_255">[255]</a></span>
-nothing had more comforted his old age than their
-sober business sense; they had nearly doubled the
-family fortune during their short administration of it;
-he congratulated them and was now ready to go to
-his God in peace. Which he did, and two weeks
-after the petition in bankruptcy was presented by
-the young people themselves, always the more decent
-way of doing it: but the old man had died
-content.</p>
-
-<p>Which parable leads up to the point at which I
-should have begun all this, which is, that once in
-my life, in the year 1901, during a heavy fog
-in the early morning of the month of November,
-in London, I met a perfectly contented man. He
-was the conductor of an omnibus. These vehicles
-depended in those days entirely on the traction of
-horses. They were therefore slow, and as the night,
-or rather the early morning, was foggy (it was a
-little after one) people going Westward&mdash;journalists
-for instance, who are compelled to be up at
-such hours&mdash;did not choose to travel in this way.
-There was no one in the &#8217;bus but myself. I sat
-next the door as it rumbled along; there was one
-of those little faint oil lamps above it which are
-unique in Christendom for the small amount of
-light they give. It was impossible to read, but by
-the slight glimmer of it I saw suddenly revealed
-like a vision the face of that really happy man. It
-was a round face, framed in a somewhat slovenly
-hat and coat collar, but not slovenly in feature,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">[256]</a></span>
-though not severe. And as its owner clung to the
-rail and swung with the movements of the &#8217;bus he
-whistled softly to himself a genial little air. It was
-not I but he that began the conversation. He told
-me that few things were a greater blessing in life
-than gas fires, especially if one could regulate the
-amount of gas by a penny in the slot. He pointed
-out to me that in this way there were never any
-disputes as to the amount of gas used, and he also
-said that it kept a man from the curse of credit,
-which was the ruin of so many. I told him that in
-my house there was no gas, but that his description
-almost made me wish there was. And so it did,
-for he went on to tell me how you could cook any
-mortal thing with any degree of heat and at any
-speed by the simple regulation of a tap.</p>
-
-<p>It may be imagined how anxious I was on meeting
-so rare a being to go more deeply into the
-matter and to find out on what such happiness reposed;
-but I did not know where to begin, because
-there are always some questions which men do not
-like asked, and unless one knows all about a man&#8217;s
-life one does not know what those questions are.
-Luckily for me, he volunteered. He told me that
-he was married and had eight children. He told
-me his wages, which were astonishingly low, his
-hours of labour, which were incredibly long, and he
-further told me that on reaching the yard that
-night he would have to walk a mile to his home.
-He said he liked this, because it made him sleep,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_257" id="Page_257">[257]</a></span>
-and he added that in his profession the great difficulty
-was to get enough exercise. He told me how
-often a day off was allowed him and how greatly he
-enjoyed it. He told me the rent which he paid
-for his two rooms, which appeared to be one-third
-of his income, and congratulated himself upon the
-cheapness and commodity of the place; and so he
-went on talking as we rumbled down the King&#8217;s
-Road, going farther and farther and farther West.
-My day would end in a few hundred yards; his not
-for a mile or two more. Yet his content was far
-the greater, and it affected me, I am sorry to say,
-with wonder rather than with a similar emotion of
-repose and pleasure.</p>
-
-<p>The next part of his conversation discovered what
-you will often find in the conversation of contented
-men (or, rather, of partially contented men, for no
-other absolutely contented man have I ever met
-except this one), that is, a certain good-humoured
-contempt for those who grumble. He told me that
-the drivers of &#8217;buses were never happy; they had
-all that life can give: high wages, fresh open-air
-work, the dignity of controlling horses, and, what is
-perhaps more important, ceaseless companionship,
-for not only had they the companionship of chance
-people who would come and sit on the front seats
-of the &#8217;bus outside, but they could and did make
-appointments with friends who would come and ride
-some part of the way and talk to them. Then,
-again, as their work was more skilled, their tenure<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_258" id="Page_258">[258]</a></span>
-of it was more secure, nor were they constrained
-to shout &#8220;Liverpool Street&#8221; at the top of their
-voices for hours on end, nor to say &#8220;Benk, Benk,
-Benk&#8221; in imitation of the pom-pom. Nevertheless
-they grumbled. He was careful to tell me
-that they were not really unhappy. What he
-condemned in them was rather the habit and,
-as it were, the fashion of grumbling. It seemed
-as though no weather pleased them; it was always
-either too hot or too cold; they took no pleasure
-in the healthy English rain beating upon their
-faces, and warm spring days seemed to put them
-in a worse humour than ever. He condemned all
-this in drivers.</p>
-
-<p>When we had come to the corner of my street in
-Chelsea as I got out I offered him a cigar which
-I had upon me. He told me he did not smoke.
-He was going on to tell me that he did not drink,
-and would, I had no doubt, if he had had further
-leisure, have told me his religion, his politics, and
-much more about himself; but though the &#8217;buses in
-those days would wait very long at street corners
-they would not wait for ever, and that particular
-&#8217;bus rumbled and bumped away. I looked after it
-a little wistfully, for fear that I might never see
-a happy man again. And I walked down my street
-towards my home more slowly than usual, thinking
-upon the thing that I had just experienced.</p>
-
-<p>I confess I found it a very difficult matter. That
-experience not only challenged all that I had heard<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_259" id="Page_259">[259]</a></span>
-of happiness, but also re-awoke the insistent and
-imperative question which men put to their gods
-and which never receives an answer. Ecstasy is
-independent of all material conditions whatsoever.
-That great sense of rectitude which so often embitters
-men but permits them to support pain is
-independent of material conditions also. But these
-are not contented moods: oblivion is ready to every
-man&#8217;s hand, and even the most unfortunate secure
-a little sleep, and even the most tortured slaves
-know that at last, for all the rules and fines and
-regulations of the workshop, they cannot be forbidden
-to die; but such a prospect is not equivalent
-to content. Further, there is a philosophy, rarely
-achieved but conspicuous in every rank of fortune,
-which so steadily regards all external accident as to
-remain indifferent to the strain of living and even
-to be, to some extent, master of physical pain.
-But that philosophy, that mournful philosophy
-which I have heard called &#8220;the permanent
-religion of mankind,&#8221; is not content: on the
-contrary, it is very close indeed to despair. It
-is the philosophy of which the Roman Empire
-perished. It is the philosophy which, just because
-it utterly failed to satisfy the heart of man, powerfully
-accelerated the triumph of the Church, as the
-weight and pressure of water powerfully accelerate
-the rise of a man&#8217;s body through it, to the sunlight
-and the air above, which are native and necessary to
-him. No, it was not the philosophy of the Stoics<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_260" id="Page_260">[260]</a></span>
-which had laid a foundation for the &#8217;bus-conductor&#8217;s
-soul.</p>
-
-<p>I could not explain that content of his in any
-way save upon the hypothesis that he was mad.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_261" id="Page_261">[261]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Missioner<img src="images/i_graphic5.jpg" alt="" width="400" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IN one of those great halls which the winter
-darkens and which are proper to the North, there
-sat a group of men, kindly and full of the winter
-night and of their food and drink, upon which for
-many hours they had regaled together, and not only
-full of song, but satiated with it, so long and so
-loudly had they sung. They all claimed descent
-from the Gods, but in varying degrees, and their
-Chief was descended from the father of the Gods, by
-no doubtful lineage, for it was his granfer&#8217;s mother
-to whom a witch in the woods had told the story
-of her birth.</p>
-
-<p>In the midst of them as they so sat, a large fire
-smouldered, but having been long lit, sent up so
-strong a shaft of rising air as drew all smoke with it,
-towering to a sort of open cage upon the high roof
-tree of that hall whence it could escape to heaven.</p>
-
-<p>I say they were tired of song and filled with many
-good things, but chiefly with companionship. They
-had landed but recently from the sea; the noise
-of the sea was in their ears as they so sat round the
-fire, still talking low, and a Priest who was among
-them refused to interpret the sound; but he said in
-a manner that some mocked doubtfully, others heard<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_262" id="Page_262">[262]</a></span>
-with awe, that the sea never sounded save upon
-nights when the Gods were abroad. He was the
-Priest of a lesser God, but he was known throughout
-the fleet of those pirate fishermen for his great skill
-in the interpretation of dreams, and he could tell by
-the surface of the water in the nightless midsummer
-where the shoals were to be found.</p>
-
-<p>He said that on that night the Gods were abroad,
-and, indeed, the quality of the wind as it came
-down the gulf of the fjord provoked such a fancy,
-for it rose and fell as though by a volition, and
-sometimes one would have said that it was a quiet
-night, and, again, a moment after, one heard a noise
-like a voice round the corners of the great beams,
-and the wind pitied or appealed or called. Then a
-man who was a serf, but very skilled in woodwork,
-lying among the serfs in the outer ring beyond the
-fire in the straw, called up and said: &#8220;Lords, he is
-right; the Gods have come down from the Dovrefield;
-they are abroad. Let us bless our doors.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>It was when he had so spoken that upon the main
-gate of that Hall (a large double engine of foot-thick
-pine swung upon hinges wrought many generations
-ago by the sons of the Gods) came a little knocking.
-It was a little tapping like the tapping of a bird. It
-rang musically of metal and of hollow metal; it
-moved them curiously, and a very young man who
-was of the blood said to his father: &#8220;Perhaps a God
-would warn us.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The keeper of the door was a huge and kindly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_263" id="Page_263">[263]</a></span>
-man, foolish but good for lifting, with whom by daylight
-children played, and who upon such evenings
-lay silent and contented enough to hear his wittier
-fellows. This serf rose from the straw and went to
-unbar. But the Chief put his hand forward, and
-bade him stay that they might still hear that little
-tapping. Then he lowered his hand and the gate
-was swung open.</p>
-
-<p>Cold came with it for a moment, and the night
-air; light, and as though blown before that draught,
-drifted into the hall a tall man, very young, who
-bowed to them with a gesture they did not know,
-and first asked in a tongue they could not tell,
-whether any man might interpret for him.</p>
-
-<p>Then one old man who was their pilot and who had
-often run down into the vineyard lands, sometimes
-for barter, sometimes for war, always for a wage, said
-two words or three in that new tongue, hesitatingly.
-His face was wrinkled and hard; he had very bright
-but very pale grey eyes that were full of humility.
-He said three words of greeting which he had painfully
-learned twenty years before, from a priest, upon
-the rocks of Brittany, who had also given him smooth
-stones wherewith to pray; and with these smooth
-stones the old Pilot continually prayed sometimes to
-the greater and sometimes to the lesser Gods. His
-wife had died during the first war between Hrolf
-and the Twin Brothers; he had come home to find
-her dead and sanctified, and, being Northern, he had
-since been also a silent man. This Pilot, I say,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_264" id="Page_264">[264]</a></span>
-quoted the words of greeting in the strange tongue.
-Then the tall young stranger man advanced into the
-circle of the firelight and made a sign upon his head
-and his breast and his shoulders, which was like the
-sign of the Hammer of Thor, and yet which was not
-the sign of the Hammer of Thor. When he had
-done this, the Pilot attempted that same sign, but he
-failed at it, for it was many years since he had been
-taught it upon the Breton coast. He knew it to be
-magical and beneficent, and he was ashamed to fail.</p>
-
-<p>The Chief of those who were descended from the
-Gods and were seated round the fire, turned to the
-Priest and said: &#8220;Is this a guest, a stranger sent, or
-is he a man come as an enemy who should be led out
-again into the night? Have you any divination?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I have no divination,&#8221; said the Priest. &#8220;I cannot
-tell one thing or the other, nor each from the
-other in the case of this young man. But perhaps
-he is one of the Gods seeking shelter among men, or
-perhaps he is a fancy thing, warlock, but not doing
-evil. Or perhaps he is from the demons; or perhaps
-he is a man like ourselves, and seeking shelter
-during some long wandering.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>When the Chief heard this he asked the Pilot, not
-as a man possessing divine knowledge, but as one
-who had travelled and knew the sea, whether he
-knew this Stranger and whence he came. To which
-the Pilot answered:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Captain, I do not know this young man nor
-whence he comes, nor any of his tribe, nor have I<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_265" id="Page_265">[265]</a></span>
-seen any like him save once three slaves who stood
-in a market-place of the Romans in a town that was
-subject to a great lord who was a Frank and not a
-Breton, and who was hated by the people of his town
-so that later they slew him. Then these three slaves
-were loosened, and they came to the house of the
-Priest of the Gods of that country, and they told me
-the name of the people whence they sprang. But I
-have forgotten it. Only I know that it is among the
-vineyard lands. There the day and the night are
-equally divided all the year long, and if the snow
-falls it falls gently and for a very little while, and
-there are all manner of birds, and those people are
-very rich, and they have great houses of stone. Now
-I believe this Stranger to be a man like ourselves,
-born of a woman, and coming northward upon some
-purpose which we do not know. It may be for
-merchandise, or it may be for the love of singing
-and of telling stories to men.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>When he had said this they all looked at the
-Stranger and they saw that he had with him a little
-instrument that was not known to them, for it
-was a flute of metal. It was of silver, as they could
-see, long drawn and very delicately made, and with
-this had he summoned at the gate.</p>
-
-<p>The Chief then brought out with his own hands a
-carven chair, on which he seated the Stranger, and
-he put into his right hand a gold cup taken from
-the Romans in a city of the Franks, upon which was
-faintly carved a cross, and round the rim of which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_266" id="Page_266">[266]</a></span>
-were four precious stones, an emerald, a ruby, an
-amethyst, and a diamond; and going to a skin
-which he had taken in a Gascon raid, he poured out
-wine into that chalice and went down upon one
-knee as is proper to strangers when they are to be
-entertained, and put a cloth over his arms and bade
-him drink. But when the young man saw the cross
-faintly carved upon the cup and the four precious
-stones at the corners of it, he shuddered a little and
-put it aside as though it were a sacred thing, at
-which they all marvelled. Yet he longed for the
-wine. And they, understanding that in some way
-this ornament was sacred to his Gods, gently took it
-from him and through courtesy put it aside upon a
-separate place which was reserved for honourable
-vessels, and poured him other wine into a wooden
-stoop; and this he drank, holding it out now to one
-and now to another, but last and chiefly to their
-Captain; and as he drank it he drank it with signs
-of amity.</p>
-
-<p>Then by way of payment for so much kindness he
-took his silver flute and blew upon it shrill notes, all
-very sweet, and the sweeter for their choice and
-distance one from another, until they listened,
-listening every man with those beside him like one
-man, for they had never heard such a sound; and as
-he played one man saw one thing in his mind and
-one another thing; for one man saw the long and
-easy summer seas that roll after a prosperous boat
-filled with spoil, whether of fishes or of booty, when<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_267" id="Page_267">[267]</a></span>
-the square sail is taken aft by a warm wind in the
-summer season, and the high mountains of home
-first show beyond the line of the sea. And another
-man saw a little valley, narrow, with deep pasture,
-wherein he had been bred and had learned to plow
-the land with horses before ever he had come to the
-handling of a tiller or the bursting of water upon
-the bows. And another saw no distinct and certain
-thing, but vague and pleasurable hopes fulfilled, and
-the advent of great peace. And another saw those
-heights of the hills to which he ever desired to
-return.</p>
-
-<p>But the old Pilot, straining with wonder in his
-eyes as the music rose, thought confusedly of all
-that he had seen and known; of the twirling tides
-upon the Breton coast and of the great stone towns,
-of the bright vestments of the ordered armies in the
-market-places and of the vineyard land.</p>
-
-<p>When the Stranger had ceased so to play upon
-his instrument they applauded, as their custom was,
-by cries, some striking the armour upon the ground
-so that it rang, and by gesture and voice they begged
-him play again.</p>
-
-<p>The second time he played all those men heard
-one thing: which was a dance of young men and
-women together in some country where there was
-little fear. The tune went softly, and was softly
-repeated, full of the lilt of feet, and when it was
-ended they knew that the dance was done.</p>
-
-<p>This time they were so pleased that they waited<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_268" id="Page_268">[268]</a></span>
-a little before they would applaud, but the old
-Pilot, remembering more strongly than ever the
-vineyard land, moved his right hand back and forward
-with delight as in some way he would play
-music with it, and thus by a communication of heart
-to heart stirred in that Stranger a new song; and
-taking up his flute for the third time he blew upon
-it a different strain, at which some were confused,
-others hungry in their hearts, though they could
-not have told you why, but the old Pilot saw great
-and gracious figures moving over a land subject to
-blessedness; he saw that in the faces of these
-figures (which were those of the Immortals) stood
-present at once a complete satisfaction and a joyous
-energy and a solution of every ill. &#8220;These,&#8221; he said
-to himself in the last passion of the music, &#8220;these
-are true Gods.&#8221; But suddenly the music ceased,
-and with it the vision also.</p>
-
-<p>For the great pleasure which the Flute Player
-had given them they desired to keep him in their
-company, and so they did for three full years. That
-is, the winter long, the seed time, and the time of
-harvest; and the next harvest also, and another
-harvest more, during which time he played them
-many tunes, and learnt their tongue.</p>
-
-<p>Now, his Gods were his own, but he pined for the
-lack of their worship and for Priests of his own sort,
-and when he would explain these in his own manner
-some believed him, but some did not believe him.
-And to those who believed him he brought a man<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_269" id="Page_269">[269]</a></span>
-from the South, from beyond the Dovrefield, who
-baptised them with water: as for those who would
-not have this they looked on, and kept to their own
-decree: but there was as yet no division among
-them. A little while after the third harvest, hearing
-that the fleet, which was of twelve boats, would
-make for Roman land, he begged to go with it, for
-he was sick for his own, but first he made them take
-an oath that they would molest none, nor even
-barter with any, until they had landed him in his
-own land. The Chief took this oath for them, and
-though his oath was worth the oath of twelve
-men, twelve other men swore with him. In this
-way the oath was done. So they took the Flute
-Player for three days over the sea before the
-wind called Eager, which is the north-east wind,
-and blows at the beginning of the open season; they
-took him at the beginning of the fourth year since
-his coming among them, and they landed him in
-a little boat in a seaport of the Franks, on Roman
-land....</p>
-
-<p>The Faith went over the world as very light seed
-goes upon the wind, and no one knows the drift on
-which it blew; it came to one place and to another,
-and to each in a different way. It came, not to
-many men, but always to one heart, till all men had
-hold of it.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_270" id="Page_270">[270]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Dream<img src="images/i_graphic5.jpg" alt="" width="400" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE experience I am about to set down was perhaps
-the result, and at any rate it was the
-sequel, of a conversation engaged between three
-men in London in the year 1903.</p>
-
-<p>Of these three men one was returned but recently
-from South Africa, where he had seen all too much
-of the war; another was a kindly, wealthy, sober sort
-of man, young, virtuous, and full of inquiry; the third
-was a hack.</p>
-
-<p>It was about the season of Easter and of spring,
-when actually and physically one can feel and handle
-the force of life about one, all ready to break
-bounds; but these young men (for no one of
-them was yet of middle age) preferred to talk
-of things more shadowy and less certain than
-the air and the life and the English spring all
-around. Things more shadowy and less certain,
-but to the mind of youth, being a vigorous mind
-things fixed and absorbing; destiny, for instance,
-and the nature of man.</p>
-
-<p>Not one of these three, however, affirmed in this
-conversation (which I so well remember!) any
-definite scheme. They spoke in terms of violent
-opinion, of argument, and of analogy, but none of
-the three came forward with a faith or even with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_271" id="Page_271">[271]</a></span>
-a philosophy from which one felt he could not be
-shaken. The more remarkable was it, therefore,
-that one of them on his return in the early morning
-to his rooms, after this young and long conversation
-of a mixed sort, such as men entering upon life will
-often indulge, should have suffered and should have
-remembered an exact and even terrible vision. It
-would indeed be inexplicable that he should have
-suffered such a thing as a consequence of his waking
-thoughts, though, if there be influences upon minds
-other than the influences they themselves can bring&mdash;if
-there be influences from without, and other wills
-determining our dreams&mdash;then what next followed
-is less difficult to comprehend. For, when he had
-fallen asleep, it seemed to him at once that he was
-in the midst of a very gay and pleasant company in
-a sort of palace whereof the vast room in which
-he stood was one out of very many that opened one
-into the other in sequence. The crowd, and he with
-it, went forward slowly towards a banquet which he
-heard was prepared. He did not see among those
-he spoke to, and who spoke to him, any face with
-which he was familiar or to which he could attach a
-name; and yet he seemed to know them all, in that
-curious inconsequence of dreams, and one in especial,
-at some distance from him, which seemed to have
-been lost once, and now to be seen again through
-the crowd, was a face the sight of which moved in
-him a very passionate memory: yet it was no early
-memory.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_272" id="Page_272">[272]</a></span>So they went forward, and soon they were all
-seated at a table of enormous length, so long that
-its length seemed to have some purpose about it;
-and at the farther end of this table was a door leading
-out of that hall. It was a door not very large
-for so magnificent a space; such a door as a man or
-woman could easily open with a common gesture,
-and pass through and shut behind them quickly.</p>
-
-<p>Now, for the first time, when they were eating
-and drinking, it seemed to him that the conversation
-took on meaning, and a more consecutive
-meaning than is usual in dreams; when, just as that
-new phase of his dream had begun, one of the
-guests, a little to the left of the place opposite to
-him, a woman of middle age who had been somewhat
-silent, rose without apology, and without warning
-left her place he hardly knew how, and passed
-out of the room through the door that he had
-noticed. It shut behind her. No one mentioned
-or noticed her going, but in a little while another
-and another had risen and had gone. And still as
-each guest departed, some in the midst of a sentence,
-some during a silence in the talk, there increased
-upon him an appalling sense of unusual
-things; it was appalling to him that no one said
-good-bye, that none of the fellows of those who
-so departed turned to them or noticed their going,
-and that none of those who so departed returned
-or made any promise to return. Next he noticed
-with an increasing ill-ease, by some inconsequence<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_273" id="Page_273">[273]</a></span>
-of his dream, that when he watched the departure
-of a guest (as the others did not) he saw
-the empty chair and the gap left in the ranks;
-but when he looked again after speaking to some
-other to the right or left the gap was somehow less
-defined, and when he looked yet again it was no
-longer to be noticed or perceived; though it could
-not be said that the chair was filled or was removed,
-but in some way the absence of the man or woman
-who had been there ceased to be marked, and it was
-as though they had never been present at all. It
-was not often that he cared to look for more than a
-moment at one or another of these risings from the
-feast; yet in the moment&#8217;s observation he could see
-very different things. Some rose as though in terror;
-some as though in weariness; some startled, as at a
-sudden command which they alone could hear; some
-in a natural manner as though at an appointed
-moment. But there was no order or method in
-their going: only all went through that door.</p>
-
-<p>His mind was now oppressed by the change which
-comes in dreams, and turns them sometimes from
-phantasy to horror. There sat opposite him a man
-somewhat older than himself, with a face vigorous
-and yet despairing, not without energy, and trained
-in self-command. And this man answered his thoughts
-at once, as thoughts are answered in dreams. He
-said that it was of no use wondering why any guest
-left that feast, nor what there was, if there was
-anything, beyond the door through which this inconsequential<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_274" id="Page_274">[274]</a></span>
-passage was made. Even as he was
-saying this he himself, suddenly looking towards it
-with an expression of extreme sadness and abandonment,
-rose abruptly, bowed to no one, and went out.
-At his departure the dreamer heard a little sigh,
-and he who had sighed said that doors of their nature
-led from one place to another, and then he tittered
-a little as though he had said a clever thing. Then
-another, a large happy man, laughed somewhat too
-loudly, and said that only fools discussed what none
-could know. A third, still upon that same theme,
-said in fixed, contented manner, that, in the nature of
-things, nothing was beyond the door. At which, the
-first who had spoken tittered again, and said doors of
-their nature led somewhere. Even as he said it his
-eyes filled with tears, and he also rose and went out.</p>
-
-<p>For the first time during this increasing pressure
-of mystery and disaster (for so the dreamer felt it)
-he watched the figure of that guest; none of his
-companions about him dared or chose to do so; but
-the dreamer fixedly watched, and he saw the figure
-going down the long perspective of the hall very
-rapidly and very directly. It did not hesitate nor
-look back for one moment, it passed through&mdash;it was
-gone.</p>
-
-<p>The dreamer suddenly felt the wine of that feast,
-the words spoken round him, more full of meaning
-and of novelty; the noise of speech, though more
-confused, was more pleasing and louder; the candles
-were far more bright. He had forgotten, or was just<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_275" id="Page_275">[275]</a></span>
-forgetting, all that other mood of his dream, when
-it seemed to him that in a sense all that converse
-was struck dumb. He heard no sound; he was cut
-off. Their hands still moved, their eyes and lips
-framed words and repeated glances, but around him,
-and for him, there was silence. The candles burned
-bright through the length of the room, and brightest,
-as in a guiding manner, towards the end of it
-where was the Door. He felt a thrill pass from his
-face. He rose and walked directly&mdash;no one speaking
-to him or noticing him at all&mdash;down the long, narrow
-space behind their chairs. It took him but a moment,
-innumerable as were those whom he must pass. His
-hand was upon the latch; with his head bent forward
-somewhat, and downwards, in the attitude of a man
-hurrying, he passed through. And, not knowing
-what he did, but doing it as though by habit, he
-shut the door between him and the feast, and immediately
-he was in a complete and utterly silent
-darkness. But he still was.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_276" id="Page_276">[276]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">The Silence of the Battlefields<img src="images/i_graphic2.jpg" alt="" width="165" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">WHOEVER has had occasion, whether for study
-or for curiosity, to visit many of the battlefields
-of Europe, must have been especially struck by their
-silence. There are many things combining to
-produce this impression, but when all have been
-accounted for, something over remains. Thus it is
-true that in any countryside the contrast between
-the noise of the great fight that fills one&#8217;s mind and
-the natural calm of woods and of fields must penetrate
-the mind; and, again, it is evident that any piece of
-land which one closely examines, noting all its details
-for the purposes of history, must seem more lonely
-and deserted than those general views in which the
-eye comprehends so much of the work of man;
-because all this special watching of particular corners,
-noting of ranges and the rest, make one&#8217;s progress
-slow, keep one&#8217;s eyes close fixed to things more or
-less near, and thus allow one to appreciate how far
-between men are save in the towns. But there is
-more than this. It can be proved that there is more.
-For the same sense of complete loneliness does not
-take a man in other similar work. He does not
-feel it when he is surveying for a map nor when he
-is searching for an historic site other than that of
-battle. But the battlefields are lonely.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_277" id="Page_277">[277]</a></span>Some few, especially in this crowded island, are
-not lonely. Life has overtaken them, spreading
-outwards from the towns. By what a curious irony,
-for instance, the racecourse at Lewes, with a shouting
-throng of men as the horses go by, corresponds
-precisely to the place where must have been the
-thickest of the advance on Montfort&#8217;s right as he led
-them to attack the King. Evesham is not lonely.
-Battle is full of houses and of villas, and the chief
-centre of the fight is in a garden.</p>
-
-<p>But for the most part the great battlefields are
-lonely; and their loneliness is unnatural and
-oppressive. In some way they repel men. Trasimene
-is the lonely shore of a marsh. One would
-imagine that a place so famous would be in some
-way visited. One of the great sewers of cosmopolitan
-travel runs close by; one would imagine
-that the historic interest of the place would bring
-men from that railway to the shore upon which so
-very nearly the Orientals destroyed us. There is
-no such publicity. Sitting at evening near those
-reeds, where the great fight was fought, one has a
-feeling, rare in Italy, commoner in the north, of
-complete isolation. There is nothing but water and
-the evening sky, and it is so mournful that one
-might imagine it a place to which things doomed
-would come to die.</p>
-
-<p>Roncesvalles, which means so little in the military
-history of Europe and so much in her literature, is
-a profound gorge, cleft right into the earth 3000<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_278" id="Page_278">[278]</a></span>
-feet, and clothed with such mighty beech woods
-that for these alone, apart from its history, one
-might imagine it to be perpetually visited. It is
-not visited. No house is near it, save the huddled
-huts round the gloomy place of pilgrimage upon
-the farther side of the pass. A silence more profound,
-a sense of recession more complete, is not
-to be discovered upon any of the great roads of
-Europe&mdash;for one of the great roads goes by the
-place where Roland died, but very few travel
-along it.</p>
-
-<p>Toulouse is popular and noisy; surrounded by
-so many small market gardens and so busy and
-humming a Southern life (detestable to quiet men!)
-that you might think no site near it was touched
-with loneliness. But there is such a site. It is
-the crest beyond the city where Wellington&#8217;s victory
-was won. More curious still, Waterloo, at the
-very gates of Brussels, within a stone&#8217;s throw, one
-may say, of building sites for suburbs, is the only
-lonely place in its neighbourhood. That valley, or
-rather that little dip which is so great in military
-history and yet which did so little to change the
-general movement of the world, is the one deserted
-set of fields that you can find for a long way round.
-And the soil of Belgium, a gridiron of railways,
-stuffed with industry, a place where one short walk
-takes you from a town to a town anywhere throughout
-the little State, is still remarkable for the way
-in which its battlefields seem to fend off the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_279" id="Page_279">[279]</a></span>
-presence of man. The plateau of Fleurus, the
-marshy banks of Jemappes, the roll of Neerwinden,
-all illustrate what I mean.</p>
-
-<p>If one considers in what two places since Christendom
-was Christendom most was done to save
-Christendom from destruction, one will fix upon the
-Catalaunian Fields and upon that low tableland in
-the fork of the two rivers between Poitiers and
-Tours. In the first Attila was broken, Asia from
-the East; in the second the Mohammedan, Asia
-from the South. The Catalaunian Fields have a
-bleakness amazing to the traveller. Nothing perhaps
-so near so much wealth is so utterly alone.
-Great folds of empty land that will grow little,
-that only lately were planted with stunted pine
-trees that they might at least grow something,
-weary the eye. One dead straight road, Roman in
-origin, Gallic in its continuance, drives right across
-the waste. It is there that the Huns were broken.
-It is from that point that their sullen retreat
-eastward was permitted, as was permitted in 1792
-the retreat eastward of the Royal Armies from
-their check in that same plain at Valmy; and
-Valmy also is intensely lonely, a bare ridge despoiled
-to-day even of its mill, and the little chapel
-raised to the soul of Kellerman hides itself away
-so that you do not see it until you are close upon
-the place.</p>
-
-<p>Poitiers has the same loneliness. The Mohammedan
-had ridden up from the Pyrenees, ricochetted<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_280" id="Page_280">[280]</a></span>
-from the walls of Toulouse, but poured on like a
-flood into the centre of Gaul. Charles the Hammer
-broke him in the fields beyond Vouneuil. The district
-is populous and the Valley of the Clain is full
-of pastures and among the tenderest of European
-valleys, but as you drift down stream and approach
-this place the plateau upon the right above you
-grows bare, and it was there, so far as modern
-scholarship can be certain, that the last effort of the
-Arabs was forced back.</p>
-
-<p>That other battle of Poitiers among the vineyards,
-the Black Prince&#8217;s battle, one would imagine, could
-not seem lonely, for it was fought in the midst of
-tilled land full of vineyards and right above the great
-high road which leads south-east from the town.
-But lonely it is, and if you will go up the little gully
-where the head of the French column advanced
-against the English archers upon the high land above,
-you will not find a man to tell you the memories of
-the place.</p>
-
-<p>Crey was fought close to a county town; but the
-same trick of landscape or of influence is also played
-there. The town hides itself in a little hollow upon
-the farther flank of a hill, and though the right of
-Edward&#8217;s line reposed upon it, and though it was
-within a bowshot of the houses that the boy his son
-was pressed so hard, yet Crey hides away from the
-battlefield. And as you come in by the eastern road,
-which takes you all along the crest of the English
-position, there is nothing before you but a naked and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_281" id="Page_281">[281]</a></span>
-a silent land, falling in a dip to where the first of
-the French charge failed, and rising in long empty
-lengths of fallow and of grass to where you can see,
-a single mark for the eye in so much loneliness, the
-rude cross standing on the place where the blind
-King of Bohemia fell.</p>
-
-<p>Loneliest of all, with a loneliness which perpetually
-haunts me whenever I write of it, is that battlefield
-which I know best and have most closely studied.
-It is the battlefield on which, as I believe, more was
-done to affect both military and general history than
-on any other&mdash;the battlefield of Wattignies. Here
-the Revolution certainly stood, to go under with the
-fall of Maubeuge, which was at the last gasp for
-food, or, with the raising of that siege, to go forward.
-By the success at Wattignies the siege was raised.
-In military history also it is of great account, for at
-Wattignies for the first time the great mind of
-Carnot, the darting, aquiline mind of that man whose
-school of tactics produced Napoleon, first dealt with
-an army. At Wattignies for the first time the concentration
-at the fullest expense of fatigue, of overwhelming
-force upon one point of the objective,
-came into play and was successful. Such tactics
-needed the Infantry which as a fact were used in
-their development. Still, they were new. Now,
-Wattignies, where so much was done to change the
-art of war and to transform Europe, is as lonely as
-anything on earth. Lines of high trees, a wood
-almost uncultivated (a rare thing in France), a swept,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_282" id="Page_282">[282]</a></span>
-wintry upland without a house or a barn, a little
-huddled group of poor steadings round a tiny church,
-and against it all the while rain and hard weather
-driving from the French plains below: that is Wattignies.
-Up through those sunken ways by which
-Duquesnoy&#8217;s division charged you will not meet a
-single human being, and that heath over which the
-emigrant nobles countercharged for the last time
-under the white flag is similarly bereft of men.
-Nowhere do you more feel the unnatural loneliness
-of those haunted places of honour than in this which
-I believe to be the chief one of all the European
-fields.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_283" id="Page_283">[283]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">Novissima Hora<img src="images/i_graphic4.jpg" alt="" width="300" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">TIME, which is to the mind a function of the
-mind, stretches and contracts, as all men know,
-when the mind impelled by forces not its own
-demands the expansion or the lessening of time.
-Thus in a moment, as the foolish physicists can
-prove, long experiences of dreams are held; and
-thus hours upon hours of other men&#8217;s lives are lost
-to us for ever when we lie in profound sleep; and
-I knew a man who, sleeping through a morning
-upon the grassy side of a hill many years ago, slept
-through news that seemed to have ruined him and
-his, and slept on to a later moment when the news
-proved false and the threat of disaster was lifted;
-during those hours of agony there had been for him
-no time.</p>
-
-<p>They say that with men approaching dissolution
-some trick of time is played, or at least that when
-death is very near indeed the whole scale and structure
-of thought changes, just as some have imagined
-(and it is a reasonable suspicion) that the common
-laws governing matter do not apply to it in some
-last stage of tenuity, so the ordered sequence of the
-mind takes on something fantastic and moves during
-such moments in a void.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_284" id="Page_284">[284]</a></span>So must it have been with that which I will now
-describe.</p>
-
-<p>A man lay upon a bed of a common sort in a
-room which was bare of ornament. But he had
-forgotten the room. He was a man of middle age,
-corpulent, and one whose flesh and the skin of
-whose flesh had sagged under disease. His eyes
-were closed, his mouth, which was very fine, delicate,
-and firm, alone of his features preserved its
-rigour. Those features had been square and massive,
-their squareness and their strength the more
-emphasised by the high forehead with its one wisp
-of hair. But though the strength of character remained
-behind the face, the muscular strength had
-left it, for that body had suffered agony.</p>
-
-<p>The man so lying was conscious of little; the
-external world was already beyond his reach. He
-knew that somehow he was not suffering pain, and
-the mortal fatigue that oppressed him had, in that
-unexpected absence of pain, some opportunity for
-repose. Neither his room nor what was left of
-companionship round him, nor the voices that he
-knew and loved, nor those others that he knew too
-well and despised, reached his senses. For many
-years the air in which he had lived and in which
-he was now perishing had been to him in his
-captivity a mournful delight. It was a tropical air,
-but enlivened by the freshness of the sea and continually
-impelled in great sea winds above him.
-Now he felt that air no longer, and might have<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_285" id="Page_285">[285]</a></span>
-been so many thousand miles away in the place
-where he had been born, or many thousand miles
-more, in the snows of a great campaign, or under
-the violent desert sun of certain remembered battles;
-it was all one to him, for he only held to life by one
-thread within, and outer things had already left him.</p>
-
-<p>Within, however, his mind in that last weakness
-still busily turned; no longer considering as it had
-considered during the activity of a marvellous life
-what answers the great questions propounded to
-the soul of man should receive, still less noting
-practical and immediate needs or considering set
-problems. His mind for once, almost for the first
-time, was this last time seeing things go by.</p>
-
-<p>First he saw dull pageantries which had been the
-common stuff of his life, and he was confused by
-half-remembered, half-restored, faint cheers of distant
-crowds, colours, and gold, and the twin flashes
-of gems and of steel. And through it now and then
-strains of solemn music, and now and then the tearing
-cry of bronze: the bugles. All these sensations,
-confused and blurred, re-arose, and as they re-arose,
-welling up into him like a mist, there re-arose those
-permanent concomitants of such things. He felt
-again the nervous dread of folly and mishap, wondered
-upon the correctness of his conduct, whether
-he had not given offence somewhere to someone ...
-whether he had not been the subject of criticism by
-some tongue he feared. And as all that part of his
-great life returned to him, his face even in that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_286" id="Page_286">[286]</a></span>
-extremity showed some faint traces of concern such
-as it had borne when in truth and in the body he
-had moved in the midst of a Court.</p>
-
-<p>Next, like shadows disappearing, all that ghostly
-hubbub passed, but before he could be alone another
-picture succeeded, and he thought to feel beneath
-him the rolling of the sea. He was a young man
-looking for land, with others standing behind upon
-the deck, watching him in envy because of the
-miracles he was to do with armed men when he
-should touch the shore. And yet he was not a young
-man. He was a man already weighted with disappointment
-and with loss of love, and with some
-confused conception of breaking under an immense
-strain; and those who were on the deck behind him
-watching him, watched him with awe and with pity,
-and with a sort of dread that did not relieve his
-spirit. So young and old in the same moment, he
-felt in the brain the swinging of a ship&#8217;s deck. So
-he strained for land, a land where he should conquer,
-and at the same time it was a land where he
-should be utterly alone, and utterly forget, and be
-filled with nothing but defeat. The contradiction
-held him altogether.</p>
-
-<p>Then this movement also steadied and changed,
-and he had the sensation of a man walking up some
-steep hill, some hill too steep. He was leading a
-horse and the horse stumbled. It was bitterly cold,
-but he did not feel the cold: the roaring and the
-driving round him in the snow. Next he was in the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_287" id="Page_287">[287]</a></span>
-saddle; there was a little eminence from which he
-saw a plain. Slight as the beast was his seat galled
-him. He sat his mount badly, and he dreaded lest
-it should start with him as it had started the day
-before. But even as he so worried himself on his
-bad horsemanship, all his mind changed at quite
-another sight.</p>
-
-<p>For in the plain below that little height the great
-battalions went forward, rank upon rank upon rank;
-it was a review and it was a battle and it was
-a campaign. Mad imagery! the uniforms were the
-uniforms of gala, the drum-majors went before the
-companies of the Guard, gigantic, twirling their
-gigantic staves; the lifted trumpets of the Cuirassiers
-sounded as though upon some great stage, for
-the mere glory of the sound. And mass upon mass,
-regular, instinct with purpose, innumerable, the
-army passed below. There was no end to it. He
-knew, he was certain, as he strained his eyes, that
-it would never end. It was afoot, and it would
-march for ever. Far off, beyond the line, upon the
-flank of it, distant and terrible went the packed mass
-of the guns, and you could hear faintly amid the
-other noises of the advance the clatter-clank-clank
-of the limber. And from so far off he saw the
-leading sabres of commanders saluting him from his
-old arm. Here again was a mixture for him of
-things that do not mix in the true world: Glory and
-Despair. This endless army was his, and yet would
-go on beyond him. It was his and not his. There<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_288" id="Page_288">[288]</a></span>
-was room upon the colours for a million names of
-victories, but every victory in some way carried the
-stamp of defeat. And yet seeing all that pageant
-as the precursor of failure, he saw it also as something
-constructive. He thought of wood that burns
-and is consumed, but is the fuel of a flame of fire
-and all that fire can do.</p>
-
-<p>As he so thought, like a wind and a spirit blowing
-through the whole came some vast conception of a
-God. And once again the mixed, the dual feeling
-seized him, more greatly than before. It was a God
-that drove them all, and him. And that God was
-in his childhood, and he remembered his childhood
-very clearly. It was something of which he had
-been convinced in childhood, a security of good....
-Look how the army moved!...</p>
-
-<p>And now it had halted.</p>
-
-<p>Here his mind failed, and he had died. It was
-Napoleon.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_289" id="Page_289">[289]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreakright">On Rest<img src="images/i_graphic6.jpg" alt="" width="475" height="20" /></h2></div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THERE was a priest once who preached a sermon
-to the text of &#8220;Abba, Father.&#8221; On that text
-one might preach anything, but the matter that he
-chose was &#8220;Rest.&#8221; He was not yet in middle age,
-and those who heard him were not yet even young.
-They could not understand at all the moment of his
-ardent speech, and even the older men, seeing him
-to be but in the central part of life, wondered that
-he should speak so. His eyes were illuminated by
-the vision of something distant; his heart was not ill
-at ease, but, as it were, fixedly expectant, and he
-preached from his little pulpit in that little chapel of
-the Downs, with rising and deeper powers of the
-voice, so that he shook the air; yet all this energy
-was but the praise or the demand for the surcease
-of energy, and all this sound was but the demand for
-silence.</p>
-
-<p>It is a thing, I say, incomprehensible to the young,
-but gradually comprehended as the years go droning
-by, that in all things (and in proportion to the intensity
-of the life of each) there comes this appetite for
-dissolution and for repose: I do not mean that repose
-beyond which further effort is demanded, but
-something final and supreme.</p>
-
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_290" id="Page_290">[290]</a></span>This priest, a year or so after he had appealed
-with his sermon before that little country audience
-in the emptiness of the Downs, died. He had that
-which he desired, Rest. But what is it? What is
-the nature of this thing?</p>
-
-<p>Note you how great soldiers, when their long campaigns
-are done, are indifferent to further wars, and
-look largely upon the nature of fighting men, their
-objects, their failures, their victories, their rallying,
-their momentary cheers. Not that they grow indifferent
-to that great trade which is the chief business
-of a State, the defence or the extension of the
-common weal; but that after so much expense of all
-the senses our God gave them, a sort of charity and
-justice fills their minds. I have often remarked how
-men who had most lost and won, even in arms, would
-turn the leisured part of their lives to the study of
-the details of struggle, and seemed equally content
-to be describing the noble fortunes of an army,
-whether it were upon the crest of advancing victory,
-or in the agony of a surrender. This was because
-the writers had found Rest. And throughout the
-history of Letters&mdash;of Civilisation, and of contemporary
-friends, one may say that in proportion to the
-largeness of their action is this largeness and security
-of vision at the end.</p>
-
-<p>Now, note another thing: that, when we speak of
-an end, by that very word we mean two things.
-For first we mean the cessation of Form, and perhaps
-of Idea; but also we mean a goal, or object, to which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_291" id="Page_291">[291]</a></span>
-the Form and the Idea perpetually tended, without
-which they would have had neither meaning nor
-existence, and in which they were at last fulfilled.
-Aristotle could give no summing up but this to all
-his philosophy, that there was a nature, not only
-of all, but of each, and that the end determined
-what that nature might be; which is also what we
-Christians mean when we say that God made the
-world; and great Rabelais, when his great books
-were ending, could but conclude that all things
-tended to their end. Tennyson also, before he died,
-having written for so many years a poetry which one
-must be excused in believing considerable, felt, as
-how many have felt it, the thrumming of the ebb tide
-when the sea calls back the feudal allegiance of the
-rivers. I know it upon Arun bar. The Flood, when
-the sea heaves up and pours itself into the inland
-channels, bears itself creatively, and is like the manhood
-of a man&mdash;first tentative, then gathering itself
-for action, then sweeping suddenly at the charge.
-It carries with it the wind from the open horizon,
-it determines suddenly, it spurs, and sweeps, and is
-victorious; the current races; the harbour is immediately
-full.</p>
-
-<p>But the ebb tide is of another kind. With a
-long, slow power, whose motive is at once downward
-steadily towards its authority and its obedience
-and desire, it pushes as with shoulders, home;
-and for many hours the stream goes darkly, swiftly,
-and steadily. It is intent, direct, and level. It<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_292" id="Page_292">[292]</a></span>
-is a thing for evenings, and it is under an evening
-when there is little wind, that you may best observe
-the symbol thus presented by material things. For
-everything in nature has in it something sacramental,
-teaching the soul of man; and nothing more possesses
-that high quality than the motion of a river when it
-meets the sea. The water at last hangs dully, the
-work is done; and those who have permitted the
-lesson to instruct their minds are aware of consummation.</p>
-
-<p>Men living in cities have often wondered how it
-was that the men in the open who knew horses and
-the earth or ships and the salt water risk so much&mdash;and
-for what reward? It is an error in the very
-question they ask, rather than in the logical puzzle
-they approach, which falsifies their wonder. There
-is no reward. To die in battle, to break one&#8217;s neck
-at a hedge, to sink or to be swamped are not
-rewards. But action demands an end; there is a
-fruit to things; and everything we do (here at least,
-and within the bonds of time) may not exceed the
-little limits of a nature which it neither made nor
-acquired for itself, but was granted.</p>
-
-<p>Some say that old men fear death. It is the theme
-of the debased and the vulgar. It is not true.
-Those who have imperfectly served are ready enough;
-those who have served more perfectly are glad&mdash;as
-though there stood before them a natural transition
-and a condition of their being.</p>
-
-<p>So it says in a book &#8220;all good endings are but<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_293" id="Page_293">[293]</a></span>
-shining transitions.&#8221; And, again, there is a sonnet
-which says:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">We will not whisper: we have found the place</div>
-<div class="indent">Of silence and the ancient halls of sleep,</div>
-<div class="indent">And that which breathes alone throughout the deep</div>
-<div class="verse">The end and the beginning; and the face</div>
-<div class="verse">Between the level brows of whose blind eyes</div>
-<div class="indent">Lie plenary contentment, full surcease</div>
-<div class="indent">Of violence, and the ultimate great peace</div>
-<div class="verse">Wherein we lose our human lullabies.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Look up and tell the immeasurable height</div>
-<div class="indent">Between the vault of the world and your dear head;</div>
-<div class="verse">That&#8217;s Death, my little sister, and the Night</div>
-<div class="indent">That was our Mother beckons us to bed:</div>
-<div class="verse">Where large oblivion in her house is laid</div>
-<div class="verse">For us tired children now our games are played.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>Indeed, one might quote the poets (who are the
-teachers of mankind) indefinitely in this regard.
-They are all agreed. What did Sleep and Death to
-the body of Sarpedon? They took it home. And
-every one who dies in all the Epics is better for the
-dying. Some complain of it afterwards I will admit;
-but they are hard to please. Roland took it as the
-end of battle; and there was a Scandinavian fellow
-caught on the north-east coast, I think, who in dying
-thanked God for all the joy he had had in his life&mdash;as
-you may have heard before. And St. Anthony
-of Assisi (not of Padua) said, &#8220;Welcome, little sister
-Death!&#8221; as was his way. And one who stands right
-up above most men who write or speak said it was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_294" id="Page_294">[294]</a></span>
-the only port after the tide-streams and bar-handling
-of this journey.</p>
-
-<p>So it is; let us be off to the hills. The silence
-and the immensity that inhabit them are the simulacra
-of such things.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-<p class="center">
-WILLIAM BRENDON AND SON, LTD.<br />
-PRINTERS, PLYMOUTH</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-<p class="ph2">FOOTNOTE:</p>
-
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_1_1" id="Footnote_1_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1_1"><span class="label">[1]</span></a> Mr. H. Abrahims, of Eastcheap and The Firs, Guildford,
-Surrey.</p></div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="transnote">
-
-<p class="ph2">TRANSCRIBER&#8217;S NOTES:</p>
-
-
-<p>Obvious typographical errors have been corrected.</p>
-
-<p>Inconsistencies in hyphenation have been standardized.</p>
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of On Everything, by Hilaire Belloc
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ON EVERYTHING ***
-
-***** This file should be named 61076-h.htm or 61076-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/1/0/7/61076/
-
-Produced by Tim Lindell, David E. Brown, and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive/Canadian Libraries)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/61076-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/61076-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d1abad5..0000000
--- a/old/61076-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61076-h/images/i_163.jpg b/old/61076-h/images/i_163.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ed4ac99..0000000
--- a/old/61076-h/images/i_163.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic1.jpg b/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic1.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1714473..0000000
--- a/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic1.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic2.jpg b/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic2.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5ab2e27..0000000
--- a/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic2.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic3.jpg b/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic3.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index bf2df24..0000000
--- a/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic3.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic4.jpg b/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic4.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d5113c8..0000000
--- a/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic4.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic5.jpg b/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic5.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 752c4f3..0000000
--- a/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic5.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic6.jpg b/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic6.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7930b78..0000000
--- a/old/61076-h/images/i_graphic6.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61076-h/images/i_title.jpg b/old/61076-h/images/i_title.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f666b6b..0000000
--- a/old/61076-h/images/i_title.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ